Ss
Ss
WRITE
BETTER
SPEAK
BETTER
Montreal, Canada
The acknowledgments that appear on pages 728-730
are hereby made a part of this copyright page.
communication is important.
this goal. It brings together in one place the most practical advice avail-
have been carefully selected and organized by the editors of the Reader's
Digest to give you a complete course in the writing and speaking skills
that are essential in your everyday life, whether you are a housewife, a
businessman, a student, or simply a person who wants to say \\hat you
mean and get results.
The book is divided into four parts. The first, "How to Write
Better," covers in detail the many writing situations you encounter,
your congressman. Sample letters and lists of tips make the material
clear and easy to understand. Part Two reviews the basic elements of
a speech, and organizing a formal talk complete with visual aids. The
final section tells you how to detect and correct flaws in your \oice or
Study the chapters, review the tips, take the progress tests, and
you'll soon find that words reallv can work wonders for you.
Contents
Part one
HOW TO WRITE BETTER
1. Good writing— a skill you can learn 3
26. Quick vocabulary builder: words from Latin and Greek 309
Part three
HOW TO SPEAK BETTER
34. Of cabbages and kings 385
Part four
LEARN TO USE YOUR VOICE
53. Beware of these speech blemishes 581
INDEX 709
I
PART ONE
How
to write
better
WHAT YOU WILL FIND IN
Part one
1. Good writing— a skill you can learn 3
most important skills you will ever master. It will help you to
get your ideas across effectively and to get the results you
words, messages, letters, and reports put into the mails or delivered by
hand, but the daih' figure must be enormous. What is more, everyone
who writes expects, or at least hopes, that his writing will be read.
Yet we know very well, from our own experience, that much that is
handwritten and more that is typed is only skimmed, and sometimes not
read at all. Every day too much reading matter (newspapers, maga-
zines, leaflets, as well as letters ) With all the du-
comes into our hands.
ties and responsibilities we have in our business and personal lives,
there simply isn't the time to go through all those pages which clutter
our desks or cram our mail boxes. And our own correspondence, what-
ever its form and shape and size, must compete with the letters and cor-
respondence of everyone else \\'ho is doing exactly what we are doing:
writing.
Under these circumstances we must turn out a more attractive, more
interesting, more tasteful product. We want to arouse and hold the in-
terest of the reader of our correspondence or communication. We want
whate\er we write to be read, from first word to last, not just tossed
into some "letters-to-be-read" file or into a wastepaper basket. This is
the reason we bend our efforts toward learning and practicing the skills
of interesting, effective writing.
Keep it brief
"That writer does the most, who gives the reader the most informa-
tion,and takes from him the least time," wrote Charles C. Colton,
churchman, gambler, and author, some two hundred years ago. This is
an observation which everyone who writes should commit to heart, an
observation to post above the desk of ever\' businessman who dictates
a memo, of every housewife who pens a letter, and of every student
who taps out a term study on his typewriter.
The purpose of writing is to communicate: a thought, an idea, a senti-
ment, a fact. The more concrete and concise these elements in a com-
munication, the more precise, the more rewarding they are to the
reader. The manner in which you communicate information is enor-
mously important. It must come to us in palatable form to command our
attention, and to hold it.
On the other hand, nothing can be more irritating and sometimes frus-
trating than the omission of essential detail. Suppose, for example, the
shirts you manufacture come in several styles, colors, and sizes, but the
order vou have received in the mail gives no specifications. Or you are
driving to visit a friend in the countrv and vou come to a fork in a coun-
try lane; \'Ou consult the map he has sent you and he has omitted both
the fork and the road you are to take. Or someone writes down a tele-
phone message from your out-of-town friends, telling you they're going
to be in the citv and will drop in to see you; but the message contains
no date, no time, and nothing to indicate whether they are coming alone
or with their children. And there are the instructions for setting up your
hi-fi phonograph and tape recorder which take for granted that you
know what a "patch cord" is.
lar style in writing is to write as you speak. This would seem to be just
about as easy a task as vou could set yourself — but in reality it isn't.
\\TaTE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
That old mystique which ho\ers o\er the written word seems to get
into the waN; even when we use a dictaphone to bridge the gap be-
tween what we wish to sav and what we put to paper, the subliminal
"It is not eas\' to write with a familiar style," wrote William Hazlitt,
the sagacious Encjlish essayist, more than 150 years ago, "to write as
anyone would speak in common con\ersation. . .
." But, given a modi-
cum of time and a soup^on of effort, it can be done.
Weak: The demand for the prisoners' release was not accepted bv the chief
executive.
Better: The president refused to free the prisoners.
Weak: It was decided bv the group that the matter would be considered at
the ne.xt meeting.
Better: The school board decided to consider nominations next week.
Weak: And illumination was called for bv the supreme being.
Better: And God said. Let there be light . . .
The more you speak, the more freely you speak. The more you write,
the more fluent your writing will become. Studying models and drills
designed to develop \our skills will help. And the keener your studies
and more ardent your practice, the sooner will that antique, constrict-
ing dread of words lose its hold on you; and the sooner will that prob-
lem of getting off a memo to \-our secretary, that school application,
that letter you owe your aunt in Toronto, be dissipated.
Effective, interesting writing is a skill you can master. In this first
section of Write Better, Speak Better we shall analyze in detail the
techniques inxolvcd in writing everything from business and personal
letters to the productive college application, from mannerisms in writ-
ing that should be a\oidcd to the art of intelligent editing. There will be
numerous examples of model letters to guide you in your efforts, and a
number of drills which should help you sharpen the essential skills. In
later chapters, we will dcnil with the other kinds of wTiting, and with
the bricks and mortar of the craft — grammar, spelling, sentence struc-
ture, and the good form and usage which often make
rules governing —
the difference between effectiveness and flatness in your writing.
Secrets of
good letter writing
to give your letters the impact you want them to have— how
to say what you want to say in the way you want to say it-
For the chances are that a good share of them are going to people who
—
know nothing and care less about you. —
Consider how it was in our parents' and grandparents' time. Most of
their letters were written to their families and to friends. OccasionalK\
the head of the household might sit down and dash off a stern letter to
still personal. But the chances are that a great deal is written to stran-
gers. Here are a few typical situations; vou'll probably find several of
them reflected in your own life.
The Smiths have a sixteen-year-old son with a fine scholastic record.
They wTite to a college inquiring about scholarship possibilities. If they
know the right things to say, they may receive a letter and a number of
forms, one of which will request them to have friends send in character
references. This vitallv important letter must be just right.
\^^UTE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
Question: What should the Smiths sav in their original letter in or-
Question: Can Mr. Smith get a free repairbv writing a letter to the
manufacturer? He mav be able toif he knows the right things to say.
The Smiths' daughter is graduating from college, and would like to
work in Washington for the government.
Question: Should she write to her congressman or her senator or to
some federal office? What should she say?
Mrs. Smith's brother recently died and left his small business to her.
She'd like to find someone to manage it or buy it.
harried. He doesn't have time to do his job as well as he'd like; his boss
is on his back; his peers are wondering if he really knows his business;
and his subordinates, he is sure, are either incompetent or angling for
his desk.
As a result, anything you can say in your letter that wall make his job
easier will be of enormous help in getting a satisfactory answer.
SECRETS OF GOOD LETTER WT^ITING
What can vou do to make things easier for him? There are three
things, and the)' can be called the ABC's of good letter writing. ABC
stands for Accuracy, Brevity, and Clarity. Let's take a close look at each.
A IS FOR ACCURACY
Accuracy is very important because the person you're writing to does
not, in all probability, know vou, nor is he likely to be famiUar with the
circumstances which caused vou to write. Therefore, be as specific as
possible, giving all the pertinent information as accurately as you can
in your letter to him.
For example, if you're complaining about a product vou've bought
that has become defective, include all the pertinent facts — where you
bought it, the date vou bought it, the model number of the product, if
Her license still shows the incorrect name, but she is fairly certain that
in three years, when she's due for another renewal, the\- may admit that
and the pertinent figures correctly, and you may be able to save consid-
erable time and annoyance.
B IS FOR BREVITY
You can take it for granted that the person \ou're writing to hasn't time
to wade through a long letter. If he receives a piece of correspondence
that runs more than a page, or at most, two, he'll probably slip it at the
bottom of his pile of incoming mail, with the thought that he'll look at
it when he has more time.
Don't blame him. You'd probablv do the same. So, pare your letter
down to essentials, eliminating every sentence that will not help the let-
2. Giving the important facts to support vour first sentence will show
that you're businesslikeand thoughtful. Limit the facts to the one or
two or three which are most important. If you give a long string of rea-
sons why, the letter becomes boring and irritating. Remember: You
10
—
SECRETS OF GOOD LETTER \VRrnXG
excellent, subtle way of doing it is to keep the letter clear and simple.
One useful practice is to put each of vour reasons or arguments in
a separate paragraph, preceded by a number. Thus, a letter to the
editor of a newspaper might read:
C IS FOR CLARITY
It is diflficult to tell somebody, "Go out and be clear." It is like saying,
"Be funny." But you follow the suggestions given above for accuracy
if
too busy to exercise them. If any sentence runs more than four lines, try
11
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
Keep your words short. Don't tr\^ to impress the reader with long or
unusual words or phrases. You ma\' not be using them correctly, in the
first place. In the second place, the reader will tend to be put off bv
them or consider them pompous and phony.
"Dear John, I hope you are not still angry. 1 want to explain that
I was really joking when I told yovi I didn't mean what I said about
reconsidering my decision not to change my mind. Please believe I
12
SECRETS OF GOOD LETTER WRITING
By avoiding overworked and exhausted words and phrases, vou can add
considerable liveliness to your letters. And number of other
there are a
words that don't mean exactly what you think they mean. Read this list
(which is based on a similar list in "Plain Letters," published by the
about "He will arrive at about nine used in the following example:
o'clock" is incorrect. Use "at" or "When the hour came, they were all
13
WTOTE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
14
'
15
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
Dear Sir:
This is the occasion of the third time I have written to you about a
parts, as noted previously, are two wing-nut bolts, six brass screws, and
a lockwedge, which the man at the local hardware had never heard of.
Notwithstanding the fact that I have already lost three precious weeks
because of your policy of refusing to acknowledge customer complaints
and your failure to answer mv previous letters, I would appreciate
having the missing parts without even further delay so I don't suffer
the loss of even more wasted time.
If this letter is also ignored like the last two, I shall feel forced to make
formal complaint to the Post Office Department in order to get the resti-
tution I deserve.
I hope to hear from you soon so I don't have to take this dire step, and
I trust that you will demonstrate your good faith by communicating with
me at once.
Sincerely yours,
George Widgen
d. Things are pretty slow here, so I thought I'd drop you a line.
16
Handling your
personal correspondence
You can write the kind of personal letter we all love to re-
and there are some who possess a gift for a fresh turn of phrase with
which to charm the reader.
The letter we all love to receive is the one that carries so much of the
word. Here are a few specific suggestions that may help to make your
letters reflect vour personality.
It is quite correct to tvpe a personal letter, but only if the writer is a
proficient enough typist so that the number of errors does not distract
17
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
Punctuation can add interest and variety to your letters, much as the
change in tone of a speaker's voice adds zest and color to his story. Un-
derlining a word or using an exclamation point after a phrase or sen-
tence gi\'es emphasis where you want it. A dash is effective instead of a
longer, possibly more grammatical phrase. "We went to a dance last
night —what a party!" is more colorful than "We went to a dance last
18
LETTERS THAT SHOULDN'T BE WRITTEN
No USEFUL PURPOSE is cvcr served by writing needlessly of mis-
fortune or unhappiness — even to members of vour family. Oiu" dis-
The chronic calamity writers seem to wait until the skies are
Every day the mails carry letters of another kind whose fallout
would be spectacular if they fell into the wrong hands. Sillv girls
and foolish men, for example, often write things that sound quite
different from their original intent.
19
—
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
many letters I planned to write you." Or "Time and time again I've
wanted to write you but each moment that I saxed for myself was al-
wavs interrupted bv something."
It is easy enough to begin a letter in answer to one you ha\ e just re-
ceived. You have fresh news to comment on, and the impulse to reply
needs no prodding. Nothing can be simpler than to say, "We were all
so pleased to hear from vou this morning," or "Your was the most
letter
welcome thing the postman has brought for ages." Then you take up
the various subjects in Ann's letter, which should certainly lead into
topics of your own.
Remember to answer all of her specific questions. It is not only un-
flattering to give the impression that you read them hurriedly, but often
very upsetting if you omit long-awaited information.
On ending a letter
If you find that you can't keep a dinner date or other social engagement
you should always telephone or send a wire before the appointed time
to warn your host or hostess that you will not be there. But you should
20
HANDLING YOUR PERSONAL CORRESPONDENCE
offer a valid excuse for your absence and express sincere regret at the
inconvenience you may have caused.
Ethel Norman
Tuesdav morning
The note of apology for an unfortunate mishap should explain the cir-
Thank-you letters
they are not sent before the wedding, they must be written as soon as
the bride returns from her honeymoon. Even for a very large wedding,
all thank-you notes should be mailed within two months.
All wedding presents are sent to the bride, and she writes all the
thank-you notes. But she generally words her letters to include the
21
:
Saturday
Dear Mrs. Beck,
To think of your sending us all those wonderful glasses! Thev are
perfect, want to thank vou a thousand times!
and Jim and I
lovely clock. I have never been noted for mv punctualitv, and your gift
will surely help me to improve. Thank vou very, very much.
Looking forward to seeing you on the tenth.
Very sincerely,
Joan McCord
The salutation is addressed to Mrs. King onlv, but sometimes, as in
the examples above, thanks to the husband is definitelv expressed.
For a present received after the wedding, the bride might write:
22
HANDLING YOUR PERSONAL CORRESPONDENCE
Dear Kate,
I am fascinated with my jewel box — it is so unusual. You are reallv
clever at findingwhat no one else can, and what everyone wants. I don't
know how you do it!
Again, thanks so much.
With love,
Edie
AflFectionately,
Robin
Bread-and-butter letters
nearly evervone is hard to say unless it is because thev are often writ-
ten to persons with whom vou are on formal terms, and you want )'our
23
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
and must write to her mother, whom you scarceK' know, or perhaps you
are a bride and ha\e been on a first visit to relatives or old friends of
have only to add "Love to Pauline, and thank you again for asking me,"
end it "Very sincerelv," or better, "Affectionately" —and there you are!
Don't be afraid that vour note is too informal. Never think, because
you cannot write a letter easily, that it is better not to write at all. The
most awkward note imaginable is better than none.
Betty
24
HANDLING YOUR PERSONAL CORRESPONDENCE
Dearest Bett,
We bothhad a wonderful time! Bob's sunburn has turned to a beauti-
and the rest did him a \\ orld of good.
ful tan,
You were good to ask us so soon again, and we thank you very,
verv much. Call us as soon as you get home.
Yours,
Mary
As Prince of Wales, Edward VII was known by his friends for his
25
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
Letters of congratulation
ON AN ENGAGEMENT
Dear Stella,
While we are not altogether surprised, we are both delighted to
hear the good news of vour engagement. Ted's family and ours are
very close, as you know, and we have always been especially devoted to
—
him. He is one of the finest and now luckiest of voung men, and —
we send you both every good wish for all possible happiness.
Affectionately,
Nancy Jackson
Dear Ted,
Just a line to tell you how glad we all are to hear of your wonderful
news. Stella is lovely, and, of course, from our point of view, we don't
think .she's exactly unfortunate either! This brings our very best wishes
to you from
Arthur and Nancv Jackson
Dear Mary,
John has just told us of his great happiness, which, of course, makes
us very happy, too. Our one distress is that we are so far away [or what-
ever else] that we cannot immediately meet you in person.
We do, however, send you our love and hope that we shall see you
very soon.
Sincerely and affectionately,
Martha Jones
26
HANDLING YOUH PERSONAL CORRESPONDENCE
May I come to see vou and the babv the first time that I'm in town?
I'll call and let vou know \\ hen that will be.
Much love,
Helen
Dear Michael,
We were all so happv to hear of the confirmation of vour appoint-
—
ment. The state needs men hke you if we had more of your sort, the
ordinary citizen would have less to worrv about. Our warmest congratu-
lations!
Jim
Letters of introduction
although it carries \ our implicit approval of the person you wish to in-
troduce. It also implies the writer's request that the receiver pay due at-
tention to the person being introduced. Since these letters are often
written to important men with little time to spare, thev must not be
written casuallv.
A business letter of introduction does not necessarily oblige the re-
ceiver to entertain the subject socially. If he wishes to, he certainly may,
but generally his attention to the bearer's business is sufficient.
ducing. Therefore, there is one firm rule: Never ask for such letters of
introduction, and be very sparing in your offers to write them.
Few people realize that a letter of social introduction carries an im-
mediate obligation. The form might as well be "The bearer of this note
has the right to demand your interest, your time, your hospitality — lib-
erally and at once, no matter what you think of him." Therefore, it is far
27
-
Dear Madam:
I have been shown in the files of the War Department a statement
of the Adjutant General of Massachusetts that you are the mother of
five sons who have died gloriously on the field of battle. I feel how
weak and must be any word of mine which shonld attempt to
fniitless
beguile you from the grief of a loss so overwhelming. But I cannot
refrain from tendering you the consolation that may be found in the
thanks of the republic they died to save. I pray tliat our Heavenly
Father ma\' assuage the anguish of your berea\emcnt, and leave you
only the cherished memory of the loved and lost, and the solemn
pride that must be yours to have laid so costly a sacrifice upon the
altar offreedom.
Yours very sincerely and respectfully,
A. Lincoln
So I tried once more, this time to the professor of one of the stiff
28
:
other had, I wrote him how much his course had meant to me. Here
is the answer I received
I found vour letter last night just at a time when I was feeling par-
ticularly low. It seemed to make my whole lifework worthwhile. I may
say that in thirtv-five years of giving the best I know how to give, I
have ne\'er before received one word of appreciation from a student.
Thanks.
eyebrow, and started to finish his run with his battered bus. Said a
man next to him, "I'm going to report vou!" Indignantly, I began
to intervene, but he hastened on: "For eflficiencv and courtesy. If
you'll tell me where to write, and give me your name, I'll tell your
company you're the best man in a pinch I ever saw."
"Gee, mister," said the driver, letting out a long breath, "I wish
there was more in the world like vou." How often someone per-
forms unusual services for us that we allow to pass unpraised, tak-
ing courtesy and helpfulness for granted!
29
:
When you know someone who is going to a citv where you have other
friends and when you beHeve that it will be a mutual pleasure for them
to meet, a letter of introduction is proper and very easy to write. But
sent to a casual acquaintance —no matter how attractive or distin-
guished the person to be introduced — it is a gross presumption.
tion to you. He is a very great friend of ours, and I think that perhaps
you and Mr. Miller will enjoy meeting him as much as I know he would
enjoy knowing you.
With kindest regards, in which Arthur joins,
Very sincerely,
Ethel Norman
If Mr. Norman were introducing one man to another, he would give
his card to the visitor, inscribed as follows
\:^/yCt^^inl<M>i^>^C\^^
Mr. Norman would also send a private letter by mail, telling his friend
that Mr. Gibbs is coming.
Dear Jack,
I am giving Julian Gibbs a card of introduction to you when he goes
to Buffalo on the tenth to lecture. He is delightfully entertaining and a
great friend of ours. I feel sure that Betty would enjoy meeting him. If
you can conveniently ask him to your house, I know he would appre-
ciate it; if not, perhaps you could put him up for a day or two at a club
or arrange for a reservation in a good hotel.
Faithfully,
Arthur Norman
30
HANDLING YOUR PERSONAL CORRESPONDENCE
you in town.
Affectionately,
Louise Hill
Dear Ruth,
I have sent you a letter introducing George Perrin. He is young,
about thirty-five or so, verv good company, and altogether likable. We
have known him for some years.
He is very interested in modem art, and knowing that you count a
number of artists among vour friends, we thought you might be able to
arrange some introductions for him.
I know it would be a pleasure for everyone concerned, and hope
you will be able to get together.
Affectionately,
Louise
PROCEDURE ON ARRIVAL
A letter of introduction is always handed to you unsealed. It is correct
for you to seal it at once in the presence of its author.
you are a man and your introduction is to a lady, you go to her
If
house soon after you arrive, introduce yourself, and give her your letter
of introduction. If you feel presumptuous in going directly to her home,
you may telephone and explain who you are and by whom you are in-
troduced. She should, and undoubtedly will, set a time for you to meet,
and when you arrive, you give her your letter of introduction.
one. In the latter case, if there has not been time to mail the introduc-
tion ahead, you go to his office and send in your business card and the
letter. You wait in the reception room until he has read the letter and
calls vou into his office. If at all possible, it is much better to write or
call him first, letting him know your business and when you will arrive.
This will ensure his having time to see you, as well as preparing him to
discuss whatever your business may be.
A woman mails her letter of introduction and does nothing further
until she receives an acknowledgment. But the obUgation of a written
31
FOUR TIPS FOR WRITING THE SICK
For the bedridden, either in a hospital setting or at home, few
pleasures are greater than those of receiving a letter from a friend,
unless it be a visit. Even if you send a letter to an invalid whom
vou visit occasionally, it can help lift his spirits enormously. If vou
cannot always send a letter, a tastefullv selected greeting card is
better than nothing. Here are four general principles that may be
useful.
First, this is one of the rare occasions when I cannot counsel you
to be brief. The longer the letter, the better. An invalid or con-
valescent has a great deal of time on his hands. He mav feel up to
reading only part of a long letter at a time; then he will look for-
ward to taking it up again later.
Second, make sure your letter is easy to read. The energy level
that you run over into the trivial. Be careful to make comments on
the person's own situation and to ask questions as you would in a
the patient. Jokes, humorous columns, even serious articles that will
help make him feel a part of the world will be morale building.
Several years ago, I was confined to bed for nearly a vear, and
I remember that my greatest source of gloom was the feeling that
the world was passing me bv, that my acquaintances were all mak-
ing their way in the world, while I was vegetating. Letters which
cheered me most were those which generally followed the sugges-
tions I've offered in the preceding paragraphs.
— Lassor Blumenthal
32
HANDLING YOUR PERSONAL CORRESPONDENCE
introduction is so strong that onK- illness or absence can excuse the re-
cipient from asking you to her house — either formally or informally.
When a man receives a letter introducing another man, he calls the
"My friends, the Franklins, are going to live in vour neighborhood," the
latter is free to make advances onlv insofar as she feels inclined.
Mrs. Franklin, knowing nothing about this letter and expecting noth-
ing in the wav of hospitality, is far more likely to be pleased when Mrs.
Hartwell calls on her than when she is invited to Mrs. Hartwell's house
because the invitation is obligatory. A letter of introduction, as you can
see, is often an inconvenience and can be a very real burden.
The two most important things about letters of condolence are that they
be written immediately, and that thev be sincere.
Intimate letters of condolence are like love letters in that they are too
personal to follow a set form. Say what you truly feel. Say that and
nothing else. Sit down at vour desk; let your thoughts be with the per-
son you are writing to.
rowful thoughts. The more nearK' a note can express a thought of sym-
pathy, and a genuine love or appreciation for the one who has gone, the
greater comfort it brings.
33
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
Write as simply as possible and let your heart speak truh' but briefly.
Forget, if you can, that you are using written words. Think merely how
you feel —then put vour feelings on paper.
Suppose it is the death of a man who has left a place in the whole
community that will be difficult, if not impossible, to fill. You remember
all he stood for that was fine and helpful to others and how much he will
service. There is nothing more to be said. A line into which you have
put a little of the genuine feeling that \ou had for Steve is worth pages
of eloquence. A letter of condolence mav be abrupt, badly constructed,
ungrammatical — never mind. Grace of expression counts for nothing;
sincerity alone is of value.
Occasionally a letter from one who has suffered an undeniably equal
loss, who in sincerity writes words of encouragement and assurance that
in time the pain will grow less instead of greater, is of genuine help.
The few examples below are intended merely as suggested guides for
those at a loss to construct a short but a'ppropriate message.
Alice Blake
at such a time. But must at least tell you that you are in our thoughts
I
and in our hearts, and if there is anything that we can do for you, please
—
send us a message whatever it may be.
With deepest sympathy,
Mary Newling
The letter to someone whose
loss is for the best is difficult in that you
want sympathy but cannot feel sad that one who has suffered
to express
so long has found release. The expression of sympathy in this case
should not be for the present death, but for the illness or whatever
it was that occurred long ago. The grief for a paralyzed mother is for
the stroke that cut her down many years before, and your sympathy,
though you may not have realized it, is for that. You might write: "Your
sorrow during all these years — and now — is in my heart; and all my
thoughts and sympathy are with you."
34
Give your letters
the right look
Part of the impression your letters make depends on their
should you put your return address, and in what form? Are
make graceful letters, to space words evenly, and to put them on a page
35
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
ways be written by hand, and the following rules are unbreakable ex-
cept for handicapped people who otherwise could not write at all.
36
)
larger, is the best choice. The color of the engraving (or printing)
should be black, grav, or dark blue. Writing ink should be black or
blue-black.
A very practical man's paper is a single sheet 7 or 7/4 inches bv 10 or
10/2 inches marked in plain block letters in dark blue at the top. I lis
name (without title), his address including zip code, and his telephone
number all appear. This paper can be used for tvpewriting or hand-
writing and for all types of correspondence. It is folded in thirds to fit
block letters or a crest if he has one. A man who has occasion to write
short notes frequentlv may also have single sheets in a slightlv smaller
size, so that the message will not look as lost as it would on the larger
paper. ( See sample letterheads on next page.
Paper for a woman White, cream, light blues, grays, and light greens
are in best taste. Paper should be of small or medium size, single or
double sheets, plain or with colored border, stamped with a monogram,
initials, or name and address in color to match the border. Writing ink
should be black or blue, and green ma^• be used if that is the color of
the paper.
A married woman's paper is engraved "Mrs. William Frost," not "Mrs.
Marv Frost" or "Marv Frost." An unmarried woman uses "Miss" onlv in
37
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
18 Walnut Road
Peoria, Illinois 61606
>"
woman
—A"Jane
the return address on the envelope. professional often uses
her professional name without title Author" rather than "Mrs.
Robert Author" — on paper used for business correspondence.
Paper for everyone in the family Paper suitable for use by all the
members of a familv has the address engraved or printed in plain letters
at the top of the first page- Frequently the telephone number is put in
small letters under the address or in the upper left-hand corner with the
address in the center. This paper is especially practical if you have a
country or vacation home, as it can also be used by your guests.
not distinctive, the young girl may wish to use her surname also. Avail-
38
GIVE YOUR LETTERS THE RIGHT LOOK
able for very young ladies are attractive papers with designs in the up-
per left-hand corners or along the left or top borders, usually flowers,
birds, or perhaps a kitten or puppy. A name or monogram is not used,
and the style of the picture varies with the age of the girl.
Many stationers also sell paper for verv young girls or bovs. It is
is designed to amuse the young child and make him consider letter writ-
NoTEPAPER For short notes, for acceptances or regrets, and for invita-
tions, a supplv of fold-over notcpaper, half the size of a single sheet of
lady's writing paper, is invaluable. It may be of any color properly used
for letter paper and engraved or printed with initials or with the own-
er's name and address, and possibly telephone number. If not marked
with initials or a name, it is useful for every female member of the
family.
engraved merely
AMERICAN EMBASSY
LONDON
A governor's letter paper is stamped
EXECUTIVE MANSION
COLUMBUS
omo
and is usually surmounted by the state coat of arms. Executfve Office
is also correct as the heading for official letters. Paper engraved \\'ith
Executive Mansion, but without the coat of arms, may be used by the
governor's family if the address is also that of their home. Otherwise
their paper is engraved with their personal address.
A senator's wife has no right to use stationerv headed The Senate,
nor may the wife of a representative write on paper engraved House of
Representatives.
Mourning paper Few people use mourning paper at all, and plain
white paper has almost replaced that with a black border. A Ji-inch bor-
39
WRITE BETTEB, SPEAK BETTER
is customary to use the first and third pages, as this leaves the fourth
page blank and prexents the writing from showdng through the enve-
lope. For longer letters, one mav write first, second, third, fourth, in reg-
ular order; or first and fourth, then, opening the sheet and turning it
sidewavs, write across the two inside pages as one. The sequence is not
important, and there is no fixed rule. If any possibility of confusion
exists, it is best to number all pages but the first.
airmail weight, since this thin paper allows the writing to show
through, making the letter difficult to read.
On fold-oxer or informal notepaper, when the address is at the top
and there is nothing in the center, the letter or note begins on the first
page and follows into the center pages. The paper is opened flat and
written on vertically as if it were a single page. If there is an initial or
name in the center of the front page, the note begins at the top of the
opened center pages if it is long enough to cover more than half, and on
the lower half if it is to be onlv a few words.
Your home address and the date If your stationery is not marked
with your address, it is only courteous to provide^ it for vour correspond-
ent's conxcnience in repKing. The upper right-hand corner of the first
page of your lettc r is the usual place for an address, but sometimes, es-
pecially on a short note, it may be included in the lower left-hand part
40
GIVE YOUR LETTERS THE RIGHT LOOK
of the page, just below the lc\el of your signature. In either case the
date goes below the address.
Sincerelv,
Mar)' Swenson
(Mrs. John Swenson)
45 Barton Street
Racine, Wisconsin
May 5, 1971
When your address is already engraved or printed on the stationery,
the date is placed in the same place — in the upper right-hand corner of
the first page of a letter or at the end and to the far left of the signature
of a note. Ma^• 9, 1971, is preferable to .5-9-71.
At the end of a note "Thursday" is suflBcient unless the note is an in-
vitation for more than a week ahead, in which case you write, as in a
of the date and two lines above the salutation, exactly as it appears on
the envelope.
Personal letters and notes, howexer, never have the address of the re-
ceiver anywhere except on the envelope itself.
Dear Madam:
41
:
The most formal beginning of a social letter is "My dear Mrs. Smith."
Increasingly intimate are "Dear Mrs. Smith," "Dear Sally," and "Dearest
Sallv." In this area, your own feeling must be your guide, although it is
perhaps better to err on the side of formality when you are not abso-
lutely certain of your recipient's feeling.
Except in the most intimate correspondence, a man is always ad-
dressed "Dear Bob," when something less formal than "Dear Mr. Smith"
is suitable.
The closing It is too bad that, for personal letters and notes, the Eng-
Hsh language does not permit the charming closing of letters in the
mal "I have the honor to remain" close of a letter to the President of the
42
.
full married name and address, her signature — Mary Jones Mathews or
Mary J.
Mathews —needs no further explanation. But if it is not, she
should give her married name ( to which the reply will be sent ) in one
of several ways. When she writes by hand, she adds her married name
beneath her signature, or to the left of it, in parentheses, thus:
When the letter is typed, her married name is typed beneath the space
left for her signature, where it need not be enclosed in parentheses.
The only times when a woman actually uses "Mrs." in her signature
are in a hotel register, on a business telegram, on a charge account, or in
43
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
Sincerely,
(Miss) Mary Mathews
and stamped the letters, bundled them up with a iubber bancl, and
put them in his suitcase.
44
Gr\'E YOUR LETTERS THE RIGHT LOOK
other cases their husbands' names are used below the handwritten sig-
Folding a letter One need not worry about which edge of a letter
is inserted first into the envelope, but — if you wish to be strictly
proper —insert the open, or unfolded edge, first. It is sufficient that the
deep as half the length of the paper, and twice for the envelope that is
a third as deep. The paper that must be folded into thirds is used only
as personal stationery for men or for business purposes. Women's per-
sonal letter paper should fold onlv once and fit into its envelope. Note-
paper is the same size as the envelope and goes into it flat with only the
original fold.
The envelope
Write the name and address on the envelope as precisely and as legibly
the older generation and among lawyers and justices of the peace. Its
tions are always addressed to Mr. Stanley Smith on both invitation and
envelope. Handwritten invitations, as well as all other personal letters,
45
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
A WTDOw AND HER husband's NAME No note or social letter should ever
be addressed to a married woman e\'en if she is a widow as Mrs. — —
Mary Towti. Correctly and properly a widow keeps her husband's name,
always. It her son's wife should have the same name, she becomes Mrs.
James Town, Senior. Or, if there is no other in her community with the
same name, she becomes simply Mrs. Town.
Young people Young ladies are addressed as "Miss" from the very day
they are born. Both the first and last names are used on envelopes —the
only time a girl is addressed as "Miss Tavlor" is on the inner envelope of
a wedding invitation.
Boys mav be addressed as "Master" until thev are six or seven. After
that they arc addressed without title until they graduate from high
school at approximately eighteen. At that time they take the adult title
of "Mister."
"Messrs." may not be used to address a father and son. It is correct
only in writing to unmarried brothers.
his home address you properly assume that no one else will open the
letter, it is rude to wTite "Personal" on it. But if you are writing a social
note to a friend's business address, it is entirely correct. "Please For-
ward" is correct if vou know a former address but not the current one.
46
Social notes
and invitations
balls, and parties. In the pages that follow you'll learn the ins
ception in a very big house or club, then many will receive invitations
47
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
The in\ itations to a large wedding are sent three weeks beforehand;
those to a simpler wedding can be mailed as late as ten days before the
wedding day.
48
SOCIAL NOTES AND INVITATIONS
This would also be done if the bride has told some of her friends to
"bring an escort."
Although it may seem unnecessary, it is thoughtful to send invita-
tions to members of the bridal party as mementos. These in\'itations are
ting it. First, the Post Office Department requests that all first-class mail
carry a return address. Second, it provides the wedding guest with a
definite address to which to send a gift. Third, it also provides an ad-
dress to which the guest may send a reply, especially when no R.S.V.P.
is found on the invitation. Very often the only address in evidence is
tion designed to fit an envelope half its size will require a second fold,
which should be made with the engraving inside. This is then inserted,
folded edge down, into the envelope. With the unsealed flap of this
filled inner envelope away from you, insert it in the mailing envelope.
"u" —of your "presence" and never the "pleasure" of your "company." It
is the invitation to the reception that requests the pleasure of your com-
pany. But it is perfectly proper for communicants of the Roman Catho-
lic Church who so wish to use a form in which the phrase "at the mar-
riage of" is replaced by "at the Marriage in Christ of; and where
49
)
50
SOCIAL NOTES AND INVITATIONS
Uaroara
to
at three o clock
Drignt i'leaaows
R. s.v.
When the bride's own father is not living and she has a stepparent, or
her mother has divorced and remarried, the invitations are worded:
51
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
Invitations are issued by the parents of the bride even when the wed-
ding takes place at a house other than their o\vn. The names of the par-
ents at the head of the invitation means that they are giving the wedding
but not in their own house.
El canor
to
at tour o clocK
K.s.v.p.
When the bride's parents are divorced, the wedding invitations are
issued in the name of the parent who pavs for and acts as host at the
reception. In the event that relations are so friendly that they share the
expenses and act as co-hosts, both names should appear.
52
SOCIAL NOTES AND INVITATIONS
The bride's mother's name, whether she has remarried or not, appears
first. If neither parent is remarried the wording would be:
A more mature woman, or one whose parents are dead, mav send out
her own imitations:
53
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
The same woman would drop the "John" and use "Mrs. Kerr Simons"
if she were a di\orcee.
The groom has been divorced does not change the invi-
fact that the
tation to, or announcement of, his new bride's marriage.
On the wedding invitations, the name of a bridegroom in the armed
forces whose rank is below Lt. Commander in the navy or Captain in
the armv is given this way:
John Strong
2nd Lieutenant, United States Army
or
Robert Todd
Ensign, United States Navy
The title of higher ranking officers precedes their name, and the serv-
ice may or mav not be included on the line below.
An officer in the reserves does not use his title unless he is on active
duty.
High-ranking regular officers continue to use their titles and include
their scTvice on the line below with "retired" following the service.
54
SOCIAL NOTES AND INVITATIONS
When the young bride comes as a stranger from abroad, or from a dis-
tant eitv, without her family, the bridegroom's family may gi\ c the wed-
ding and send the invitations in their name. This is another of the rare
cases where the title "Miss" is used.
The bride's own family may later send announcements, but it should
not send invitations.
The most flattering wedding imitation possible is a note personally
written hv the bride. Even though she is sending engraved inxitations
to most of the guests, she niav, as a special gesture of affection, send a
few hand\N'ritten ones to those she cares most about. Such a note should
be brief, sincere, and personal.
This type of note is also written when the wedding is to be very small,
or when it is held on short notice. In these circumstances, telephone in-
55
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
tion. If not, the bride and members of her family and bridal party who
can help must send out handwritten notes at once. The wording, de-
pending on the cause, would be:
56
:
exactly the same as those to the wedding itself. The wording follows
this form
ENCLOSURES
To the family and those intimate friends who are to be seated in spe-
cially designated pews, a card (approximately two by three inches)
may be enclosed, with "Pew No." engraved and the number filled in by
hand. The style matches that of the invitation.
The more usual and less (>xpensi\e custom is for the mother of the
bride and the mother of the bridegroom each to write on her personal
visiting card the number of the pew that each member of the family and
each intimat(> fricMul is to occupy.
0^:^cA^vu>y
WT^ITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
If the bride and groom want their friends to know what their address
Wedding announcements
When the number of guests who can be accommodated at the marriage
service or the reception is limited, announcements are sent to those
-MadElcine flnnE
hi
Washington, T1. C
58
SOCIAL NOTES AND INVITATIONS
Or cards in the same form as those used with wedding invitations may
be enclosed.
59
\\TirrE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
company
ipany at a small dance
SOCIAL NOTES AND INVITATIONS
invitation comes. The full first name, rather than initials, is used, and the
name of the state is also written out in full. A return address should
appear on the back flap of the envelope.
the cards on which they are engraved are usually somewhat smaller.
tion. This is true whether the rest of the invitation is fully engraved or
is a fill-in "card of general invitation" ( see page 62)
61
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
company at
on
at o clock
usually placed first. Or if one is a great deal older, her name may head
62
SOCXA.L NOTES AND INVITATIONS
HANDWRITTEN INVITATIONS
When the formal invitation to dinner or luncheon is handwritten in-
63
MTUTE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
Informal invitations
VISITING-CARD INVITATIONS
For an informal dance, a tea to meet a guest, or bridge, a lady may use
her ordinary visiting card. Because the Post Office will not accept ver\'
INFORMALS
Informals (small folding cards engraved with your name) may also be
used for invitations. The invitation is written as shown at right.
On informal in\'itations it is correct to put "regrets only" instead of
R.S.V.P. if you prefer.
64
SOCIAL NOTES AND INVITATIONS
\0 WvOjcA-
i
1 350 i' Vfluison Avenue
65
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
January 2
Dear Mrs. Steele
Will you and Mr. Steele have dinner icith us on Thursday, the
seventh of January, at eight o'clock?
Hoping so much to see you then, I am
Very sincerely,
Caroline Robinson Town
Dear Phyllis
Will you and John lunch icith us this coming Saturday, at one o'clock?
Looking foruxird to seeing you.
Affectionately,
Caroline
January 5
Dear Mrs. Town
We would be delighted to have dinner with you on Thursday the
seventh at eight o'clock.
Thank you for thinking of us.
Sincerely yours,
Leah Steele
Dear Caroline
We are so sorry that wc cannot accept your kind invitation for
Saturday because of another engagement.
Thank you for thinking of us, and I hope to sec you soon.
Sincerely,
Phyllis
RECALLING INVITATIONS
If invitations have to be recalled because of illness or for some other
reason, the following forms are correct. They are always printed instead
of engraved —there being no time for engraving. In an emergency the
message may be handwritten or given by telephone.
66
SOCIAL NOTES AND INVITATIONS
The form of acceptance or regret depends upon the form of the invita-
tion received, for the degree of formality or informality must be the
same. On the telephone, of course, this presents no problems, but for
the handwritten answer there are definite formulas. Once learned, the
formal reply is easiest to write, because no changes or embellishments
are necessary other than in the names and the dates.
lowing form may be used with the substitution of "a dance," etc., for
"dinner."
for dinner
on Monday, the tenth of December
at eight o'clock
Note that in the first form the full name, including "Jr." when appropri-
ate, must be used, whereas in the second, "Mr. and Mrs. Johnson's" is
suflBcient,
67
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
When you write your answer, repeat the same order of names that
appeared on the invitation.
Acceptance: Regret:
Mr. and Mrs. Robert Gilding, Jr. Mr. and Mrs. Richard Brown
accept with pleasure regret that they are unable to accept
Mr. and Mrs. Smith's Mr. and Mrs. Smith's
kind invitation for kind invitation for
Tuesday, the first of June Tuesday, the first of June
68
SOCIAL NOTES AND IN'\'ITATIONS
Visiting-card replies:
14 Water Street
69
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
there is ample time, you may w rite a short note, giving the reason and
your apologies.
Sometimes vou mav refuse an invitation for perfectly legitimate
reasons and then find that circumstances ha\e changed and you can
attend after all. If the affair is a party inxolving a limited number, such
as for bridge, a theater party, or a seated dinner, it is best not to say
anything. The hostess will surely have filled your place, and it would
only embarrass her if you asked to be "reinstated." However, if the
party is a large reception, a cocktail buffet, a picnic, or anv affair at
which another guest or two would not cause any complications, call
the hostess, explain the situation, and ask if you might change your
regret to an acceptance.
Birth announcements
nearest and dearest friends and relati\'es as soon as the proud father or
delighted grandparents can get to the telephone. Announcement cards
are sent to their own friends and those of the grandparents who are
close to the familv.
One announcement consists simplv of a
of the nicest tvpes of birth
very small card with the baby's name and birth date on it, tied with a
white or pastel ribbon to the upper margin of the "Mr. and Mrs." card
of the parents.
A large variety of commerciallv designed announcement cards with
space for the baby's name, date of birth, and parents' names to be writ-
July lenih
47 Pace Place
71
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
ten in by hand are also available. Those which include such data as the
baby's weight and length and foolish phrasing or cov designs are better
left on the rack. The simplest card is the best.
In the week follo\\'ing the birth, the father may send a release to the
localnewspapers announcing the event: "Mr. and Mrs. Robert Mead-
ows of 202 Park Avenue, New York City, announce the birth of a son,
Robert, Jr. on July 10, 1968, at Doctors' Hospital. Thev have one daugh-
ter, Jane, 4. Mrs. Meadows is the former Miss Marv Gilding." Or "A
daughter, Mary was born to Mr. and Mrs. John Phillips of 19
Jane,
Maple Avenue, on February 9 at St. Joseph's Hospital. Mrs.
Hillsdale,
Phillips is the former Miss Mary Star of New Haven, Connecticut." The
same announcement may be sent to the editor of the church newsletter
or bulletin.
Engagement announcements
Usually a few days —perhaps a week—before the formal announcement
the engaged couple notify close relatives and friends of their engage-
ment, usuallv by phone or letter.
you wish. If you live in the suburbs of a large city or in a small town, a
copy should be sent to the local paper (which may be a weekly). Others
go to the paper of your choice in the nearbv city and to the paper sug-
gested b\' the bridegroom's famih' in their locality.
The announcement should be sent to the papers a week or more in
adxance of the date on which you wish it to appear, and that date
should be clearly stated so that the announcement comes out simultan-
eously in all the papers. If the couple wish to keep their engagement a
surprise untilit is announced at an engagement party, the new.spaper
72
SOCIAL NOTES AND INVITATIONS
William Arthur Currier, son of Mr. and Mrs. Arthur Jamison Currier
of Atlanta, Georgia. A June wedding is planned.
Miss Johnson was graduated from Bentlev Junior College. She made
her debut in 1966 at the Mistletoe Ball in Chicago, and in May will
complete her nurse's training at Atlanta General Hospital. Dr. Currier
was graduated from the Hill School, Yale University, and the Yale
Medical School. He completed his residency at the Atlanta General
Hospital and is now in practice in that city.
Miss Johnson is also the daughter of the late Herbert Coles John-
son. . . .
If the parents ore divorced: The mother of the bride usually makes
the announcement, but the name of the other parent should be included.
Mrs. JonesFarnham announces the engagement of her daughter. Miss
Cynthia Farnham. Miss Farnham is also
. . . the daughter of Mr.
Henry Farnham of Worcester, Mass. . . .
Mr. and Mrs. Samuel Harvey announce the engagement of Mrs. (or
Mr.) Harvev's daughter, Miss Jane Barber Cutler (Harvev) to. . . .
Miss Cutler (Harvey) is also the daughter of Mr. David Soames Cutler
(or Mrs. James Little) of Meiilo Park, Calif.
If the bride is adopted: If the bride has been brought up since baby-
hood by her foster parents and uses their last name, there is no reason
to mention the fact that she is adopted. If she joined the family later
in life, howe\er, and has retained her own name, it is proper to say:
73
\^'RrrE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
Death notices
Notices of death should go to morning and evening papers in a large
city, and to the local paper (daily or weekly) in towns or suburbs. They
usually contain the date of death, names of immediate family, place
and time of funeral, and, frequently, a request that a contribution be
given to a charity instead of flowers sent to the deceased. When this is
done, the sum is sent to the charity with a note saving, "This donation
is sent in loving memory of Mrs. Rov Haskell, of 10 Park Place, Mount
Vernon." The address of the sender should appear on the note. The
charity sends a notice of the contribution to the family of the deceased,
and an acknowledgment to the donor. The latter in no way takes the
place of a thank-you note from the berea^•ed family — one of whom must
write in person to express their appreciation. The notice may be tele-
—
CoxsTANTiNE Marv Phillips, on March 19, 1964. Beloved wife of
Henry S. Constantine, devoted mother of Henry S. Constantine, Jr.
and Barbara Constantine Franklin, sister of Dorothy P. Hill. Reposing
at the Frederick Carter Funeral Home, Farmingdale, Mass., Monday
and Tuesday, 2:00 p.m.-9:00 p.m. Funeral Wednesday, 11:00 a.m.,
at Christ Church, Farmingdale. In lieu of flowers, please send dona-
tions to the New York Cancer Fund.
Occasionally the notice reads "Funeral private" and neither time nor
place is given. Very intimate friends are given this information, either
74
SOCIAL XOTES AXD INVITATIONS
^^ta>e^
c^^t^
2. True or false:
a. You may telephone an invitation to a christening.
b. acceptable to tvpe your answer to a formal dinner invitation.
It is
75
1
6
Hovj to w^rite
for information
Here are the simple, basic rules for writing letters of inquiry
confusion and wasted time and money that results from poorly written
letters of inquiry. What can go wrong?
Unless vou get straight to the point — don't be vague, please — several
things could happen
1. Your letter won't be read.
2. The reader might have to write back and ask you what you meant;
this is sometimes embarrassing, sometimes insulting.
3. The answer might give far more detail than you wanted, because
the respondent is guessing what you want.
None of these results is good. Each wastes time and causes delays. So
make things simple:
State in the opening sentence the subject of your inquiry.
For each item of information you want, use a separate paragraph.
Unless you're a.sking for confidential information, and need to
justify your request, don't overplav why you want the information.
Few people care what your reason is for making the request or how
82
HOW TO WRITE FOR INFORMATION
Dear Sirs:
Just the other day mv neighbor, Mrs. Myrtle, mentioned how nice a
table would look on my patio. Not just any table, she said, but a nice
wooden one. Of course, wood would be necessary to go with the siding
of the house and all the trees in the yard.
—
My husband planted those trees years ago about twenty, I guess.
It's so sad he didn't live to see them grow.
The salesmanager will have a great time with that letter asking for
a medium-size wooden table that doesn't cost too much. It would be
interesting to know what he did, but he won't tell.
83
\\'RITE BETTER, SPEAX BETTER
knowing how vour ad\ertising strategy the copv platform, media mix, —
—
and frequency has changed oyer the past five years, and the reasons
for the changes.
Since the article will be illustrated, it would also be helpful if you
could send reproduction proofs of different ads that illustrate both vour
current campaign and that run five years ago.
We'll certainly appreciate any information vou can give us.
Many thanks,
Phrases like that are a red flag; they offer the reader an excuse not to do
what you want him to do.
Now how to write a letter of inquiry, you'll want to
that you've seen
—
know how to answer one especiallv one that is like the vague inquiry
about wooden tables.
Letters of inquiry come from three basic sources:
People who are seriously interested in your product or services.
Those who are interested but are shopping around.
Those who are sort of interested but mostly just curious.
When you don't know what prompts the inquiry, you must assume
the person is interested but shopping. Therefore, your answer should
go out before the competition's, and it should sell.
MBe Answer the questions — you can figure out what they are
specific. if
— and give enough detail to convince the person that your product or
service is the best available. If \()u want to include more detail than \'()u
Be polite. True, many inquiries are not well thought-out. But the per-
son who made the in(|uiry didn't know he was vague, and if he knew
84
THE INQUIRING STUDENT
One form of correspondence that bulks large in company files con-
sists of letters from students, requesting information for class proj-
ects. Here are some samples of good incjuiry letters from high school
and college students. Note that all of them identify the writer and
explain the reason for the request: This is important because (a)
companies are sometimes reluctant to release information about
themselves unless thev know how it's going to be used, and (b)
knowing the age level of the writer helps guide them in sending the
appropriate literature.
Gentlemen:
company and find out how it conducts business. Can you tell me:
1. How long have you been in business?
2. How manv branches do vou have?
3. Approximately how manv machines do vou sell each vear?
4. What kinds of machines do you sell?
5. How manv people do you employ?
If you can send any other information that would give me a
Truly yours.
Gentlemen:
I am the editor of the Clarion, North College's student newspaper.
In a forthcoming issue, we are planning an article on electronic
translating machines. The article will stress recent developments in
Since the deadline for the article is August 20, we would appre-
ciate receiving the pictures bv August 12.
85
WBITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
as much about vour business as you do, he'd be in it. So, assume the
questions are in good faith and be patient.
sulting services when you are seeking a new job. I say "assume" because,
frankly, vour letter was vague and I can't be sure.
The attached sheets explain our service in detail. I suggest you read
them and if you are still interested, call my secretary and she will try
to make an appointment for vou.
I would like to point out that our fee is payable when we are con-
That letter was written by a guy who's had it all his own way for too
long. Otherwise, he'd have written it this way:
so lunch hour is usually the best time to chat. If that isn't convenient for
you, please call me and we'll set another time.
Thanks very much for contacting me. I'll look forward to meeting
and talking with you next Thursday.
Cordially,
86
HOW TO WRITE FOR IXFORMATIOX
I've enclosed a brochure which describes how these tires are made,
and the mileage and safety advantages for you and your family. Also
enclosed are the names of dealers in your area.
We believe that these tires are the best available anywhere. When
you've driven on them we know vou'll agree.
Thanks for writing.
Happy Motoring!
There may be times when you have to refuse information — for com-
petitive and other reasons. When that happens, be honest. Don't make
excuses. Just say you can't release the information and tell why:
Our safetv department records the number and cost of accidents, but
we don't know the man-hours lost and their cost in lost productivity.
Sorry I can't be of more help.
Cordially,
In Bear Creek Orchards, Oregon, Harry and David are owners of The
Fruit-of-the-Month Club. They answer inquiries in such interesting
ways, it makes you want to ask a question just to get their answer!
Recently a customer's monthly fruit package had been broken into
before deHverv. The fruit that had not been taken was spoiled. She
87
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
Since the shipping season for peaches has ended, we'll send Crisp
Mountain Apples at Thanksgiving in replacement.
88
How to complain
and get action
You feel you've been gypped and you want justice. But to
pointers and sample letters will show you the best way to
89
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTE2^
this out before we sell the product, and it's included in the price. In
other words, the warranty is an insurance policy, and the customer pays
for that insurancewhen he pavs for the product."
The same man did add, however: "If a product becomes defective
a few weeks after the warranty has run out, we may make the adjust-
ment for the sake of good will."
located.
If the street address isn't given, however, and the manufacturer isn't a
large one, the Post Office is likely to return your letter for lack of suffi-
cient address. But all is not lost. You can find out the address of almost
any company in the country by using your telephone. Call the Informa-
tion Operator of the city in question (dial its area code plus 555-1212).
When you reach her, ask for the telephone number of the company you
90
HOW TO COMPLAIN AND GET ACTION
want. When she gives it to you, ask in your most pleasant voice for the
address of the firm. Although operators are instructed not to give ad-
dresses, they will usually do so.
example, the executive office, the service office, or the sales office —ask
for the executive office. The executive office will generally know where
to forward anv letter sent to it.
This, however, is not always the best course. In man\' cases, the presi-
dent will never see complaint letters addressed to him. His secretary
will simplv route them to the proper department. And you've wasted
a couple of days while the letter is in transit to the correct department.
In other cases, however, the president does take a close interest in
complaint mail. The head of the correspondence department of one
large public utility explained what happens in his company: "The
quickest way to get a response is by writing to our president. Although
usually he won't answer it himself, he insists that we file a report on the
disposition of the case. You can be sure that we handle his letters more
promptly than the routine ones. We even have a couple of expert cor-
respondents who handle mail which he wants answered."
As a general rule, then, the following may be sound practice: If you're
not in a great hurry for an answer, write to the president of the com-
pany. If he doesn't see the letter, all you've lost is time. But he may take
an interest in customer correspondence and, in that case, you may get a
more satisfactory answer.
Again, there are two schools of thought. Some effective letter writers
91
^VRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
situation. If that information is lacking, all the anger in the world wdll
get you nowhere. The company will simply write back asking you coolly
for the information it needs.
A calm, reasoned letter that presents all the facts will probably get the
same or better results than an irate one.
state and federal regulations. Here's what the spokesman for one public
utility admitted: "If a customer threatens that he'll complain to the state
I have made this letter long only because I did not have the time
to make it shorter. —Pascal
92
HOW TO COMPLAIN AND GET ACTION
more before we can find out what they want us to do about it. In the
end, we're irritated, and we're less inclined to be as helpful." In short.
be short.
lowing information
1. The model number or a detailed description of the product.
2. The name and address of the store from which vou bought it.
3. The date of your purchase.
4. A copy of the bill of sale, plus a copy of paid invoices for any ser-
vice rendered on the product since vou bought it.
letter to the companv and the Jate of the last letter vou received from
them — as well as the name of the person who wrote you.
Gentlemen:
I am angrv, disgusted, and will never believe anyone who sells or
represents the XYZ Company. I need not vou that the best way to
tell
lose future sales is to misrepresent a product; and I'll also tell you that
93
WRITE BETTEB, SPEAK BETTER
if I could get mv hands on the salesman who sold this bike to me, I'd
hit him.
When bought the bike from the Anderson Department Store, Main
I
March of this year, I was told that this was the best
Street, Jonesville, in
bike on the market, and that parts would be easv to obtain.
As you will note, there is a box along with this letter. Inside the box
is the broken part, which is the cause of all the trouble. [Note: If you
know the name of a broken part, mention it.] After having talked to
seven repair shops in my citv, I am furious at being told: "The com-
pany doesn't have replacement parts," and "The big stores sell this
bike, and we repairmen get the gripes. It shouldn't be on the market."
I am asking that you either replace the enclosed part, or send me a
94
HOW TO COMPLAIN AND GET ACTION
Respectfully,
James Christopher
game; the company would send a new frame if he could give the model
number listed on the instruction sheet. Mr. Gerber replied:
95
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
The approach in both these letters was courteous and friendly. And
Mr. Gerber got his frame.
a good letter because it states the problem clearK' and succinctly and
at the same time shows his strong indignation:
stallers had to return seyeral times, hi some areas sanding was oyer-
looked; in others, dry wall taping was not used, and molding was left
incompleted.
[The next few paragraphs listed additional defects.]
Mr. Blank, I had your seryice people come to the house at least six
times because of leaks from the bathroom to the floor below. There
were denials of responsibility. Children were blamed, etc. And in each
case, it was finally established that the installation was faulty. At this
writing, water is again leaking to the floor below when the shower is
used.
Frankly, I belieye I haye reached the point of no return in dealing
with your local staffs.
For a job that costs about $2500, your performance has been out-
96
HOW TO COMPLAIN AND GET ACTION
rageously bad. I expect the courtesy of a prompt reply from you, and
the necessary inspections and corrections from qualified personnel.
Sincerely yours,
The president did send various executives to view the shambles, and
some corrective measures were taken. As this paragraph is written,
some two years after the letter was written, the work has still not been
completed satisfactorilv, but it is considerably further along, and with
one or two more letters, this man may eventually achieve a completely
satisfactory job.
Gentlemen
Please send me Part No. 21 — the heating rod — for vour broiler unit,
Model 23.
You may bill me or send it C.O.D.
Sincerely,
Gentlemen
I should like to order the following items of glassware from vour
Sven Hagstrom smoked crystal set:
three old-fashioned glasses
one piece of stemware
two snifters
Please bill my charge account, No. 20-321.
Sincerely,
When you're not sure of the model or the serial number, give an)-
Gentlemen
Can you supply me with a cutting-blade unit for vour Quik-Shear
Lawn Mower?
The mower is about thirty vears old. The cutting blades are thirty-
97
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTEai
six inches long, and are both welded and bolted to the mower frame.
If the part is available, please send it C.O.D.
Sincerely,
Gentlemen:
Can vou send me Item No. 57, the lock-nut washer for your Tripod
Model Mark II?
The item w as left out of the carton in which the tripod came.
purchased the tripod on March 3,
I at the Community Camera Store,
45 Main Street, Centerville, Oregon.
Sincerely,
Dear Sirs:
handle broken.
May I suggest that you examine your shipping carton with an eye
to providing more padding adjacent to the area of the handle. I sus-
pect the skimpiness of the padding accounted for the breakage.
Sincerely,
Dear Sir:
Your store failed to deliver the order described below, which was
scheduled for delivery to our home on January 17.
Items ordered: 54" mattress; 54" bed spring; bed frame
from Dept. 66
All items ordered
325-45
Sales Slip No.
Revolving Charge Account 101-12
Please take the following action:
Arrange to have your truck deliver the merchandise to our home on
Friday, January 31.
Confirm, either by mail or phone, that you have received this letter
and will take the action requested. You may call me at 617-3224, any
day between 8:00 and 12:00 a.m.
Sincerely,
98
HOW TO COMPLAIN AND GET ACTION
Dear Sir:
UNJUSTIFIABLE OVERCHARGES
When you feel vou have been overcharged, write to the top man at the
store. Give him as many details as are needed to explain the situation,
but try to be brief and factual.
The following letter is one which a customer sent to a store when he
felt he had been unjustly overcharged. The important things to note
in this complaint are:
It reviews the problem.
It requests specific action, i.e., a request for a refund.
It provides relevant documentation.
99
THREE THINGS TO DO
WHEN YOU CAN'T PAY A BILL
If the bill vou've run up is so high that vou've given up trving to
pay it, then it's time to take vourself in hand. If your dehnquency is
explanation.
Perhaps the best way to handle this situation is to make a firm
resolution to pay back a certain amount each week or month —no
matter how small. Then vou might send a letter in which vou:
1. Apologize for your delinquenct/. A sincere apology will make
the credit manager feel that you're as worried as he is, and that
you're just as determined that vou do the right thing as he is.
mers, some stores will send them a form which states that the signer
agrees to repay a certain amount regularly, plus a small interest
charge. Unless vou need this club over your head in order to force
yourself to repav the bill, don't sign it — at least, not without the
advice of a competent lawyer. You have nothing to gain, and you'll
lose the interest. The following letter will serve as a model:
100
HOW TO COMPLAIN AND GET ACTION
the name of the store president. He gave me the name of Joseph Jones.
On June 29, I wrote to Mr. Jones. I have never received an answer.
Recently, I called vour head([uarters. The switchboard operator told
me that you, rather than Mr. Jones, are the president. Mr. Jones, she
told me, is responsible for out-of-town shipments.
Thus,assume that Mr. Jones was probablv responsible for the over-
I
charge, which mav account for the fact that I did not hear from him.
I am enclosing a copy of my letter to Mr. Jones. I trust that you will
This letter achieved the results. The customer got the refund. The
moral? Don't give up until you've exhausted all the possibilities.
Gentlemen:
Please send me the forms necessary for opening a charge accoimt at
your store.
Sincerely,
Or, vou can send in the information the store will probably require,
and let the store fill out the form. You will probably want to do this
1. The names of other stores where you have charge accounts, and
the serial numbers of those accounts.
2. The name of at least one bank with which you do business.
3. One other credit reference, such as a Diner's Club or American
Express Credit Card.
101
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
Gentlemen:
I should like to order the plant holder —item 32G—advertised in your
Spring Catalog.
I should also like to open a charge account with vour store, and have
this item billed to my account.
have charge accounts with the following stores
I
Gentlemen:
I believe your statement of March 3 is in error.
If you examine your records, I think you will find that I paid you
102
HOW TO COMPLAIN AND GET ACTION
Dear Sirs:
Sincerely,
Mary Graham Cline
(Mrs. Martin Cline)
Account No. 456 890
2. Pretend that you bought a new Howitzer III car from the World Motor
Company. It has a whine in the engine, but the dealer insists that it is just
"in your mind" and he refuses to do anything about it. Write a sample letter
to the president of World Motor Company that you think would get results.
103
8
Writing your
public officials
it's the quality of the letters, not their quantity, that influ-
104
WRITING YOUR PUBLIC OFFICIALS
formed officials and private citizens have taken the time and trouble to
write me setting forth basic facts meriting consideration."
Another senator, in an.swer to the first question, said: "It is the quality
of the letters. Bv that I mean the person who gives the reasom [italics
."
the editor's], for his position is definitely more helpful. . .
far greater importance. Much quantity mail can be inspired mail. The
least effective kind is a form that has obviously been received from
someone else by the sender or which is clipped from a newspaper
[itaHcs the editor's]. Nevertheless, quantity is important on a given
issue as it indicates that large numbers of people may be affected one
Two other congressmen indicated that the volume of mail will cause
them to explore an issue more closely. Said one : "I think the quantity of
mail influences my political thinking about an issue only sHghtlw It
105
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
5. Legibility.
6. Brevity.
106
WRITING YOUR PUBLIC OFFICIALS
Finally, when the legislators were asked whether thev preferred that
mail be sent to their oflBces or their homes, without exception thev pre-
ferred their offices.
Sir:
I strongly iirge you to assist in having Bill H.R. 1811 passed.
would be of considerable help to those, like me, who are handi-
It
graph or two.
c. Avoid copying a form letter provided by a club or association.
You might use it as a basis, but put your letter in vour own words.
Keep
a. it short. Congressmen are reluctant to wade through
more than a single page.
b. Make it legible — a typed letter is easiest to read. If vou don't
have access to a typewriter, be sure your handwriting is clear.
107
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
A little humor can make a letter stand out from the run of corre-
spondence. Avoid, however (as this letter does), sarcasm. Cutting
humor makes representatives bleed, and a bleeding congressman is an
angry congressman.
Madam:
I am opposed to the recent action of the House Health and Safety
Committee in approving H.R. 4731.
This bill will repeal a section of the 1906 Food, Drug, and Cosmetic
Act which keeps candymakers from using "non-nutritive ingredients"
in their products.
I do not wish to eat talc when I eat candy. Maybe talc has some
nutritive value, but being a conservative, I don't like getting used to it.
While normally I vote Republican, I voted for you in the last elec-
tion because I felt that you had a slight edge over the Republican
incumbent.
I trust that you will continue to follow through with the admirable
work you have done. And I am confident that vou will do what you can
to keep candy adulteration from becoming legal.
Verv truly yours,
The personal touch in the following letter certainly helps its effective-
108
WHITING YOUR PUBLIC OFFICIALS
ness. The congressman's wife probably has the same kind of complaint.
Sir:
I feel that Air Pollution Control is one of the most important issues
facing us today-
It is more dangerous than such diseases as lung cancer and heart
disease because it affects not just many thousands, but millions of people.
My Venetian blinds, window sills, floors, etc., have to be swept and
washed with soap and water daily. Inhahng this soot must be detri-
mental to our health.
Won't you please see what can be done to eliminate this serious
condition? It is vitallv important.
Sincerely,
The next letter enclosed a newspaper chpping about the writer's topic.
This is an effective way of dramatizing a letter. If the clipping is a small
one, paste it to a separate sheet of paper so that it doesn't get lost, and
put it behind — not in front of — vour letter, so that the representative
doesn't get distracted by the clipping before he reads your letter.
109
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
My waitresses don't want to tell anybody their tips and they will resent
having to do so. If I give them tax receipts instead of paychecks, they
are going to quit. I won't be able to con\'ince them that I have to do it.
I run my own place and keep my own books but I've got all I can
ALTERNATIVE LETTERS
My dear Mr. Smith:
The Tax on Tips clause in H.R. 1 will do severe damage to my busi-
ness, andhope you will oppose it.
I
110
WRITING YOUR PUBLIC OFFICIALS
the same idea as the model letter. The next sample emphasizes the effect
the bill would have on employes
The final alternative letter emphasizes why the writer thinks a differ-
entmethod of handling the measure would be superior.
court reporters who sell transcripts of trials. They, and not the courts,
must report this extra money.
Don't you agree that it's unfair to single us out for special treatment?
I hope that you will vote against this measure because it is discrimina-
111
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
Thev simplv don't have time (and, some would argue, the powers of
concentration to wade through a long letter. Therefore, if you want to
)
get something off vour chest, by all means put it in writing and then —
trim the letter down to its essentials. You'll get a much better hearing.
To the ABC's of letter writing we discussed in chapter 2, add a
knowledge of the issue vou're wTiting about, an individual approach,
and a clear statement of what you want your elected representative to
The Civil Rights bill will make a barber cut a specific person's hair,
force a woman to give a massage to a specific person. This, I believe, is
112
I
9
Writing to newspapers,
magazines, and TV
You may want to air an opinion, inform your neighbors, or
just see your own words in print. You may want a television
this chapter shows you how to write letters that editors will
Must you be a target? Does it do any good to try shooting at the hunt-
ers? It does. The mass media welcome letters from the public for a va-
riety of reasons. Sometimes it's even possible to turn the tables and exert
judged from Time magazine's issuance of a small book for its own em-
ployes who answer reader mail. A few lines from the introduction to the
Time manual will explain how they handle correspondence:
"Of the hundreds of letters received by the editors every week, Time
publishes only twenty-five to thirty in the Letters column. These few
are chosen for a variety of reasons, but primarilv for their interest and
readableness. Letters on significant issues, especially those written by
113
\ATyTE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
Time's handling of the news get particular attention because the editors
sometimes Hke to publish them with a note to explain what Time
sources were, to clarify misinterpretations, to answer questions, to cor-
rect errors. Bright, amusing letters are always welcome, of course, to
give the column balance, and to indicate the kind of bright, intelligent
readership which Time has."
quently."
Be reasonable. A letter which says, "You're all wet," will not receive
nearly as much attention as one which savs, "You're all wet. Here's
why," and then gives the reasons. As one editor said, "You should say
what you think in the first sentence, and \\ hy in the second sentence."
114
WRITING TO NEWSPAPERS, MAGAZINES, AND TV
sounds too much like a puff — as if one of our own editors wrote it."
2. Get your letter off early. Often, good letters have to be rejected
for publication because they've arrived too late for inclusion. For a
monthly magazine, try to send your letter out within the first week or
two )0u get your copv. For a weekly, if you live any great
after dis-
I read 's article with pride and shame — pride for my native
land that I, too, dearlv love. But shame — that so manv of us "natives"
115
W'RITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
Keep it brief and relevant, and add the hght touch. The editors smiled
when the\" read this one:
In vour January issue, on page 15, an Iowa dentist is shown putting
steel tooth caps on cows. I've lived in that hard grass country, and will
admit that it really would be helpful to cap the cow's teeth with some-
thing that will stand the wear.
But I was a farmer and stockman for "nigh on to 50 years" and I
never saw a cow with front teeth on her upper jaw. Where did your
artist find her? I want to go and see her. I know this new age is faster
than I was accustomed to, but I'll still bet vou don't have upper teeth
in front on anvbody's cow. How about it?
The editors shortened this letter for publication, giving just the high
point of the humor:
was a farmer and stockman for nigh on 50 years, and I never saw
I a
cow w ith front teeth in her upper jaw. Where did vour artist find her? I
Writing to newspapers
sentences. A few of the larger papers will give readers more leeway.
The New York Times, for example, has a maximum rule of eight hun-
dred words, which is more than a full-sized column. A letter of this
116
WRITING TO NEWSPAPERS, MAGAZINES, AND TV
it's violentlv opposed to an editorial stand that we've taken. A letter that
begins, 'How stupid can your editors be?' is more exciting, more likely
to be published, than one which says, 'May I take the Hberty of dis-
agreeing with your position.'
we were to receive a lot of letters from the residents of an area that was
about to be demolished, we'd be likely to print a lot of them, because
we'd feel that this is something of widespread interest. On the other
hand, if we receive only a couple of letters, we may or may not publish
them. It's a case of the squeaking wheel getting the grease."
Therefore, if vou feel stronglv about an issue, particularly a local
issue which will affect \'ou and your neighbors, urge your friends to
write their own mail on the subject.
Don't send it all in on the same day, for it will seem too much like a
11'
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
evident that anyone wdth such a high batting average might have some
useful suggestions about how to get letters pubhshed.
He did, indeed. When contacted, he said that letter writing to pub-
lications was one of his avocations. And he offered a number of sus;-
gestions which are printed here, because they are vahd whether you're
planning to correspond with magazines or with newspapers.
4. All letters should be sober and rational for their best effect. The
letter of commendation should not gush, the letter of protest should not
rage, the letter of complaint should not whine.
6. After writing your letter, let it cool overnight. And then ask your-
self: Will I want to see this over my name in print next week?
Sir:
me registered 99 degrees.
118
I
I
HOW TO HIT THE EDITOR HARDEST
Over a good many years as editor of a farm magazine, I have re-
makes \'ou feel better. The letters that have some thought to ex-
press, and that do it in a calm, unshrill way, are the ones that pene-
trate the editor's hide and really "get to" him. A sincere letter like
this can have more impact on us than you might ever guess
whether or not it winds up in print in the Letters column.
2. Disagree all vou \\ ant with a statement, an idea, or a point of
view, but don't attack the editor's motives. You only get his de-
fenses up when you attack his motives; and you certainly won't in-
in the hectic days common to anv lively editorial office. It will get
Besides, there are some mightv good ideas in that mail, some of the
best that editors come across anywhere. There's stimulus there, too,
So please write, even oftener —we love it. All I'm trying to do
here is help vou "register" when vour letter arrives, and I assume
that's what vou want. More power to you.
— Carroll Streeter, Farm Journal
119
WBTTE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
Your newspaper reports that the St. Louis Citizens Committee for
Nuclear Information says that three thousand children in Utah and
Nevada have received excessive radiation doses and that about a dozen
will have thyroid cancer.
The federal government explodes the bombs. The federal govern-
ment establishes radiation controls. But the people of the United States,
who have paid taxes for the bombs and controls, do not protest.
It is a matter of common sense: You can't explode nuclear bombs
without people feeling some effects at least a few hundred miles away.
And what about us who live in other parts of the countrv. Do we
protest? No. What's the use? Parental common weight
sense has little
in the face of scientists, and the Atomic Energy Commission has re-
assured us that all is well.
Now nuclear tests in the air are banned, but, for many children, it is
too late.The tragedy is that people are helpless before their govern-
ments, and when they are not helpless, they are defrauded.
you should understand a bit about how networks handle their mail.
All mail comes into the mail room, where it's sorted according to
addressee. If it's addressed to an individual, it goes directly to him.
120
WRITING TO NEWSPAPERS, MAGAZINES, AND TV
letters, which will be discussed further on. ) If it's addressed to the net-
work, or to a specific program, it will, in most cases, go to an office
who's been with the network for several years, and knows her way
around well enough to answer most letters intelligently and to route the
the belief that as a responsible citizen you should know that some
."
idiot is sending out letters over your signature. Cordially. . .
12]
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
Tickets for programs If you'd like tickets for a specific network show,
write to the Audience Information Bureau at network headquarters as
far in advance as possible. If you don't particularly care which show you
see, but you do want to secsome programs on certain days, tell them
so. If vou do have program preferences, list them in order of preference.
Photo requests With few exceptions, the networks will not send out
photographs of performers. However, there is a simple solution to this
problem. Always send your photo requests to the person whose picture
you want, in care of the program on which he appears. Send the letter
to your local station or the national network. There letters will be passed
122
WRITING TO NEWSPAPERS, MAGAZINES, AND TV
Music Requests for the names of theme songs or other musieal ma-
terial can be sent directly to the network's Audience Information
Bureau. They'll dig up the information and send it to you.
Educational requests Here are two letters asking for program ma-
terial for educational and research purposes:
Gentlemen
We are conducting a Reading Workshop for selected high school
teachers from the state of Alabama, and are collecting materials for
distribution to the group. The number of participants is thirty.
Gentlemen:
I would be greatly interested in reading the script to a program
televised yesterday evening (over your station in San Franci.sco) which
reported on a convention in Chicago of pilots who had participated
in the raids in August 1945.
on Hiroshima and Nagasaki
I missed seeing program myself, but I feel it would be most
this
useful to me, as I am engaged in research that bears on problems of
the psychology of nuclear armament.
I would be glad to reimburse you for the expenses that this request
might entail.
Sincerely,
123
FOUR WAYS TO PRESSURE THE NETWORKS
While network executives are admittedly sheltered from viewer
mail, they do feel the effect of a volume of mail on any given sub-
ject. The following suggestions will help increase the weight of
your complaints or compliments on specific programs or commer-
cials and make it more likely that the network will respond.
4. Make sure that vou know what you're talking about. It is not
unusual for the networks to receive letters complaining about shows
that have appeared on other networks.
One final point is worth mentioning. Networks and stations, for all
their faults, are not utterly spineless. They do have some sense of
responsibility to the public, and when they are bold enough to step
ters. If you see a television show which you think is in bad taste, or
unfair, or poor for whatever reason, by all means let the people re-
sponsible know about it. But remember that your letter will have
greater weight if it is rational and thoughtful, not just angry.
124
WRITING TO NEWSPAPERS, MAGAZINES, AND T\'
Gentlemen:
I would appreciate some information concerning your television pro-
Dear Sirs:
Dear Mr. :
125
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
essary ones. (I am not a food nut, incidentally, but I feel that sweets
should not be emphasized unduly.)
Sincerely,
The producer of the show sent an answer explaining that he does not
have control over commercials as long as they are in good taste and not
truly harmful.
Here's a letter protesting poor programing practices, sent to the
owner of a local tele\ision station
Dear Sir:
And here's one protesting a program that the writer felt showed poor
taste. It was sent to a network president.
Sir:
while I cannot expect you to censor every program, I can hope that
you will encourage your staff to be a little more intelligent, a little less
sleazy. We look to you for entertainment and information; you gave us
cheapness.
Please do whatever you can to see that this sort of program is not
repeated in the future.
Sincerely,
126
WRITING TO NEWSPAPERS, MAGAZINES, AND TV
And finally, here's a plea to save a program. Chances are slim, but
enough like it might cause a network to review its decision:
Dear Sir:
b. Dear Sir:
12'
10
Applying to schools
and colleges
Getting into school or college can be a difficult proposition
these days, but you can smooth the way for your child or
128
APPLYING TO SCHOOLS AND COLLEGES
your child at this point, since the letter will, in all probability, be
thrown out as soon as the catalog is sent. You can send the letter to the
Gentlemen:
Please send me the current catalog for your school.
Sincerely,
After you've gone over the catalogs and selected schools to which
you'd like to apply, it's time to send a more detailed letter.
mChikrs Age: Include the age of the child if he's quite young. Most
private schools with a first grade have a minimal age at which they'll
Dear Sirs:
Sincerely,
Dear Sir:
129
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
Please send us the proper application forms and any other relevant
information for parents of prospective candidates for admission.
Very truly yours.
Dear Sir:
The headmaster who provided the last letter commented that "it
the application forms himself. This is not an unusual procedure, and it's
a good way to get him involved in his own future. Fundamentally, the
child need do no more than ask for the application form. But he mav
want to add a few flourishes. Don't discourage him; they won't hurt
his chances. Here are letters that youngsters have sent to schools:
Gentlemen
I should like to obtain application forms for your school.
I am presently in the eighth grade at the Centerville School. Will you
please send me your entrance requirements and examination dates.
Very truly yours.
Dear Sirs:
The application form which the school sends you may cover only one
sheet of paper, or it may go on for three or four. Diflferent schools will
130
APPLYING TO SCHOOLS AXD COLLEGES
ask different questions, and their decision about accepting your child
will depend on factors peculiar to that school. The n;iost sensible course
to follow in filling out the forms is to be honest. One headmaster told
me, "Some parents lie about their child having had psychiatric help.
There's not much point in trying to conceal it because sooner or later
we find out about it, and it doesn't make the parents look verv good."
Applications to colleges
put it this way: "Too many parents write long letters telling us about
their kids, and at the end, thev ask for the application. It doesn't do any
good how good your child is — we assume you're biased and
to tell us
we don't read it; we simply don't have the time or the interest."
2. Limit yourself to asking one or two major questions, if you have
any."Many people," said one admissions executive, "ask us a tremen-
dous number of detailed questions about the school. Usually, this is
information which they can get from our catalog, and so we frequently
don't even bother to answer the questions. We simply send them the
catalog."
3. Make sure that you're writing to the right school. Arnold Goren,
director of admissions of New York University, gave this example:
"We'll sometimes get applications intended for the State Unix'ersity of
New York. This, of course, just wastes everyone's time."
saying, "I think I may want to be a doctor. Tell me what a doctor's life
is like." Schools are rarely equipped to handle this type of inquiry. If
your child wants information about a career, have him discuss it with
the high school's guidance counselor, or check the library for books on
the vocation he is interested in.
weight. Said one admissions oflBcer: "We have to be like Caesar's wife
1
131
MOTHER GOES TO COLLEGE
If you are a woman and are planning to resume your education
and seek a career after marriage and children, vou will need to
write letters of application to schools and colleges. One of the
following examples covering several typical situations may be used
as a guide. When writing to request an appointment, always address
a specific person bv name. Facultv and stafiF members are listed in
the college catalog which you should obtain beforehand.
Here's a simple request to your former college, asking for a tran-
script of your record. Don't forget to include your maiden name.
The letters that follow are written to the college or university you
hope to enter. They prepare the college oflBcials for your call and
give information about your previous academic background and the
course of study you hope to follow.
Thank you,
132
The first of the following letters gives pertinent personal details;
133
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
THE APPLICATION
Colleges prefer that the student himself, rather than the parent, fill out
the application. An admissions officer told me, "The youngster is going
to be on his own in school, and we want to get as good an idea as
possible of what he's going to be like. Until he arrives on campus, his
application form will represent him, and so he ought to make as good
an impression with his application as he would if he were coming for an
interview."
Judging from the criticisms of many admissions officers, prospective
students aren't too careful about this. Admittedlv, when a youngster's
grades are high, it's not going to count very strongly against him when
his application form looks as if it were used to wipe a windshield. On
the other hand, if he's an average student it may have an effect on the
admission department's overall evaluation of him; the prudent student
will try to have everything possible working for him, not against him.
STEP-BY-STEP PROCEDURE
Keeping these points in mind, you should now pay very close atten-
tion to the following paragraphs. They are adapted from instructions
prepared by New York City's excellent private institution, Columbia
Grammar School. The suggestions were drawn up under the direction
ofHeadmaster James W. Stern for the guidance of Columbia's students.
Because they constitute an extremely knowledgeable and sensible ap-
proach to the process of college application, and because it is broadly
applicable to students in both public and private schools, much of it is
reprinted verbatim.
134
APPLYING TO SCHOOLS AND COLLEGES
Use your own phrasing, but cover all of the following points:
High school.
When you plan to enter college.
Request for Application for Admission.
Request for catalog.
Your name and home address.
Address the letter to Director of Admissions or Admissions Office.
Keep the letter short and direct.
Before you write one single word on the application for admission,
read it over carefully to familiarize yourself with what is requested.
Check carefully for:
2. Can you type the application or are you requested to use vour own
handwriting? If not specifically stated, you may do as you wish.
5. Since all College Board test scores will be reported to the col-
leges in your senior vear —no matter when you took the tests —don't
hesitate to discuss them at any interview.
7. When asked to list secondary schools you have attended, this refers
135
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
RECOMMENDATION FORMS
Certain colleges will send you forms to be filled in by teachers who
have taught you or know you well. It is your responsibility to select the
teacher or teachers whom you want to recommend you.
to the dean he explained, "My wife and I are now separated, and
this leaves me as my sole means of support." — Wall Street Journal
136
APPLYING TO SCHOOLS AND COLLEGES
Before giving the teacher the recommendation form, ask him if he will
be willing to recommend you. If he is, hand him the form and a properly
addressed envelope with a stamp on it. When he has filled out the rec-
ommendation, he will mail it directly to the college.
If you are asked to list teachers who recommend you on the ap-
will
proper time for each college to which you are applying. What the tests
are, and when they are required, can be found in each college's catalog.
or in an "Information to Candidates for Admission" guide which some
colleges send along with the application, or in both.
All information on the College Board Examinations appears in three
quired for each College Board Examination testing program. You can
probably obtain these from your principal or college adviser.
The registration form must reach the College Board by a certain date.
The deadline for each testing date is listed in the "Bulletin of Informa-
tion" which vou have received.
It is wise to make up a "college calendar" on which you note all dead-
fines, including those for applications, interviews, registration, dates of
College Entrance Examination Board exams, etc.
COLLEGE SCHOLARSHIP
If you must receive financial assistance from a college in order to attend,
it's a good idea to discuss this with your principal or college adviser. He
will probably be able to offer good, specific suggestions and tell you
about special or regional scholarships that are available.
Most colleges are members of the College Scholarship Service ( CSS ).
137
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
COLLEGE INTERVIEWS
Consult each college catalog to determine if a personal interview at the
college is required, suggested, or not required. Many colleges send rep-
resentatives to various cities around the country to interview applicants
who cannot afford a trip to the campus.
A good procedure to follow is: visit and arrange for an interview at
as many of the colleges to which you apply as you possibly can. For de-
tails on the interview, see pages 460-461.
FIRST-CHOICE COLLEGE
As soon as you and your parents have come to a final decision about
which college is your first choice, tell your principal or college adviser.
This information will be noted on your school transcript and sent to
your first-choice college.
You should also write to your first-choice college informing them of
your desire to attend.
Never tell a college — on the application or in an interview —that it is
138
APPLYING TO SCHOOLS AND COLLEGES
COLLEGE ACCEPTANCES
Let us assume you are applying to four colleges —A, B, C, and D— and
you prefer A and B to C and D.
If you are accepted to B before you hear from any of the others, then
write to C and D and thank them for their consideration of your ap-
plication; inform them that you are withdrawing your application be-
cause you have made other plans for your education.
Do not wait to do this just to collect college acceptances: you may be
keeping another applicant from being accepted. (See page 142 for an
example of a withdrawal letter. ) If you still prefer A over B, then hold
B's acceptance until you hear from A. If A accepts you, then write to
B saying that you are flattered to have been accepted, but have made
other plans.
If you hear favorably from D first, then hold the acceptance only
until you hear from another institution on your preference list. Write a
withdrawal letter as soon as you hear from a more preferred college.
If you do not hear from another college, then you can still say Yes to D.
Remember, all acceptances are conditional, based on your completing
the senior year with grades comparable to those submitted for three or
three and one-half years of high school work. Many seniors feel that the
second semester is the time to let down their efforts. This is not true;
students have had acceptances turned into rejections because their final
grades for the senior year took a noticeable drop.
139
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
Dear Sir:
The foregoing letter is perfectly adequate, and will do the job nicely.
You may, however, want someone to guide you around the school. In
this case, you may write
Dear Sir:
concerning my admission. Any time from the I4th through the 17th will
be satisfactory. I should also appreciate it if you can have someone guide
140
II
APPLYING TO SCHOOLS AND COLLEGES
Dear Joe:
visit Centerville on Saturday, October 14, and hope
I'm planning to
to spend some time touring the college. As you know, I'm graduating
from Midville High this coming June, and Centerville is one of the
colleges I'm applying to.
Can you spare an hour or two during the day to act as my guide? I'd
be especially interested in seeing the laboratories, because I hope
eventually to work in biology.
If you can act as my shepherd, please let me know what time
I should meet you, and about how long vou think we should spend
together.
Sincerely,
141
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
142
11
You may be a plane fare away from home, and there are no parents
handy to turn to for advice. You're on your own. At no other time of
your life have your writing skills, your abilitv to write well and effec-
tively, been so CRicial to your success or failure.
And your reliance on these writing skills will not diminish with time;
on the contrary, as you move up from class to class toward that ultimate
cap and gown and the coveted sheepskin, the demands on your writing
skills and techniques become more critical. The instructors and pro-
fessors become less lenient with your writing. They want to see evidence
of original thinking in your research papers, a precis which is concise,
and examination papers that show vour mastery of style and content.
You undoubtedly appreciate this concern with how you handle your
written assignments, and you try to meet this high standard. But people
143
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
tend to develop the writing skills demanded of them by way of trial and
error; and this can prove a time-consuming and often costly method of
learning for the college student.
"Your report lacks organization," writes your instructor at the top of
the report which took weeks of sweat and sleepless nights as well; and
the grade you receive seems hardly worth the effort you invested.
"Where did you get your facts?" demands your learned professor in
the margins of your report on the history of the American tariff; and
there goes another unsatisfactory notation into his little black book.
"Your ideas are muddy!"
"I asked for a precis, not for your profound observations!"
"Your writing is sadly lacking in clarity."
You may slap the returned papers down on your desk, and mutter
some dire threat, some heartbroken protest, but no one sees you and no
one hears you. What is even more painful in such moments is the knowl-
edge that these criticisms by the earnest members of the faculty are emi-
nently correct.
You know, as a matter of fact, that nothing is going to help you write
that acceptable book report, precis, or that admirable science report
except study and practice of the techniques of good writing. And you
know that different kinds of reports require different skills.
ment is perhaps the most important element in any kind of writing you
may do, in or out of school.
Think about that topic. Is it something to which you can bring a new
slant, a new viewpoint? Will it be of interest to your fellow classmates,
to your instructor? Are you sufficiently interested in the topic yourself?
Do you think you can give it all the time and energy it will need? Think
about it.
Once you've made your decision in this most important initial step,
you'll begin to jot down thoughts and ideas. You'll have some notion of
the facts and figures, names, places, dates necessary for the report, but
144
WRITING AXD YOUR COLLEGE CAREER
area you've selected. The thing to do now, of course, is to dig up, not
the research material itself, but the sources for such material.
down to the essentials. It also spells out for you the more common faults
which creep into the precis, and how to avoid them.
Chapter 13 also takes up the book report and the science report. It
describes the main elements in a good book report and helps you de-
velop guidelines as well as answers to all the questions you put to your-
self about the book. It will tell you exactlv what to look for in a novel,
in a biography, in a book on some particular chapter of history, in a
book of essays. It also describes the techniques involved in writing a
145
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
one-paragraph review. You will learn the steps necessary in the writing
of a science report: the gathering of data, analysis, and conclusion.
"Taking Written Examinations" deals with the skills and techniques
of writing good answers to exam questions and how to take much of the
fear and trembling out of the process. It tells you how to allocate your
time so that you don't find yourself with two or three unanswered ques-
tions when the final bell rings. It explains the best way to read the ex-
amination questions, defining for yourself exactly what is required in
their answers. It shows you how to plan your answers by taking the
time to organize your thoughts before you put word to paper and by
writing out a short outline for your answer. And of course, it tells you
how to prepare yourself for your exam.
AFTER GRADUATION
Then, looking beyond the boundaries of the campus, there is a most
important chapter on how to write an application for a job. It may be
a summer want because you are tired of loafing on the beach,
job you
or because like a little more money in your pockets this next
you would
school year, or because you must help with tuition costs. And, of course,
there is the career job you will have to find after graduation from high
school or college.
You will be expected to write a resume of your background and edu-
cation, the traveling you have done, the languages you speak and write,
the jobs you have held in the past. There are examples of such resumes
in this chapter, along with suggestions for describing your scholastic
and athletic honors, your fraternity or sorority, and on how to bypass
the red tape of personnel departments.
You may have little or no experience in the type of job for which you
are applying. This chapter will tell you how to cope with such a con-
tingency. It will also give you advice about what to write if you are
already out of school and were fired from your last job.
It will also tell and show you how to answer a want-ad and how to
the next four chapters. But for the college man or woman who knows
he still has something to learn about the writing skills and techniques
and who is willing to learn, these chapters are required reading.
146
12
How^ to write
a research paper
Your biggest written assignment will be the research paper
147
NVRTTE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
be the same: to collect the facts and interpret them. The term paper
can be intelligent, well informed, interesting, and original in its con-
clusions, and the student should tr\' to make it so. But first of all he
should try to make his work systematic. If it is not systematic it will
148
HOW TO WRITE A RESEARCH PAPER
works, books, or articles less limited in scope than the treatment in the
reference book itself. With this as a starting point the student can make
up his own working bibliography for his subject. As he reads into his
subject he will encounter references to other works, and can gradually
extend the range of his working bibliography. The subject catalog of
the library will also provide new items.
form size, with only one entry to a card. This allows the student to
arrange them in alphabetical, or other order (by topics, for example),
according to his need. The entry on the card should contain all the basic
Entry for
A Book
Strachey, Lytton, Elizabeth and Essex , London,
149
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
information about a book or article: the author's name with the last
name first, the title of the work, the volume number if any, the place of
publication, the publisher, the date of publication. If the work appears
in a periodical or collection, that fact should be indicated with volume
number, the date, and the pages occupied by the work.
This form is to be retained in making up the final bibliography to be
attached to your finished paper. There the order will be alphabetical by
authors. Your final bibliographv may be shorter than your working
bibliography, for the final bibliography should contain no entry from
which you have not taken material for the actual paper, whereas certain
items in your working bibliography will be dropped as more valuable
items come to Hght.
The professional scholar may want to work through all the material
on his subject, but the student preparing a term paper scarcely has the
time for such a program. And many items in the bibliographies you
encounter are antiquated or trivial. So to save time and energy, try to
select the items which will best repay your attention. There is no rule
for this. Selected bibliographies sometimes appear in textbooks and
other works. Sometimes an author will refer with special respect to
another work on his subject. And as a student you can always take your
working bibliography to an instructor for comment.
this rule, even when notes are on the same topic; for when you take the
notes, you cannot be sure in what order you will eventually use them.
Only if each note is independent can you arrange them in the order
you want when you come to write your paper. Each note should carry
150
HOW TO WRITE A RESEARCH PAPER
at the top, at left or toward the center, some indication of the precise
content, not the general subject of your investigation, but some sub-
topic. And at the top right, or at the bottom, the note should carrv an
adequate reference to the source from which it is drawn. Presumably
the full bibliographical information about that source is already in your
working bibliography, so some skeleton notation will be adequate here.
(When you are taking notes not from your working bibliography but
from general reading, you should record full bibliographical informa-
tion with the note. ) Below is a specimen card or sheet:
When we look at the actual note on the card we see that several
other phrases might have been used to indicate the topic discussed. For
instance, "American business mysticism," or "American materialism."
All that is needed is a word or phrase that will remind the note-taker
of the content. We notice, too, that after the direct quotation there is
151
HOW TO USE THE LIBRARY
After checking your library's general reference books, you should
find out whether the library has any specific books that would give
you helpful material on the subject you're researching.
Every book that the library owns is listed on an index card. These
index cards are assembled in the card catalog. (The librarian will
tell you whether the book is on the shelves or has been borrowed.)
How can the card catalog tell you where to look for the book on
the shelves?
divided into:
800-809 General
810-819 American literature
820-829 English literature
830-839 German literature
840-849 French literature
850-859 Italian literature
860-869 Spanish hterature
152
are called the class numbers. They are combined with the initial
of the author's last name to give the call number, by which a book
is classified.
Card for each book they own. In the upper left-hand comer of these
cards is the call number.
Author card. If you know the author's name you can locate the title
Title card. If vou do not know the author's name, but vou do know
the title of the book, you can find both title and author on the title
first word of the title of the book, except for the articles A, An, or
The: Last Days of Pompeii, The.
The magazine file. After researching the card catalog, look next into
the Reader's Guide to Periodical Literature which lists magazine
articles. Are there any articles that might shed light on your topic?
Check with the librarian to learn whether the magazine containing
those articles are available. Make a careful record of unavailable
magazines because you might find them in another fibrary or at
home, or he able to borrow them.
153
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
You are studying a particular subject with particular limits. You are
not concerned with anything only casually associated with the subject.
If, for instance, when your subject is the economic background of the
American Revolution, you are reading a general history of the period,
you should not be distracted by military strategy of the French and
Indian Wars or an analysis of Puritan theology. Your job is to follow
your main purpose through a body of various materials, and often what
is major for you will be minor in the work you are investigating.
Some note-taking may be premature. It is always best to become ac-
quainted with a work before you take notes from it. In your first read-
ing indicate material for possible notes, and pass on. When you have
finished the work, or those parts relevant to your interest, you can better i
assess it for notes. In this way you will get from any particular work
only the most pertinent notes, and you will avoid duplication.
The note itself may be a direct quotation or summary. If it is a direct
quotation, it is sometimes valuable to record the context of the quota-
tion. What leads the author to make his statement? What point does he
try to establish by it? You do not want to misinterpret your author by
implication. For instance, suppose a critic should write:
This principle of context holds good for the note by summary as well as
the note by quotation.
The kind of summary you use depends on the special case. If the
author's method of reasoning is very important, the form of the sum-
mary should indicate the logical structure of the original text. Where
only facts or scattered opinions are relevant, the summary merely re-
154
HOW TO WRITE A RESEARCH PAPER
cords them. As for the scale of the summary, there is no guiding prin-
ciple except the note-taker's need. Try to forecast what you will need to
write your paper, not merely what you will incorporate in the paper
but what you will need to understand your subject fully when you write.
Once your notes are taken, how do you use them? This also depends on
your subject. Some subjects suggest a chronological order, others a logi-
cal order. For instance, if you are doing a paper on Keats's development
as a poet you might first arrange your notes chronologically — notes on
early poems, notes on middle poems, notes on late poems. But if your
subject is an analysis of the themes of Keats's poems, you might try to
arrange your notes by themes, running various classifications until you
have one that seems to make sense. Or you might find, sometimes, that
two levels of organization are necessary. For instance, certain themes
of Keats's poems might be characteristic of certain periods. Then having
established one type of classification ( by theme ) you might run another
type (by chronology). Notes are flexible. You can use them as a device
to help your thinking as well as to help you organize your material.
Notes record questions and issues. The diflFerent authors you have
consulted have had individual approaches to the general subject, differ-
ent interests, different conclusions. As you work over your cards you can
locate these differences and try to see what they mean to you in your
special project. Ask yourself if there is any pattern of disagreement
among the authors you have consulted. List the disagreements. Are they
disagreements of fact or of interpretation? Compare the evidence and
reasoning offered by the authors who are in disagreement. Can you
think of any new evidence or new line of reasoning on disputed points?
Can you think of any significant points not discussed by your authors?
What bearing would such points have on their conclusions? Again, use
your notes as a device to help your thinking.
By working over your notes and thinking about ideas suggested in them
you will probably on some vague general plan for your paper.
strike
But do not commit yourself to the first plan that comes into your head.
Consider various possibilities. Then when you have struck on the most
promising, try to work up an outline on that basis. You will undoubtedly
155
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
start with a rough, suggestive outHne, the barest shadow of the paper
you want to write. By checking back on your material you can begin to
fill in the outline and determine the relation among the facts and ideas
you wish to present. So you will arrive at a more fully organized out-
line. A topic outline may serve your purpose, but at some stage making
a sentence outline will help you to state exactly what you mean.
Once you have an outline prepared, you can begin the actual com-
position.Use your outline as a guide, but do not consider yourself
bound by it. As you write, new ideas will probably come to you, and if
they are good ideas you should revise your outline to accommodate
them. The outline is not sacred. Like your notes, it is simply a device
to help you think. And remember that your paper should be a fully
rounded composition, unified and coherent, emphasizing matters ac-
your material will be derived from other writers, but you should always
ask yourself just what a fact or idea means in terms of your own pur-
pose. It should find a place in your pattern, and if there is no proper
place for it, it should be excluded. In the end, you will always find that
some of your notes are not usable. A writer who has studied his subject
always has more material than he can use well.
156
HOW TO WRITE A RESEARCH PAPER
volved for a single item in the text, one note will serve to acknowledge
the several sources.
Variation in certain details is permissible in the form of footnotes
but not in the same paper. Learn one of the standard forms and use
it consistently in all your work. Here are a few general principles:
!• The author's name appears in direct form, not with the last name
first, as in the bibliography.
2. The title of a book or periodical is underUned in typescript or
One author:
157
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
Translation:
1. Anton Chekhov, The Partt/ and Other Stories, tr. Constance Garnett, Lon-
don, Chatto and Windus, 1919.
Here the abbreviation ed. is for editor : Norman Foerster is the editor
of the collection.
Here the Roman numerals give the volume number of the periodical.
158
HOW TO WRITE A RESEARCH PAPER
The last number, 169, is the page reference. Notice that the abbreviation
p. is omitted for periodicals after the volume number.
Here the first number is for chapter, the others for verses, inclusive.
1. II Cor. 6:9.
159
WRITE BETTER, SPEAX BETTER
used, with a new page number reference, if that is needed. For example:
simpler, and is becoming more common than the other. For example:
1. Arthur Mizener, "The Desires of the Mind," Setvanee Review, LX, Sum-
mer 1947, 462.
2. Wendell L. Willkie, "Freedom and the Liberal Arts," in The Humanities
after the War, Norman Foerster, ed., Princeton, Princeton University Press,
1944, p. 5.
3. Mizener, 464.
If the author has more than one work referred to in the footnotes,
then his last name be enough, and an abbreviated title will be
will not
necessary.
After you have prepared a draft of your paper and established all your
footnotes, you are ready to set up your final bibliography. This may
diflFer from your working bibliography, in that it contains only items
160
HOW TO WRITE A RESEARCH PAPER
which are actually referred to in your paper, not items which have been
consulted but not used.
The form for such a bibliography permits certain minor variations.
For instance, the place without the publisher is sometimes given; and
there may be differences in punctuation. For example, the following
entry can be punctuated in two ways:
Barnes, Harry Elmer, The Genesis of the World War, New York,
Alfred A. Knopf, 1926.
Barnes, Harry Elmer. The Genesis of the World War. New York:
Alfred A. Knopf, 1926.
But in all variations the author's name comes first, with the last name
first, followed by the full title of the work, the periodical or series if
any, the place of publication, the publisher (if this form is used), and
the date of pubhcation. The items may be listed in either of two ways:
( 1 ) in a straight alphabetical order, according to the last name of the
author or, if there is no author, by the main word of the title; (2)
alphabetically within certain groups determined by the material dealt
with: "Books," "Periodicals," "Documents," and so forth. Here are some
examples of entries in the bibliography of a paper on Woodrow Wilson
161
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
At this stage you should have an outline and a draft of your paper,
with all quotations properly inserted, all acknowledgments for facts
and opinions ( either quoted or summarized ) indicated in footnotes, and
a final bibliography attached for all works actually referred to in your
footnotes. Now is the time to check carefully to see if there is any need
for revision. Try to answer the following questions:
162
13
163
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
words or phrases that you do not quite understand, look them up in the
dictionary.
2. As you read, take brief notes on points that seem important to the
author. When you have finished reading, read your notes. Do any of
them now seem unimportant in \aew of the main idea? Those will be
the points to omit in your precis.
3. Now write that main idea in your own words. Make it as concise as
you can. Do not include ideas or opinions of your own.
4. Revise your writing to be sure that your version is accurate.
EXAMPLE: Since he could not meet her at the train, he sent his friend
to replace him.
CUT TO: Unable to meet her at the train, he sent his friend instead.
EXAMPLE: // you take the steak from the freezer now, it will he thawed
out in time for dinner.
CUT TO: Taking the steak from the freezer now will make it thaw by
dinnertime.
164
PRECIS, BOOK REPORTS, AND PROJECT REPORTS
As you can see, there is more than one way to say thesame thing. In
precis writing, the shorter the version, the better. The very meaning of
the French word precis is "exact," "terse."
rules were broken, and why the satisfactory version meets all the re-
quirements of a successful precis.
Precis 1
The great artists of the past are not being replaced because these days
we don't need them. Nobody has time any more for taking long sea
voyages, looking at sunsets, or reading everything somebody wrote.
We're too busy flying in all directions. Speed is our motto. We're hurry-
ing too fast to take time to read. (55 words)
165
"vvtute better, speak better
Precis 2
In our day there are no great artists and writers as there were in
olden days when artists had rich patrons to support them. The pubbc
isn't interested in looking at paintings or reading books any more. Peo-
ple are too busy flying around in all directions to care about art any
more. So painters and poets are going out of business. (61 words).
Precis 3
The becoming remote and unfamibar and
great artists of the past are
are not being replaced by others because we are moving into a world
of non-art. One has only to compare the mildly esthetic days when
people traveled bv train and had time to read with modem days of
airplane travel. Nowadays there is onlv time to read a few leaflets and
skim through Time before you are at your destination. Poetry, for in-
stance, may well cease to exist because only a few professors Uve quietly
enough to have the necessary ear for hearing what a poet writes. The
reading public is too lazy and too nervous to care. (Ill words)
Precis 4
Great artists of the past are not being replaced by comparable modem
artists. Our world symbolized by the difference between lei-
of non-art is
surely travel in the past and the rapid, nervous travel of today. The poet
finds no large audience to appreciate the fine points of his work. Read-
ing is not the discriminating art it once was, nor will it be again until a
sense of values is restored to an irresponsible, lazy reading public. (77
words)
As you read, could you put your finger on the rules that were broken
in these precis?
1. Though this precis was short enough, it missed the main point and
emphasized unimportant details.
2. This precis is also short enough, but the writer injected his own
ideas and comments into his'writing.
3. This precis commits two errors. It is too long —over half as long
as the original material. It also lifts sentences from the original. A
precis must be written in one's own words.
4. This version is the right length, gets the main point, and sum-
marizes the author's ideas in different words. It is a successful precis.
166
PRECIS, BOOK REPORTS, AND PROJECT REPORTS
You must express your reactions and your judgment. Your report
should be written from your own point of view.
1. Introduction
A. Who is the author? ( This is fact. )
2. Plot
A. Briefly, what is the story about? (Fact.)
B. How does the story develop? (This is your opinion.)
3. Characters
A. Who are they? Fact. (
4. Setting
A. Where, when? (Fact.)
B. How is it described? (Your opinion.)
5. Style
A. General characteristics. (Facts.)
B. How did it appeal to you? (Your feelings.)
As you can see, the way you feel about the book is as important as
the factual account of its details. We will discuss, first, expressing your
feelings and ideas so that the reader of your report will understand its
appeal to you.
167
WRITE BETTEB, SPEAK BKl'lER
prise when you settle down seriously to your report. You will find that
you have a head start. Your notes may give vou a complete introductory
paragraph or an excellent summarizing conclusion.
What is the theme of the hook? What message is the author trying to
send you? Is the theme clearly expressed and successfully proved? Or
does the author present several conflicting themes without proving any
of them?
Does the plot make sense? Do the incidents follow each other logi-
cally and realistically? Are you convinced that such things could happen
to these particular characters?
Do the characters seem like real people to you? Do you care what
happens to them? Are they all beautiful and good? Or do they show
their weaknesses and their bad points? Can you believe that each char-
acter would really behave as the author shows him behaving? Or does
the author move his characters around as though they were puppets on
strings? What have you learned about human nature in general as a
result of meeting these characters?
Does the dialogue sound real? Does it tell you about the people who
are speaking? Does it reveal their personalities? Do the conversations
help to move the story forward and keep it moving? Or does the talk
go on and on, getting nowhere?
— —
Does the setting the time and place of the story come to life for
you? Can you picture the scenes in vour mind's eye? Are the descrip-
tions clear and vivid? Or are they long-winded and dull enough to make
you want to skim them to get on with the story? Does the author give
enough colorful detail to make this other place come to life?
Does the style suit the plot and the theme? Is it clear and simple?
Light and amusing? Serious but straightforward? Heavy and wordy?
Full of eflFective figures of speech?
As you answer these questions, take notes. Do not be afraid to be
168
PRECIS, BOOK REPORTS, AND PROJECT REPORTS
critical, but don't criticize for the sake of sounding smart. Note espe-
cially one important incident so the reader of your report can sense the
flavor and tone of the book. Note a quality of a character good or bad —
— that will make your reader feel your enthusiasm or your antagonism
toward that character.
Take notes, too, on the "fact" parts of your basic outline. Identify the
book and its Then arrange your notes in the correct outline
author.
form. Have you included too much? Remember, you are not rewriting
the book nor giving a blow-by-blow summary of the plot. Your job is to
judge the elements of the book and to evaluate it as a whole. One test
Do the timesand the places come to life for you? Are there enough
details to make the setting seem authentic?
Do you understand how the subject related to his times?
Did he face up to his trials and conflicts and solve them, or did he
sidestep them?
Are the conversations believable and in character?
Does the author's style contribute to your pleasure in the book, or did
Would you like to know more about the subject of the biography or
any persons portrayed in the book, or was your curiosity satisfied?
169
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
All good books are alike in that they are truer than if they had
really happened and after you are finished reading one you will feel
that all that happened to you and afterwards it all belongs to you;
the good and the bad, the ecstasy, the remorse and sorrow, the peo-
ple and the places and how the weather was. — Ernest Hemingway
Does the author distinguish clearly between the facts and his inter-
pretation of the facts? Were you able to recognize the differences be-
tween them?
Did the author seem to be writing down to you? Was the material too
simplified? Or did he succeed in explaining complicated material clearly
enough for you to grasp it?
Did the author bring material to life for you by presenting it in terms
170
PRECIS, BOOK REPORTS, AND PROJECT REPORTS
material?
formation; omit details that add little to the picture. Sum up your gen-
eral impression in the conclusion.
Now write your first draft. Check it thoroughly for correct grammar,
usage, spelling, and punctuation. Polish your first draft by writing in
your corrections. Read it over and over. Does your enthusiasm or dis-
like for the book carry through to you as it should to the reader of your
report? If your report plods along, try to introduce some color and emo-
tion so that your reader will be tempted to investigate the book.
oflF without much thought. In two or three sentences you can identify
the book and say whether you liked it or not. But that isn't enough.
Being able to wTite a closely packed summary paragraph will help
to all of the check-list questions, but plan to use only some of the an-
swers. The trick is to select the questions most appropriate for this
171
WMTE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
direct sentences.
Arrange your notes in outline form. Study them coldly. Which details
are vital to your report and which ones are less important? Can two
important details be included in the same sentence? Try it. Can you
express your feelings about the main theme in one sentence? Try it.
Make a clear, clean copy of what is left. Does it make one paragraph?
Have you left out something really vital? If you put it back in, will it
upset the whole paragraph? Try it.
When you are satisfied that you have written the tightest, yet clearest
cluded in every report. For example, if a project did not involve an ex-
periment, the report would not include the items about experiments.
THE TITLE
A good distinguish your project report from all others which
title will
have do with the same general area of study. Titles of scientific re-
to
ports should convey important information rather than show ofiF the
author's cleverness. Thus, the title, "Snakes Are Our Friends," would
172
PRECIS, BOOK REPORTS, AND PROJECT REPORTS
would be, "The Diet of the North American Garter Snake." This title
BACKGROUND INFORMATION
This section of the report should give the reader enough information to
be able to understand the history and the importance of your problem.
It will often include a review of other people's findings. If well written,
this section will explain your motives for undertaking the project and
will stimulate the reader. Background information may contain refer-
ences to books and articles, indicated by footnotes. This section is often
called simply "Introduction."
THE PROBLEM
If your report is based on the study of a specific problem, the problem
should be clearly stated or defined. You should tell whether you are
searching for or testing hypotheses, suggesting a theory, or merely re-
porting some observations made under clearly specified conditions.
While discussing the problem, you may often want to show its relation-
ship to other problems. The best reports include a discussion of the
relationship of the problem to existing theories.
HYPOTHESES TO BE TESTED
If one or a series of experiments is being reported, all hypotheses being
tested should be stated. This section may also include a discussion of
PROCEDURES
Anyone who reads your report should, with the proper materials and
facihties, be able to repeat your experiment or observations and obtain
173
HOW TO PREPARE YOUR FINAL COPY
Once the preliminary draft of vour paper is finished, all that
remains to do is make a clean, clear copy of everything you've writ-
ten. If you must submit a handwritten report, take plentv of time
over it, so that every page is neat. If you can possibly type your
report, do so. It will be more readable and attractive to look at.
two-line footnote. Indent the first line and run the second Une flush
margin. Capitalize the first letter of each word (except for articles,
to type all footnotes on a separate sheet before vou start the body
of your paper, so you will know exactly how much space they take
up. You can allow for this space by marking off the line that will
divide the text from the footnotes. You can thus make sure that
every numeral in the text has its corresponding footnote below.
Give yourself time to proofread carefullv for typographical errors,
author — vours.
174
PRECIS, BOOK REPORTS, AXD PROJECT REPORTS
your mistake.
DATA OR OBSERVATIONS
Numerical data such as measurements and other statistics are best pre-
sented in the form of tables. Observations — i.e., descriptions of flowers
or of the behavior of animals —should be reported in a simple, logical
preted in terms of the hypotheses that were being tested. Put more
simply, if the experimental data support or confirm your theory, you
should organize them in the way that most clearly shows this support or
confirmation.
CONCLUSIONS
In this section, each hypothesis should be reexamined and rejected if
IMPLICATIONS OR RECOMMENDATIONS
This section is sometimes devoted to "generalizations." In this next-to-
last section of your report, you should discuss any meaning your re-
175
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
SUMMARY
Always conclude a scientific report with a brief summary of the prin-
cipal results of your investigation. It is often convenient and desirable
to do this by means of a simple opening statement such as "The prin-
cipal findings of this studv were:" and then list the findings.
HINTS ON STYLE
When writing a scientific report, avoid the use of words that add no
scientific understanding to what you are saying. Uncommon words and
2. Put 1 before each statement that applies to a precis and 2 before those
applying to a paraphrase:
a. Saying in simpler words what the original said.
b. Condensed version of the original material's essential thought.
0. In French means "exact," "terse."
d. May be as long as the original version.
3. Re-read the section, "How to Judge a Novel," and pages 164-166. Then
write a precis of the material in "How to Judge a Novel."
176
14
Taking w^ritten
examinations
Don't let exams frighten you! As in other forms of writing
there are simple rules you can follow when you are faced
J.\l o matter what kind of test you are taking, there are some
general rules which you should always follow. You should use your
time wisely, and you should read test directions and test questions care-
fully to avoid needless errors. In addition, there are some guidelines for
Almost all tests have a time limit. Some tests are essentially power
tests; you will have a liberal amount of time to complete these. Other
tests are essentially speed tests; you will ha\'e to work quickly through
them and pace yourself to make optimum use of your time.
Know how long vou have to complete the test. Make a mental note
of the number of minutes you are allowed to work on the test questions;
ifyou have anv doubt, ask the examiner. On standardized tests, the
time allowed is frequently indicated on the direction page.
Look over the entire test before you start to answer any questions.
—
Onlv by getting an idea of the test's scope how many and what type of
questions there are wnW you know how fast you must work through the
items. The minute you spend in surveying will help you make better use
of time and thereby improve your test performance.
177
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
Move along at the fastest rate at which you can function well, as the
main idea is to get as many items right as possible.
Begin to work as rapidly as you can with reasonable assurance of
accuracy. Have your paper and pencils and your mental framework all
set to go before the test begins. If directions are given before the timed
portion of the test begun (as in manv standardized tests), be sure
is
with higher scores. If time permits, check all your answers. Do not be
afraid to change answers if it seems desirable.
178
TAKING WRITTEN EXAMINATIONS
The test taker's task is twofold. First, you must be able to understand
with precision what the test maker wants; second, you must be able to
communicate what you know. The second task will be dealt with later;
answer, what kind of answer to make, how fast to work, and so forth.
mitted? Be sure you know what you can and cannot use.
tion about the order in which you must answer the items, work first on
those items which will yield the most points in a given time.
Number of questions you must answer. Do you have to answer all the
questions, or are you permitted a choice? If you do not have to answer
1 College Entrance Examination Board, Publications Order Office, Box 592, Prince-
ton, New Jersey 08540. There is no charge for the booklet.
179
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
that they give you a running start. When the actual test begins, you
won't have to overcome inertia.
Keep the directions in mind when answering the test items. Often the
instructions direct you to choose an incorrect answer from among sev-
eral correct ones. For example,
This item appeared on a test in which the directions were: "Each of the
180
TAKING WRITTEN EXAMINATIONS
following items contains three correct and one incorrect answer. Choose
the incorrect answer." Because Marlowe, Shakespeare, and Congreve
were all English playwrights the correct option is Washington Irving.
William Shakespeare will be chosen by the student who does not keep
the directions in mind when answering the questions.
judge whether or not the second statement would be true on the basis
of the first. With this set of directions, you can see that the proper an-
swer is true. If cream were heavier than milk (and you are told to
assume that it is ) then cream would indeed be at the bottom of a quart
,
of milk. This type of test item is used to measure reasoning ability, not
factual knowledge.
The moral of these two examples is: Do not depend upon the ques-
tions in the test to tell you the nature of the directions.
181
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
if the teacher listens to your questions and wall not help, it may suggest
that he feels you do not have a valid point.
Be alert to read the questions as they are, not ai> you would like them
to be. We frequently see what we want to see. When you encounter an
easy, familiar-looking item, don't jump to the conclusion that you know
what it is. Read the question carefully to make sure it is indeed the
question you thought it was. Many good teachers will test for a point
which was emphasized in class or in the textbook but in a sHghtly differ-
ent way. Changing just one word in a question can alter the answer;
read every word.
Pay attention to the 'Tcey terms" in the questions. Every word in a
question is important. If you mistakenly read ounces for pounds or over-
look a not, you will answer the question incorrectly. Because of such
careless errors we have all missed test questions we should have an-
swered correctly. But for each question missed because of misreading
there are several other questions answered incorrectly because of mis-
interpretation. Those words upon which an accurate interpretation and
an appropriate response depend are the question's "key terms."
Circle the key terms in this example taken from a standardized test
in American history.
We did not circle the words two and Jacksonian. Like most words
which are underlined or italicized or relate to proper names, two and
Jacksonian are important words and to misread them would be un-
fortunate, but there is nothing subtle about these terms; there is little
interpretation required.
We did, however, consider sliow to be a key term in the question.
Demonstration with evidence and not just description is required.
Another key term in the above example is the word extended. The
i
182
TAXING WRITTEN EXAMINATIONS
for —
an immediate activator a triggering event.
Use any remaining time after you complete the test to check your
interpretation of directions and questions. Many open-ended questions
(e.g., essay questions) contain several subquestions, and it is these
questions and compUcated directions which are most hkelv to be mis-
interpreted.
There are many questions or parts of questions which you can answer
correctly if you are willing to work at them. In this section we shall
suggest ways to help you "reason out" what the correct answers to
problems should be.
Naturallv, problem-solving techniques cannot serve as a substitute
for the basic knowledge you can often
of subject matter. Nevertheless,
reason out an answer, even with a limited background. Reasoning is
important.
183
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
trying to answer? What are the key terms? What is my best guess on
the meaning of this unfamiliar word? What are the elements or parts
of the problem? What are the concepts that apply in this case? What
does my own experience tell me that might help in answering the
question? Are the instances from my experience relevant? What kind
of answer is needed here? Can I break the question down or translate
it in some way to make it easier to answer?
Evaluate your answer. Does it deal with the question asked? Is it the
kind of answer you think is needed? Have you, by translating materials
184
I
TAKING WRITTEN EXAMINATIONS
Essay questions
An essay question requires the test taker to compose his own answer,
which may varv in length from a mere sentence or two to a lengthy dis-
course. And the content of the answer may vary from the mere recall
of a specific bit of information to a well-organized, critical evaluation of
a philosophical position.
The ideal answer should show that you (a) understand the question,
(b) know the relevant material, (c) can present the material in an
organized manner, and (d) can state your ideas clearly. The objective
of this section is to help you write such answers.
Remember the general principles of test taking. In addition, keep in
mind these points which have a direct bearing on essay questions:
185
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
Record some facts and formulas you have memorized on the back of
a teacher-made examination. Do this even before you read the ques-
tions. It helps prevent blocking and inertia. The minute you take to
jot down a few facts is usuallv a good investment.
If, however, you are instructed not to write or make calculations
except in a designated area, you should comply with the directions.
Try hard. If you find that you are unprepared to answer most of the
questions, do not give up or make a half-hearted attempt. Instead,
work harder than ordinarily to put together an outline of plausible
ideas; then, write neatly and forcefully. It is often surprising to see the
string of ideas you can pull out of your mind once you catch hold of
even one idea, however fragmentary.
Use time wisely. It is easy to lose track of time when you are answer-
ing a question on a topic about which you know a great deal. Allocate
your time among the questions, saving more time for essav questions
which carry greater weight and require longer answers.
If you do have some time remaining, read over your answers. Fre-
quently additional ideas come to mind. At the very least, you can cor-
186
TAKING WRITTEN EXAMINATIONS
additional ideas. However, do not jot down vour ideas so sketchilv that
when you come back you cannot reconstruct them.
Here is an example of an essa\' question with marginal notes (based
on immediate recall recorded. )
187
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
your essay, and wTite alongside each major idea the numbers 1, 2, 3, etc.
3. To support each major idea, use the remaining notes and designate
them as la, lb, Ic ( for those points which will be used to support the
first major idea ) or , 2a, 2b, 2c ( for the points to be used in support of
the second major idea ) , and so forth.
4. During the ordering of ideas, if you should see any gaps in either
the major ideas or their supporting materials, simply insert a brief nota-
tion into the outline.
Do not spend too much time on \'our outline trying to make it elab-
orate and in exact form. An outline serves as a flexible guide, not as a
rigid mold.
When you have finished organizing the points for your question, be-
gin writing the answer. When you have finished writing your answer
to one question, organize your answer to another. Work your way
through all the questions using this procedure.
not fat and slow. Your task is to be explicit, giving ample supporting
188
TAKING MnEUTTEN EXAMINATIONS
Third, make your answer clear. Lead the reader neatlv through the
paper by well-chosen "transitional" and "directional" words. For ex-
ample, if you are making an amplification, write, "to amplify . .
."; if
If you know your material but write like a person who is bluffing, how
is the examiner expected to know the difference? He may, if he is not
too tired, notice that the paper contains facts scattered about, but could
those facts have been mentioned just by chance? If vou know your stuff,
RELEVANT OR IRRELEVANT?
One practical question students frequently ask is: Should I include
in my answer some facts which I know even though I am not sure they
are relevant to the question? If you feel the material has a reasonable
chance of being relevant, it is usuallv wise to state it briefly to make
the instructor reahze that \'0u are famiUar with it. You could footnote
it to minimize its interference with the logical flow of your answer.
Write something for every essay question nou are asked to answer,
even you do not know your stuflF. It is rare that the instructor will
if
ask you a question about which you know absolutely nothing. Since
almost all instructors give partial credit on essay questions, it is worth
189
TWO ANSWERS TO AN ESSAY QUESTION
Here are two different answers to the same essay question. Marginal
comments point out their respective strengths and weaknesses.
'3-kjiiycfU^xaJiev^ol. xJu /S'^ and '('* CX-tiia.'Uts 4Al!(Zntd,
A GOOD ANSWER
starts with a direct
answer to the question;
specifics given;
adds a sentence
adds an afterthought to
make sure the relation of
the point to the question
is clear;
.^lATtt^ /tur CrttCrfy^n. /Y'W.iAlVJ^Uc6^^ ii^V^^^T^frK^j Jr
example;
transition;
190
A POOR ANSWER This answer was retyped to correct mechanical errors.
The instructor's comments appear in the left-hand margin.
191
\VRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
your time to marshal the fragments vou do know into an answer, though
you may not be able to write a complete one.
Perhaps the best wav to indicate how this can be done is with an
illustration.Notice in the following example that the student was not
familiar enough with the writings of Coleridge or Tennyson to back up
either choice with sohd, detailed exidence. Although this gap precludes
his receiving a perfect score (or possibly even a good score), it is un-
to make effective use of his abilitv to analyze his deficiencv. Also, there
is hardly any padding or bluffing, which often irritates the grader.
192
15
Applying for
a job
Once you're out of school or college your writing skills are
ters, even what to say if you were fired from your last job.
First, we'll discuss job resumes, since they're usually essential when
you're applying for a job. A resume should be accurate, brief, and clear.
It should put your best foot forward, tell the most important things
about you that a prospective employer might want to know; and it
on one page, then do so. But if you've had four or five years of work,
and a considerable amount of experience behind you, it may be quite
worthwhile to go on to a second sheet.
193
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
Let's take a look at a good standard resume from a man who has had
a fair amount of professional experience.
James C. Cartwright
333 Centerville Street
Centerville, La.
Telephone: (918) 898-7274
EDUCATION
College:
APPLYING FOR A JOB
SERVICE
1958-1960 U. S. Army
Enhsted as Pfc, honorably discharged as Staff Sgt.
Overseas duty in France, Germany
REFERENCES
Available on request
provide a good model and serve as a target for comments and criticism.
Let's study this resume line by line for its ten key components.
JOB OBJECTIVE
Regional Sales Manager
(or whatever job you are seeking)
There's nothing wrong with this suggestion. In many cases, though, it's
have mentioned this in a letter that you sent along with the resume, or
in the interview.
Date listings: The usual format is to have the dates stand alone in the
195
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
Job data: List first your title, and then the name of the company. This
helps the prospective employer place you in time and space.
Job description: This is the most difficult part of your resume, and the
most important. It is worth spending quite a bit of thought on before
you write the final draft. Your goal is to present yourself in the best
possible light, playing up your strong points and playing down your
weak ones. ( In the section "Special Situations" we'll discuss some de-
ceptions that you may want to use in case \'our best possible lights aren't
very good.
In preparing the job description, ask yourself: What did I do in this
job thatwould impress a prospective employer? Or you might ask: If I
were hiring somcbodv for the job I want to get, what sort of experience
would I look for? This is the kind of information you should try to get
into your job description.
Here's a checklist that may help you in composing your job descrip-
tion most effectively:
Can you indicate any unusual responsibility you've been given?
Can you give any examples of having helped the company grow?
Can you show how you saved monev for the company.
Can you show that you were promoted rapidly?
Did you receive any other form of recognition that would show
your ability? (For example, if your salary increased substantially
within a year or two or three, you might give this in terms of per-
centage to show your achievement dramatically.
When explaining why you're looking for a new job, or why vou left
Education: Give the name and location of your college, the degrees
you've earned, and the dates you earned them. If you didn't go to col-
lege, give the date of your high school graduation. Unless you're a
196
APPLYING FOR A JOB
the "Married" entry, and insert instead: "Marital Status: Married, three
children."
If you'd just as soon not mention that you ha\e children, leave it out
and don't mention it unless you're asked.
If you prefer to be discreet about the fact that you're di\orced or
Service: List the branch of service, and if you had substantial pro-
motions, \our beginning and leaving ranks. Mention any overseas duty.
It will make you feel better, and mav add a dash of color to the resume.
willing to pay, you're selling yourself short. If it's more than he's willing
A note on style
There are three possible styles of language in writing a resume, the
first-person style: "I did this,I worked as that, etc."; the third-person
style:"He did this, he worked on that, etc."; and the impersonal style:
"Did this, worked on that, etc."
The first-person style is apt to sound a bit egotistical, because you'll
find yourself putting "I" into almost every sentence, and if )ou'\ c a
The third-person style tends to pompositw The reader knows that you
197
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
prepared it, and cannot a\'oid wondering, "Whv does he pretend that
somebody else prepared it?"
The impersonal style is the easiest to read and quite easy to wTite.
ences. "How long did this man work for you?" a former employer
was asked.
"About four hours," was the quicky reply.
"Why, he told us he'd been there a long time," said the caller.
"Oh, yes," answered the ex-employer, "he's been here two years."
— The Wall Street Journal
198
APPLYING FOR A JOB
Resume of
Marjorie B. Major
120 Main Street
Centerville, Ky.
Telephone: MA 1-2345
OBJECTIVE
Laboratory Technician
B.Sc, 1970
Majored in Chemistry
Scholastic Average: B plus
Minored Mathematics
in
Scholastic Average: B plus
Scholarships:
1966-1967: Half-tuition scholarship
1967-1970: Full-tuition scholarships
Working Experience:
1968-1969 Laboratory Assistant, Chicago Downtown Hospital. Work
involved blood, urine analyses; record-keeping. Average
10 hours per week during the school year. Worked full-
E.\tracurricular activities
1966-1970 Chemistry Club; Treasurer 1968
1966-1970 Women's Tennis Team; co-captain 1969, 1970
Sorority: Alpha Alpha Alpha, Honorary Society of Chemistry De-
partment
199
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
Extracurricular activities:
Tennis Club; 1962-1966
Orchestra; 1962-1963
Glee Club; 1964-1966
PERSONAL
REFERENCES
author's xote: If the resume is for a young man, he \\all probably have
to put dowii his draft status. To leave it out \\ill onlv make the prospec-
ti\'e employer wonder why he has.
sulted in elimination of all but two senior employes." Or, "Reason for
lea\ing: Compan)' reorganization eliminated department."
If you were discharged because your work was unsatisfactory, put as
good a face on it as you can. One method is to state that this was simply
not the proper slot for vou. One useful cover-all statement: "Reason for
leaving: Position required different skills than I possessed."
This leaves unspoken the fact that you were fired, and is broad
enough to encompass everything from incompetence to the fact that
How?
Several solutions are possible, depending on your position in life.
200
HOW TO ASK FOR A RAISE
After you'\e worked successfully at a job for a while, you will
comes to a head, you are faced with a dilemma: If I ask and get
turned down, will I have to quit? How can I ask for a raise and
Appeal to fairness and the fact that a raise will help you work bet-
ter. Avoid such irritating comments as "Joe gets more than I do for
the same work" or "I have been doing mv work well for a year."
Similarly, when you're asking for a promotion, don't let your em-
plover think you assume that your seniority in the job automatically
entitles you to advancement or that you're guaranteed to follow
your co-workers up the promotion ladder. Show the e.xtra work you
are doing or the new responsibilities you have taken on that de-
serve extra pay or a promotion. Remember an employer expects
Whalen. Since I have had more training than the rest of the men,
J automaticalhi assumed most of his duties. This has entailed more
work and responsibility for me, and I have often worked late to
201
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
sultant gambit. It's not unusual for someone who's been working for
others for quite a while to trv to strike out on his own. And it's not un-
usual for someone who's tried to strike out on his o\\ n to fail. The world,
after all, is made up of 99.9 percent failures, and nobody really holds
that against anyone, since we're all pretty much in the same boat.
Here are two different versions of a "consultant" entry:
Another gambit that \ou might use to cover a gap in vour career is:
202
APPLYING FOR A JOB
Another solution is to be quite frank about it, but in terms that reflect
points.
A
good question to begin with is: "What's the main point I want to
get across?" Your answer might be, "My experience," or "My fast rise,"
or "My general sales ability." Whatever it is, this should be a major
point to emphasize in your covering letter. Call attention to it near the
beginning, because the prospective employer may be so harried that he
won't have time to read anything except the first paragraph or two be-
fore he turns to the resume.
Again, as with all of your other correspondence, keep the covering
letter short.
REPLYING TO A WANT AD
Read the ad carefully to try to get a feeling for what kind of experience
the emplo\'er is most interested in. ( The sample letter immediately be-
low, for example, answers an ad which stressed the employer's interest
in somebody with a broad background in production and with super-
visory experience.
It's a good idea to identif\' the date and newspaper in which the ad
you're answering appeared. The employer may have placed more than
one ad.
For the same reason, it's also a good idea to mention tlu^ kind of posi-
tion for which )Ou're applying.
Dear Sir:
Your advertisement for a production manager in the May 12 Journal
interested me because your requirements closely parallel my working
experience.
203
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
As the enclosed resume indicates, I've had more than ten years' ex-
perience in all phases of production. For the past eight years, I've super-
vised awork force of at least a dozen people.
be happy to tell more about mv experience in an interview. You
I'll
Dear Sir:
The sales job which you describe in vour advertisement in the Mirror
of April 19 is one for which I think I can show you some excellent
qualifications.
You ask for a "go-getter with proven experience." As you'll see from
my resume, I've turned in an above-average sales record for the past
five years, ever since entering the sales field.
If you're applying for a job for which your qualifications are poor,
then your letter might stress your personal qualifications, your zeal, and
your mllingness to learn
Dear Sir:
Ifan abilitv to take direction well, and to carrv out orders faithfully,
is important to you, then I may be a good man for the job you adver-
tised in the Chronicle of August 15.
The job sounds particularly interesting because it is precisely the kind
of work I have wanted to do for many years. My working experience
thus far has, I think, given me the attitudes and the understanding that
would enable me to learn the details of the position you've advertised.
I'd very much appreciate the chance to talk to you, and to get your
opinion on whether my background and inclinations would be suitable
for the job you offer.
I can be reached by telephone at 398-4123.
Sincerely,
204
APPLYING FOR A JOB
The latter choice is preferable. You only live once, and you might as
well spend your working hours doing a job for which you feel best
qualified. If you emphasize only a couple of points about yourself, you'll
lose the interest of some prospective employers who may have a job for
you which isn't do\\'n your alley, but you'll probabl\- attract the atten-
5. Below are four openings to covering letters. Which do you think is the
most effective and why?
a. Reference is made to your ad in The Courier Journal News of Jan. 3
for a sales manager with a "proven track record."
c. Would you consider a man with annual sales of $250,000 for each of
the last five years to have a "proven track record"?
205
16
Good writing
is good business
In business, words are as important as figures. Words make
sales and create good will, win new customers, and hold old
ones. Words can obtain credit, get bills paid, report on new
XXow do you say No to the best customer you ever had? How
do you reply to a just complaint (the washing machine that doesn't
rinse, the shrinkless shirt that shrinks)? How do you inquire about a
prospecti\ e customer's credit? How do you tactfully refuse credit to a
firm whose business you'd like to have? How do you begin a sales letter
which will really sell? How do you write a collection letter which won't
offend, but at the same time will bring you that long-overdue payment?
The skills involved in writing are never as important as they are to
your business. Your enterprise mav be large or small, an old established
company, or one just getting up off the ground. You may be dealing
with the ordinary day-to-day transaction or with the problem situations
which crop up in the normal course of events.
A skillful writer will cement and develop relations with an old cus-
tomer. A well-written letter will open the way for the development of
a new customer and for increased business. A carefully worded letter
sales. A smartly written letter can break through into areas you haven't
reached before, carry vour sales records to new highs.
And if you are the man or woman responsible for letters which keep
old customers happy, bring in new customers, and increase the volume
206
GOOD WRITING IS GOOD BUSINESS
of business, then you are certain to attract the attention of your super-
iors in the company. You will be in line for those promotions and salary
hikes you want and have earned.
In the next chapter you will learn ways to picture the people with
whom you correspond. There are sample letters you may study and
emulate and a checklist of eleven imperatives to help you create in your
mind the person who is to receive your letter.
Once you are satisfied with the picture you have created, you can
plan vour correspondence. Planning is important for almost any kind
of letter, but especially for the business letter.
List the details vour letter must cover, its purpose or purposes ( sales,
inquiry, follow-up, response ) . Then outline the order inwhich you will
write about these details, keeping in mind always the reason you are
writing.
Plan to be concise, direct, and easy to understand. Remember that
the ultimate aim of every business letter is to develop in your reader
the sense that his dealings with you will bring him profit and perhaps
pleasure.
In Chapter 18 you will find guidelines for planning whatever business
letter you must write, a variety of sample plan sheets for the variety
of business situations vou meet on a day-to-day basis, as well as an
analysis of their separate values.
Of course some letters are more difficult to plan and write than others,
as in the following examples.
An irate customer writes, "Not only have I not received the merchan-
dise I ordered; you haven't even acknowledged the order."
A young man writes, "I've lost my job and I can't continue the pay-
207
WRITING A LETTER OF RESIGNATION
If your job in an organization is not an important one, a verbal
resignation is all that is expected. However, if your job holds some
responsibilitv or if vou have held a position for a long time, it is a
good idea to explain in writing why you are leaving. This provides
5. Leave the door open for your employer to call you in and
oflFer a better arrangement.
Respectfully yours,
208
GOOD WRITING IS GOOD BUSINESS
You have been asked to extend credit to a customer and you can't do
it. You have been asked by a shopkeeper for the exclusive right to sell
your product and you can't give it to him. A large chain of drug stores
wants a special price from you on a huge purchase of your merchandise,
but in fairness to your other customers you can't give a special discount.
In each case, you'll have to write that big No. But how do you do it
with a smile, with a thank vou and the hope that your letter won't
drive off business, current or future? In Chapter 20 we discuss how to
Actually, every letter which leaves your office is in one way or another
a sales letter. Whether it is an inquiry, a response to an inquiry, a letter
acknowledging an order, or even a letter asking for payment on an
order, it carries the stamp of your firm, its personality, its approach to
business, its approach to its customers, present or future. It creates an
atmosphere about your company and its products; it makes for good
will and confidence; it makes for sales.
The sales letter itself is the direct "pitch" and warrants special an-
alysis and care in the writing. Its aim is obvious, but the elements which
will bring the desired results — sales — are not always so apparent.
The sales letter, its planning, its organization, and the results you
might expect from it, are explored in depth in Chapter 19.
Finally, Chapter 22 deals with business reports which, \'ou will dis-
cover, differ very little from the reports you wrote at school.
You are asked to write a report on the public preference for small
cars, as opposed to medium-sized and large cars. You are asked to de-
velop a report on the potential sale of frozen fish foods in New England,
or on the possibilities of housing developments in Alberta.
209
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
210
17
some digging. They learn all they can about the man his name, his —
occupation, his marital status, the number and ages of his children, his
income status, hobbies, likes and dislikes, and lots more.
Your language must be the reader's language. Armed with all the facts
211
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
Bill gets pleasure and satisfaction from the letter he receives. The
originator of the letter you answer gets cold, colorless information.
Form a new habit. Say, think, and feel, "Let's answer Bill Jones."
Know whom you're writing to. That's not easy. A great number of
your letters are written to people you've never met. You can't be the
212
PICTURE THE PEOPLE YOU ARE WRITING TO
direct salesman running around or phoning people who know the man.
He's a name and a number on a letterhead or a ledger card — an un-
known who wrote a letter of inquirx.
This you do know: He is an individual, filled with all the hopes, the
doubts, the fears, the human warmth, the failings, and the prejudices
you'll find in all individuals. But with each individual the quantities
vary. That's what makes them individuals.
ters. He knew these folks. He knew how they differed. A letter that
might have been fine for one of them would have been all wTong for
the other six.
The uniform letter would have made Dick feel George was getting
dumber. It would have made Barney think he was showing off. It
would have made Herbie think he'd lost his sense of humor. It would
have made Lowell think he'd become shallow and so on. —
When you stop to think about that in terms of the letters you write
to people unknown to vou, it's frightening, isn't it? Onlv one out of
seven would ha\'e been right. You can't afford to write business letters
that have so low a batting average.
WJiat con you do to compensate for not hatnng met or lieard anything
ohout the folks i/ou write to?
213
WBITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
By the time all the reports are assembled the sleuths could recognize
the wTiter on a dark night, lying face down in a pitch-black alley. They
know where he came from, what he does for a living, and when he had
his tonsils removed.
You don't need to set up the counterpart of a crime-detection labora-
tory. But you should learn to be a detective.
All inquiries tell you something about the writer. Any letter you re-
ceive —even a filled-in coupon from a magazine ad —can tell you some-
thing about the \\Titer. The part of the country it comes from tells you
a lot —big citv or small town. The envelope, the stationerv, the hand-
WTiting or typing, the manner of expression, the spelHng and punctua-
tion, even the name, tell a story. What he says, how it's expressed, the
question asked, the method of payment are all parts of a big jigsaw
puzzle. Your job is to put it together.
Letter detecting is not a time consumer. True, you'll take some extra
time when you first tackle this fascinating job. But if you give it your
full attention for few days, you'll soon find yourself doing it auto-
a
matically. As you pick up a letter, certain features will jump at you; you
will absorb the telltale marks at a glance. In seconds you'll have some
knowledge of the writer.
You won't alwa\'s be right. In some cases a further exchange of letters
will give you an entirely new picture of the writer. In other cases you'll
never find out you were wrong. But you will often hit the bull's-eye.
You will be right and you'll be writing far more effective letters.
As you perfect yourself as a letter detective vou'll be pleasantly
businesslike with Joe Blowe and folksy with Oscar Zilch. You'll spell it
out for John Jones and summarize for Paul White. You'll see the need
for flattering Tom Green and for laughing with Harry Johnson.
214
PICTURE THE PEOPLE YOU ARE WRITING TO
image.
That same reaction will take place once you've put a label on the
person who wrote the letter you're answering. But that isn't enough. It
isn't strong enough. Let the old friend vou remember become the person
who is to get a letter from you.
Write to a friend. The mental picture you have formed of the man
who wrote to you makes you think of your friend Horace. Sharpen your
memory of old Horace and mentally start your letter, "Dear Horace."
Keep Horace in there working for vou. Talk to Horace all through the
letter. He's somebodv you reallv know. You understand a great deal
about Horace. You'll be talking his language. As you write with Horace
on your mind, vour letter will come to life.
Gentlemen:
I'm 82 years old. I've never flown in a plane and alwavs promised
myself that maybe some day I would. My boy Harry willbe 50 this
July 8th coming and since he lives down in Dallas now I thought maybe
this is tlie time to keep that promise to myself.
Now I will tell you frankly a man my age gets nervous thinking about
things like being air sick and I hear you have to be strapped down the
whole time and another thing, I do not think I like the idea of nothing
but cold things to eat and though I hear it's done, I can't see how you
can safely cook in an airplane.
You send me the rates and let me know how long it takes and if you
have anything to sav about those other things I would like to know
about them.
Respectfully,
Martin Grimes
Can you picture Martin Grimes? Mental images of him may vary,
but take his handwritten letter and see what kind of portrait you can
draw^ No youngster, of course. He might be a spare man with a few
strands of pure white hair. There's a bit of a twinkle in his eye and a
good crop of well-embedded smile wrinkles in his face. He's senti-
mental. He likes to talk. There's a good measure of the .sport left over
from his younger days. He likes life and likes people. He realizes that.
215
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
at his age, he should take care of himself and feels just a little foolish
about taking his first flight at eighty-two. He's hoping that all of
his fears and doubts will be wiped out bv the answer he gets from the
airline. He's mighty anxious to fly.
wonderful as a first flight. And this will be a first flight in one of Bald
Eagle's 727 or 747 luxury liners. I'm excited about it myself. The things
I'm going to tell you make me feel that I'm the one bringing you and
your son together for this fine occasion.
I don't think you have anv reason to worr\- about motion sickness be-
cause reliable studies have proven that fewer people experience dis-
comfort or illness when flying than when riding in cars or trains. And
you can forget about being strapped down. For a few minutes when the
plane takes off^ and again when it lands your stewardess will ask you to
fasten your seat belt. During the rest of the flight you can get up, move
around, do whatever you want.
And here's another happy surprise. You'll be served a fine hot lunch
while in flight. This is possible because of the specially designed vacuum
containers and electrical heating elements that were created for this
very purpose. Hot coffee and cold milk are yours for the asking at any
time.
The flight you wouldmost enjoyable leaves Washington National
find
Airport at 8:55 on the morning of Julv 8th. Two hours and forty-five
minutes later, which is 10:40 Texas time, you'll be in Dallas, refreshed
and happy, saying "Happy Birthday" to your son. The round trip fare
is $250.00 first class and $200.00 economy class, which includes all
taxes, and vou pav nothing e.xtra for the fine luncheon you'll enjoy while
in the air.
Here's what I've done. have reserved a seat for you on that plane
I
so that we can take care of the details of your return flight and I'll ex-
plain, at that time, how you can pick up your ticket and make arrange-
ments for limousine service to National Airport. The phone number is
Executive 3-2080.
And when you see your son in Dallas, Mr. Grimes, please give him my
warm wishes for a happy birthday too.
Cordially,
Herbert Pflaum
Sales Manager, Washington Office
Bald Eagle Airlines
216
PICTURE THE PEOPLE YOU ARE WRITING TO
adopted created a letter that blended with his mental image of his
potential passenger. Had he been face to face with Mr. Grimes he
would have used the same language he put on paper.
There will be times when the letter vou receive is cold and formal. The
writer of any letter ishuman being even though his manner
a of writing
business letters may fail to reveal his human qualities. Far too manv
charming indi\'iduals have the unfortunate notion that business cor-
respondence should be devoid of warmth and color.
have never seen a copy. The facts that have come to my attention and
the literature forwarded to me by your office lead me to surmise that the
weekly issues may bring to my attention timely news of the industry.
In consideration of the fact that I am immensely busy and the nature
of my duties requires an exceptional amount of reading I am reluctant
to burden myself with additional matter. If, therefore, your publication
is not in excess of a single letter-size sheet this is vour authorization to
In your letter vou have summarized the very reason why Television
Digest was created. was brought into existence because the leaders of
It
As you will see when you examine the sample copy I'm giving you with
this letter,each issue displays a "Summary-Index of the Week's News"
at the top of page one. At a glance vou'll see which articles you want to
read. The rest of the issue will make no demands on your time.
There is no need for you to take the time to reply to this letter, Mr. L.
Because the Digest will enable you to cut down on your weekly read-
ing time, and because you will not have more than a page or two of
important facts to read, I'm taking the liberty of entering your annual
subscription unless I hear from you to the contrary.
My warmest thanks.
Sincerely,
Martin Codel
Trade on the writer's likes and dislikes. That's exactly what Martin
Codel did in his letter of replv. Mr. L. had concealed his personality
behind an iron curtain of flutter-butter, old-fashioned language. But he
gave publisher Codel a break. He told him what he liked and didn't
like. In his reply Mr. Codel was a personable human being telling, in
clear, compelling terms, why Television Digest would give Mr. L. just
what he wanted.
218
PICTURE THE PEOPLE YOU ARE WRITING TO
counterclaims.
Respectfully,
J.D.B.
Mr. F. replied:
219
\\'RITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
Mr. F.'s letter reveals his proper mental picture of this civic-minded
businessman. His letter is devoid of tugs at the heartstrings. It is
Dear Gentlemen,
My wife and I are talking about buying a home. Last week we went
to the Home Show and at your booth we got a copy of your booklet,
"How to Borrow Money to Buy or Build a Home."
Now we have got our eye on a house and we are worried about the
finances and that is why we were so interested in your book. In the
book I notice that you talk about these FHA loans and you say that if
we want an FHA loan we have to come to you or somebody like you,
and you talk about the fees we pay when vou get the loan for us.
Well we pay taxes and if the government is putting up money to lend
people who want houses I do not see why we should have to pay you
for getting us that money. I have plent)' of free time and can go down
there to the FHA oflRces myself and work things out with them which is
what I guess you would do to earn that fee. But I called them up and
got a real run around and a lot of fancy talk I didn't understand. That is
why I am writing to you. Please be honest with me and tell me who I
should see at FHA so that I can arrange for the loan from them myself
and save those fees which I sure can use.
Very respectfully,
William T.
220
PICTURE THE PEOPLE YOU ARE WRITING TO
you a ring to see if he can give you any further help. Thanks so much
for letting me explain how we can help home buyers.
Sincerely,
G.W.D.
President
221
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
the company took the time and trouble to make a highly complicated
subject completely clear. He did it with understanding and with
warmth. He spared the reader any feeling of inferiority by saying for
him that most folks deal with the complexities of a mortgage only once
in a lifetime. He could see the man behind the letter and he spoke as a
man to a man in explaining this common problem.
You have seen how four different businessmen applied the principle of
picturing the people they were writing to and produced creative per-
sonal letters to meet problem situations. Now you will want to apply
the system yourself. Here are the main considerations you should keep
in mind >vhen picturing the people you write to.
1. Start with the attitude that you must create confidence and a
warm feeling about your company.
2. Keep in mind the fact that you are selling and must think as a
salesman.
4. To talk his language you must stop answering letters and start
answering people.
6. Form the habit of studying every inquiry for clues to the writer's
nature and personality.
9. When answering a cold, formal letter, dig a little deeper till you
find something that represents the writer or, at least, his basic interests.
understanding.
222
PICTURE THE PEOPLE YOU ARE WRITING TO
1. Dear Boatbuov:
What kind of business do vou run? When I went on vacation two
weeks ago ordered the paper discontinued. Today I came back to
I
wasn't robbed. I'm not going to pay for those papers. If you have any
sense you'll fire the jerk who kept on delivering them.
Sincerely yours,
was delivered every day. That was both wasteful and dangerous. The
outdated papers are useless to me, and their presence could have at-
tracted thieves. I do not feel that vour deliverviuan showed good judg-
ment, and I do not expect to be billed for this period.
Yours truK',
if she were a public department. I treat her with the knowledge that
she is a woman." — Lucy, Chamber's Journal, January 30, 1915.
223
18
And there is a pretty good chance the person getting the letter written
under those circumstances will forget it too. That is, assuming he reads
it at all!
Too many people treat letters like those "bad pennies" that keep turn-
ing up even when you concentrate on avoiding them. It's a shame, be-
cause letters offer a beautiful opportunity to make a good impression
on other people — and have them think well of both the writer and the
company he works for.
But making that kind of impression takes thought; it won't just hap-
pen automatically when the letter is finished and mailed. Once you
have established a pattern of thinking out a letter before you start writ-
ing, your letters will improve — and writing will be more fun and take
less effort.
224
PLAN YOUR LETTERS BEFORE YOU WRITE
Make sure you have all the details about the situation your letter will
cover.
Know the main reason you're writing. Sound stupid? Well, consider:
Is your letter to cool off an angrv complainer, to quote a price, to say
No to a request? Whatever the main reason, have it firmly in mind
before writing; aim at getting it into the letter as soon as possible; and
make it clear.
If your letter is to lead to direct action, be sure you say what it is,
Before you do anything, set aside a specific time for handling your
correspondence — a time when you will not be interrupted. Good plan-
ning requires concentration. We suggest the first hour in the morning.
Phones seldom ring, guests seldom visit that early. And your thoughts
are sharper first thing; they haven't yet been cluttered with the day's
problems.
Write notes to yourself when you plan, but don't write the letter
until you've phrased it in your mind. That way you'll avoid using words
and phrases that are unnatural.
and health insurance companies used some simple Plan Sheets. They
act as a guide to the thoughts vou should ha\e clear in your mind be-
fore you get one word on paper.
The company studied hundreds and hundreds of letters, and dis-
covered a surprising thing. You write really only three different kinds
of letters: one that you originate; a reply to another; and a follow-up.
225
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
Once vou have filled out vour Plan Sheet, your letter is practically
written — and you are not in danger of forgetting anything that should
be included.
Gentlemen:
Although I address this letter "Gentlemen," I'm not so sure vou are.
When I you have had men talking with my neighbors, my
find out that
bank, probably even my tailor to find out what kind of guy I am —
doubt seriously that you are gentlemen.
I filled out all the questions your agent asked and truthfully. Why —
do vou have to check up with everyone else about me?
You had better have a good explanation or else you can tell your —
agent he can keep the policy. I don't want it.
Joseph Street
Angry? You bet. And your job is to write Mr. Street. Certainly you
wouldn't want to tackle this answer without having planned it well! But
because you may not be familiar with insurance practices, here is some
background you would need before filling out the Plan Sheet for replies.
1. On large policies, most life insurance companies conduct investi-
gations into the financial, physical, moral, and family background of
the applicant.
2. The purpose is to confirm the facts given by the applicant; be cer-
tain the risk is a good one; be sure the applicant can carry this amount
of insurance without a problem.
3. By insuring the best prospects insurance companies can keep
costs for insurance down, and pay better dividends.
4. In this instance, Mr. Street applied for $20,000 and he did pass the
inspection. Now the company is ready to issue the policy.
OK? Let's work out the Plan Sheet. ( See opposite page.
Now, putting all those points together, here's our reply:
226
PLAN YOUR LETTERS BEFORE YOU WRITE
227
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
and other persons who know vou best are all in agreement that you are
an excellent prospect for insurance.
Thanks to your friends, we know you better and look forward to wel-
coming you as one of our nearly 2 million insureds.
Cordially,
228
PLAN YOUR LETTERS BEFORE YOU WRITE
4. WHY?
1)
.^1 ^"~"~—
Ask Ouestion C^wareness of Reader's Problem
229
\M\rrE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
—
Eight cents isn't a big amount, Mr. Smith we'd be the first to agree.
That is why we can readily understand vour asking us to include a
stamped return envelope with vour charge notices.
But when you take the cost of putting a 8<^ stamp on each return
envelope, multiply it by the more than 3 million bills that go out
in a year, vou have a figure of over $240,000! And when you con-
sider that our operating costs must go into the costs of our profits, you
can quickly see why, in these days of soaring costs, we don't want to
saddle our customers with any extras.
We do want vou to know how grateful we are for every suggestion
that would enable us to give our customers better service. We appreciate
your taking the time to send us yours.
Thank you.
The PROBLEM: 1. You've enlisted in the air force —and the only thing
holding up vour acceptance is a medical report that was requested of
your personal physician.
2. Twice you've written. Twice there's been no reply. And time is
running short for vou. This letter has to do the trick. Here's where the
Plan Sheet vyill help.
Would you send those records, if you received this follow-up?
Dear Doctor:
Is my heart bad?
Let's be realistic. Planning this way takes time — and you wouldn't
make out a Plan Sheet for every letter you needed to write. Just the
230
PLAN YOUR LETTERS BEFORE YOU WRITE
5. POINTS TO COVER:
2)-
4)
231
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
difficult ones. But it may pay dividends to plan all your messages this
Then you can reserve filling out such sheets for those really compli-
cated messages or those that require considerable tact.
Having done all the things we've talked about, put yourself into the
shoes of the person you're WTiting to and test your reaction. If you still
wear a smile when you're done, you have probably written a darn good
letter.
inefficiencyon our part. I have tried to track down the reason for this er-
ror, butseems to be one of those mysterious things that happen in an
it
age when men are dependent on machines, when employes are some-
times not as conscientious as we would like, and when we must keep
accounts straight for 279,483 charge customers. This, I am sure you will
agree, requires a lot of bookkeeping, and inevitably we do slip up as —
we did in your case.
Our only defense is that we try to streamline our methods in order to
reduce overhead and continue to give the lowest prices possible. I do
hope you will forgive us and let us continue to serve vou. We value
your patronage and good will and regret the inconvenience we have
caused you.
Sincerely,
George Gorgewell
Customer Representative
232
19
How to write
sales letters
233
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
Only a few of every hundred circular letters that reach the average
executive's desk are read. With these odds against you, it is easy to see
why your letter has to have an interesting and exciting beginning.
The most important sentence in a sales letter is the first one, because
in a large percentage of all letters it is the only sentence that is read.
The first sentence has one key function : to attract enough favorable at-
234
HOW TO WRITE SALES LETTERS
2. An anecdote or joke:
One time when Lady Astor was making a speech, she admitted: "We
women DO talk a lot, but even then we don't tell half we know!"
This is a story of a SUCCESSFUL CHALLENGE . . .
I'd like to tell you about a teacher who built a fortune of one million
dollars in the stock market, yet who never made a salary of more than
$6,000 in his life.
How did he do it? Not bv anv hit-and-miss method, but by carefully
searching for investments v\ith "special" features that others had over-
looked. When he found one that satisfied him, he invested some of his
savings and waited for it to "work out."
3. A startling fact:
235
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
4. An analogy:
There's a firm in Ohio no larger than vours that secured 104 new
accounts and made $19,500 two months from a $5.87 business invest-
in
ment. And did it, mind vou, without any special oflFer of any kind.
Men have much in common besides tonsils.
5. A startling oflFer:
Special Ofi^er to Subscribers Only!
Here's a book we consider so important that we'll send you a copy to
read for 5 full days entirely at our expense!
A NEW IDEA—
and I guarantee vou'll like it!
Here's a bargain in good reading for the whole family that I don't
think you'll want to pass up.
If you haven't yet met HORIZON, we invite you now to see a maga-
zine made like a quite spectacular illustrated book;
to sample its extraordinary range of contents: arts and ideas from the
ancient to the avant-garde, from civilizations familiar and foreign; and
to subscribe on exceptional terms, available for a short time only:
$6 less than usual.
Dear Reader,
Once or twice in a reading lifetime, a book comes along which is .so
important, so enthusiastically praised by the experts, and .so outstand-
ingly successful that no well-informed person would wish to miss the
opportunity of reading it.
236
HOW TO WRITE SALES LETTERS
office —
planning problems. Doctor and so we are pleased to enclose our
popular color folio.
It took our editors two vears to gather the material for this handbook.
—
You get it FREE by just returning the enclosed card today.
You get over 100 inspiring sales promotion ideas that have paid oflF
"
A copy of ," one of the most popular and provocative little
It will take you less than a minute to fill out and return the enclosed
postage-paid card entitling you to a free copv of "Forging Ahead in
Business." BUT, IT WILL TAKE AT LEAST AN HOUR TO READ
THE BOOKLET AND ABSORB ITS CONTENTS.
We are reserving in your name a valuable booklet entitled
"-
237
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
This letter is for the smartest girl in your office (part of the inside
address).
Dear Reader:
You have been selected to receive a free copy of Volume I, Number 1,
of SHOW BUSINESS, the exciting new magazine of the performing
arts.
If you're the kind of man this letter was written for, you like the idea
of finding new ways to do things better, and you like saving money, too.
And if that's the way you
like to do business, you very probably count
on some kind of appointment book or desk calendar to help you keep
track of appointments, meetings, dates, and all the other things you can't
afford to forget.
This is important.
You probably are one of the more than eighty-four million people in
the United States who own lifeinsurance. You own life insurance be-
cause you recognize the obligation you owe to your loved ones.
You are part of a group of teachers and dealers to whom we are offer-
ing — FREE —an issue of the Plan.
"Dear Sir:"
which starts this letter in lieu of your name doesn't have the personal
impact of several other no-name salutations: "Dearest," for instance,
or "Greetings." But what I have to say, and to sell, is nevertheless in-
238
HOW TO WRITE SALES LETTEI«
tended for u man who has a quality of mind and a range of problems
and aspirations similar to yours.
In every company there is one man to whom others come when de-
cisions must be made. This letter is addressed to you as the man in your
company who carries this responsibility.
If you are looking for a wav to "Get Rich Quick" by speculating in the
stock market, this letter is not intended for you.
May I ask a favor of vou — the kind of favor I would not mind doing
if I were in your place?
I want to do vou a favor. A favor that can put vou on the threshold of
the greatest pro^/-making opportunities of your lifetime.
you. Wluit do t/ou tJiink. Mr. Brown? ininicdiately makes Mr. Brown
239
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
part of vour letter. The question mav be used in the opening to create
attention, to convince, to emphasize a point, or to get action.
IS THERE DANGER
In a "Wait-and-See" Policy?
Did you ever stop to question HOW a certain record is being written
in your office and WHY it is written that way?
WOULDN'T IT BE WONDERFUL
IF YOU COULD LAUGH
THIS SUMMER
at every customer who walks in your office and gasps
"It's the heat — it's the humidity — it's unbearable!"
You can have your laugh, because your office will be COMFORT-
ABLE . . . THANKS TO A ROOM AIR CONDITIONER.
240
HOW TO WRITE SALES LETTERS
experience that will arouse his interest and make him receptive.
Is there any music vou'd rather hear this evening than your boy's
voice ringing out "Hello, Daddy."
Dear Doctor:
Thetitle Doctor sounds good, doesn't it? You worked hard for it;
—
you have every right to be proud of it and it's still kind of new. You'll
probably find some other things new to vou in the months to come as
you start to establish yourself in your profession and build a practice.
Don't be embarrassed!
241
LETTERS YOU DON'T HAVE TO WRITE
A RECENT SPEECH bv Maxwell C. Ross, a well-known sales promo-
tion expert, listed fifteen ways letters can be used to create good
will —and, eventually, sales. "There's just one prerequisite," he said;
"the person using them has to be a nice guy, courteous, friendly,
and above all, sincere."
time for me to sit down with you, Jim, and go over your insurance
in the light of the new tax changes. I suggest that we get together
late Friday afternoon. How would four o'clock be? " You don't need
to much more, but you'll be
say surprised at the nice reception you
get when you arrive.
3. Whenever a customer or client has been promoted or has
changed jobs, it's a nice gesture to send a letter like this: "Congratu-
4. When a customer is ill all you need to say is: "I'm certainly
sorry to hear that you are laid up. I hope it won't be many days
before you're back at your desk."
5. When there is a death in the family. If it's tactfully done a
you because you went out of your way to do something nice for
somebody else.
need to be long or fancy. Perhaps: "I hope you are enjoying getting
242
settled in your new home." If you have something to sell, tell these
243
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
Once YOU have aroused reader interest by the beginning of your sales
letter,you must go on to convince the prospect. This is the job of the
body of the letter. Although sales points xarv with the product, the
basic objectives are to explain what the product can do for the reader
and to conxince him that your claims are true. If you know and believe
in your product thoroughly and sincerely, the body of the sales letter
will be the easiest part to write. Before vou tackle it, make certain that
you know not only your product's virtues but also its faults. Then sell
yourself on what you are selling. When the reader finishes a good sales
letter, he should feel that the writer really believes in the product he's
and the company he represents.
selling
one operation.
Wage statement on employe's check or cash pay
slip, on earnings-
^1
The wholesome fun your youngster has whenever an issue of
arrives.
You've seen how he enjoys the page after page of stories . . . pic-
tures . . . games . . . riddles . . . jokes news and good comics
. . .
that are in every issue of this first complete newspaper for children.
244
HOW TO WRITE SALES LETTERS
You've watched how eagerly he follows the sport tips from the experts
. . . the latest scientific findings . . . the do-it-yourself experiments.
You've noticed how he learns about hobbies . . . different occupa-
tions . . . pet care . . . musical instruments . . . good books and cul-
ture from other lands.
Yes, bv bringing into your home, you're giving your young-
ster a great deal of wholesome, educational pleasure.
When you look over the enclosed Reply-O-Letter samples, note how
easy they make it for your customers and prospects to say "Yes!"
There's nothing to sign — —
no postage to pay and the card staxj.'i with
the letter until the receiver is ready to act.
The address automatically becomes the "signature" — that's part of
the magic of Reply-O-Letter.
You immediately sense the value of having the replv card icith the
letter. That way it can't be misplaced. It is always at the receiver's
fingertips, readv to be rushed on its wav back to vou.
Stated siniph — make it easy for people to act and you get better results!
The secret's in the scale. Now typewriter margins can be set before
paper is inserted in the machine. Now your typists can center headings
with ease and perfection. Absolutelv no "margin math" is ever needed.
Nor is it necessary to move the typewriter carriage.
With the perfect positioning scale there's no fumbling ... no fig-
CREATING CREDIBILITY
Today's customer is a skeptic who wants everything proved to him. As a
result sales letters make a special effort to proye their point. This may
be done by any of the following devices.
I. The guarantee:
But that's not all we offer. If for some reason the prepared material
doesn't cover vour particular situation, our advertising department will
be glad to apply its skill and experience to ijour promotional problems.
There is no charge for this personalized advertising service. It is one of
the manv extra services we have set up for vou.
2. Free sample:
Will you please tell us the name of the person in your organization
who is responsible for the methods vou use in writing, routing, and
supervising office and factory records?
245
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
3. Free trial:
If at the end of the 10 days, vou feel that is not the answer
4. Testimonials:
report the astounding results from the use of Scott's Seed and Turf
Builder. This is my first experience with Scott's and I am delighted."
Read what others say who are sorry now that they did not start
sooner. Our many satisfied users are our best advertisement. For ex-
ample, Mrs. Fluelleh writes . . .
246
HOW TO WRITE SALES LETTERS
The Upsilon Co., of St. Louis, has carried subscriptions for 30 or more
of their men for years. And their history has been one of continually
increasing sales volume.
and in the meantime have grown to be one of the most successful houses
in that area.
6. Statistics of acceptance:
More than 10,000 managers have found these books active sales
sales
aids to the men on it be a good investment to get
the road. Wouldn't
for all your salesmen to help them plan for more effective sell-
ing and better results?
Over sixteen million owners attest to the fact that Ronson is truly The
World's Greatest Lighter.
When you received this letter, you felt something inside the envelope.
You consciouslv or unconsciously asked yourself, "What can this be?"
So —you opened it.
247
WRITE BETTEK, SPEAK BETTER
The unusual thing about the special services that you get is the fact
you no more. Compare prices:
that they cost costs far less
when you consider the extra wear (not tear!) you get from all your
washables!
We had two calls this morning for young ladies to stay in homes
where they can earn their room and board and we have not run
. . .
Here are a few interesting facts about the last issue you received:
To produce it for vou, our 16 traveling editors consulted more than
200 plants, interviewed more than 300 key men in industry, and covered
over 8000 miles!
The last part of a sales letter is the clincher, the extra deciding point
that will turn the reader into a customer. This may be a special bargain
offer, a time limitation, or merely a summary of your previous argu-
ments. If a letter deals with several points, it is wise to recapitulate
before you make your final appeal. Here are a few endings that have
been used successfully:
Do this today. Mail the postage-free card in the window of this let-
ter. Get it in the mail now so that these THREE GREAT HOLIDAY
BONUSES can be yours without a penny's cash outlav! Don't wait put
your best foot forward for the Holiday Bonuses. You'll be glad you did.
—
Because only a limited number of these new aids is available, it's im-
possible for me to send more than one to each teacher. So please do not
order more than one for yourself. As soon as more become available, I'll
.see to it that you get as many as you need. There's no obligation for this
helpful service, of course.
248
HOW TO WRITE SALES LETTERS
2. Time urgency:
Our wants so much for you to have the benefits of this course
director
now that she has arranged a special gift for you if you enroll promptly.
Fill out the enclosed order form.
Drop it in the mail BEFORE SATURDAY, MAY 5th—and we will send you
your own personal copy of this lavishly illustrated annual.
4. Increase in price:
The low prices, effective till December 31, are listed below. You'll
notice they give you a 10 percent saving if you send your check with
your order.
5. Personal pride:
249
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
The above card requires neither postage nor signature. Just drop it in
the mail and you will receive full information about the plan and the
verv' useful tax facts booklet.
Jot your name on the card above right now — then drop the it in mail.
I'll you get
see that this timely, helpful information —without any cost
or obligation on your part.
7. Salesman's call:
You will hear from our nearest division office in a few days . . .
Thorough as this folder may be, vou can't really see the full value
of until you see it "in the flesh." Our representative at your
neighborhood A. B.C. store will be happy to show you his display . . .
The unprecedented demand for our booklet during the past few
months has exhausted our supply. We are taking the liberty of enclosing
a leaflet . . .
250
20
How to say No
with a smile
When you have to say No to a customer, must it mean los-
ing his business? The answer is No! You can turn down un-
quires you to judge customers and say, "This one is the right kind of
customer. This one is not."
Perhaps in personal contact selling, where we meet our customers on
frequent occasions and have the opportmiity to assess them, we can
pass such judgments. For letter writers such opportunities are rare.
But even the right kind of customer must be told No on some occa-
sions. Your job is to decide when and how to do that.
Your attitude writes the letter. Most often you are faced with the
possibilitv of having to turn someone down when \ou've received a
letter of complaint, a letter asking for adjustment, a letter asking for
credit, or a letter asking for something extra. The attitude you take
when you have read such a letter determines the nature of your answer.
251
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
If the letter you read makes you indignant, scornful, suspicious, or un-
happy and you retain that attitude while writing the reply, you will
write a bad letter.
out a mailing campaign to make the name of the firm well known to
all tourist-court and motel owners in their trading area. To get the ball
many of these sturdy metal floor lamps as you want for whatever you
care to pay. Do not pay more than $3.50."
Within two weeks the entire stock of some 2500 lamps was sold at
an average price of $3.00! Sure, a few people took advantage and
bought lamps for 25^ each, but the vast majority paid a fair price.
That example offers a basis for your considerations when you receive
a letter containing what might seem like an unwarranted beef or an
unreasonable demand.
People want admiration. They want to appear fair, honest, and gen-
erous. All of us enjoy being admired. If anyone tells you, "So-and-so
said you're a good person to deal with," your chest puffs up. You are
susceptible to that kind of flattery; so are the people who write to you.
When anyone gets worked up to the point that he feels impelled to
sit down and write a letter of complaint, or to demand something, he
And people are lazy. People don't take the time and trouble to write
letters of complaint or adjustment unless they are moved strongly.
252
HOW TO SAY NO WITH A SMILE
Weigh the human values before saying No. Taking these faetors into
consideration, you can't escape the conclusion that most angry letters
are wTitten because the writer has a powerful con\ iction that he's right.
Sure, there are the chronic troublemakers, the people who spend the
better part of their lives writing letters to the editor and to city hall.
But they're a small minority. You can't afford to view your correspond-
ent as one of them. The safest course is to assume that everyone who
writes vou is convinced that his cause is just. Most often vou'll be right.
the writer's viewpoint vou are capable of writing a refusal that reflects
that sympathy. Such a letter strikes a responsive chord. So the first
his conclusions. That puts \ou in a position to explain the reasons why
it can't be done from his standpoint. It's just possible that some of the
requests you normally would turn down should be granted. If that is
the outcome of your reasoning both the complainant and your company
gain. Even if the request or complaint is out of the ordinary, if vou de-
cide that it is just, you make the customer happy and you advertise the
fact that your organization is fair and unselfish.
But often there is no getting around it: you have to say No.
The top layer consists of something the reader wants to know —some-
The middle lai/er is a fat meaty filling of the reasons
thing pleasing.
why you must refuse. The final layer, like the first, is something pleas-
ing —something you will do.
In a moment we'll elaborate on that sandwich. First let's put the
"poison" label on some of the common faults of refusal letters.
SAY NO NICELY
There is no need to offend. And be careful to avoid statements like "I'm
sorry, but it is against the company's policy to do what you ask." You
might just as well say, "Me, I'm a nice Joe, but the heels I work for
have some cockeyed rule that says you can't have it."
253
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
liar." "I don't believ e you." If the writer says that he received something
with several parts missing and you have cause to restate the case in your
reply, which of these sounds better to you: "You claim that several
parts were missing" or "I understand that several parts were missing?"
can do, anything I can offer, anything I can say that will please this per-
son? There's always something. Start your letter with the best of those
somethings.Now you come to that big, ugly No.
You can say No and make most people like it bv a full explanation,
demonstrating that a request was given great consideration.
Explain a refusal in detail. Your explanation should take into account
the reader's viewpoint. Show that great consideration was given his
individual request, that it wasn't lumped with issues raised a long time
ago and then established as general policy.
Finall)', you end up with that bottom layer of the sandwich: some-
thing you will do or something very pleasing. The end of your letter is
always the part remembered longest. Leave the reader with a good
taste in his mouth. In some cases vou may have nothing more pleasing
to offer than the item you used for the top layer — the opening of your
letter. In that case, restate it, rephrase it, remind him of it.
payments. I think I owe you for three months right now. It takes a lot
of money to start a shop, fix it up and get all the tools and equipment.
Everybody's been very nice to me. The companies I approached have
all agreed to give me credit even though I'm new and never did any busi-
ness with them before. Well, you folks have known me for nearly .six
254
HOW TO SAY NO WITH A SMILE
months now and until recently I've always paid on time. You know what
can he made in this husiness and from the good grades and reports I've
had on my assignments 1 think t/oti know 1 have what it takes to make
this business a success.
So I'm asking you to do wJiat the people who don't knoic me have
done. I want to complete the course just as fast as I can. The more I
know the better I can do, but I icant you to give me credit. I want to
finish the course and pay you when the shop .starts earning money.
Maxjbe six months from now, I'll have an easy time paying. In the
meantime keep me going and you can count on getting your money
when I'm through. I've got to hold on to all my money for working
capital.
I'll appreciate your cooperation.
Very truly yours,
John Johnson
The Institute has no financial arrangements that would make it pos-
sible for them to okav such a request. This was their reply:
Dear Mr. Johnson:
You are absolutely right. The assignments I've received from you,
and the experience vou have had, give me great faith in the success of
your new enterprise. And don't worry at all about being behind on your
last payments.
After reading your letter this morning I took it to Mr. Smith's office
and we discussed some length. We're both verv pleased with your
it at
progress, your ambition, and the bright future you face. It was our con-
clusion, however, that we'd be doing you a great disservice if we did the
easy thing and said Yes to vour suggestion. We've seen lots of students
start businesses of their own. Manv made good but there are some who
didn't. We want to see you make good.
It is never a good idea to start a business in debt. Credit is fine and
useful. But normal credit generallv means that you pay what is owed in
thirty davs' time. If we agreed to vour plan, you would be building up
a debt for six months or a year. In time, despite liow well your business
might be doing, that debt would become a burden. It is not a healthy
way to start. You are far better off if you keep yourself current, know-
ing what vour fixed expenses are each month and meeting them. When
you consider that, I'm sure vou'll agree that it is the only soimd way to
launch your new career.
Of course we know what a burden it is to start a new shop. For that
reason, and because we want to help in every way we can, I have told
the bookkeeping department to adjust the books so that you are on a
current basis. The three months vou owe for now can be paid for at the
end of the course. That gets vou off to a fresh, new start.
To give you some additional help I'm enclosing one of our folders,
"How to Open Your Own Shop." This is always sent to our students
255
MARK TWAIN SAYS NO
When 1364 sweeter and better people, including the author, have
tried to dramatize Tom Sawyer and did not arrive, what sort of show
do you suppose vou stand? That is a book, dear sir, which cannot be
dramatized. One might as well try to dramatize a hvmn.
Now as I understand it, dear 1365, you are going to re-create
Tom Sawyer dramatically, then put me in the bills as father of this
shady offspring. Sir, do you know that this kind of compliment has
destroyed people before now? Listen.
and stopped to rest, all the town came out to look. A Piute squaw
named her baby for me; other attentions were paid me. Last of all
dent himself said to me, "I am as sorry as I can be for you, but you
see how it is: there are 132 of them already, and 14 precincts to be
heard from. The circumstance has brought your name into most
wide and unfortunate renown. It causes much comment, some —by
patrons who know only the statistics without the explanation
offensive and even violent. Nine students have been called home.
The trustees of the college, growing more and more uneasy — along
with the implacable increase in your census —have charged me with
the unpleasant duty of receiving your resignation."
256
HOW TO SAY NO WITH A SMILE
when they've completed the course, but I thought you'd find it helpful
now. The best of good luck to you!
Cordially,
Harry Paul
The strongest statement in this letter is, "After reading your letter
this morning I took it to Mr. Smith's office."
When John Johnson is told that his request was considered important
enough to warrant an executive conference you've made a friend even
though you do turn him down. Look for the sandwich in the letter.
You can refuse with a smile. The credit manager of a women's ap-
parel shop received a letter asking for a charge account. A routine
check showed that the applicant had accounts at several other local
stores and was not meeting her obligations. The manager had to refuse
the application but wanted to sell his store. Some day the customer
may be a good credit risk. In the meantime she can be a cash customer.
report and I am convinced it would not be wise for you to take on added
obligations now. That's why I'm making this letter an invitation.
Why don't you visit with me the next time you're in the store, Mrs.
Applier? Perhaps, from the variety of experiences I have had helping
people with monev matters, I might be able to give you some thoughts
that could prove valuable to you. I'll be delighted to be of as.sistance
and I'm sure the store shares my feelings.
Sincerely,
2.57
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
troubled person with many delinquent bills would be better off con-
solidating her debts by securing a personal loan. But whether Mrs. Ap-
plier accepts his invitation or not, it is logical to assume she will have a
warm feeling toward the store that offers a sympathetic, helping hand.
Any time the credit manager devotes to such counseUng can bring un-
told dividends in good will, customer loyalty, and priceless word-of-
mouth advertising.
Now the president of the drug chain had written. He said he would
like to take on the manufacturer's full line for all his stores, but he
wanted to buy direct, bypassing the salesman. If the manufacturer
agreed, the chain would expect lower prices since there would be no
sales commission to pay.
The oflFer was tempting, for the volume would be considerable. But
this company protected its salesmen. They knew that they would be
258
HOW TO SAY NO WITH A SMILE
it continues to grow not only because we are so careful about the uni-
form high quality of our products and the popular demand we have
created with national advertising, but because every field man we have
has been trained to help our retail customers to make extra profits.
"If we accepted this offer and eliminated the salesman we could re-
duce the prices but we'd be reducing Mr. P's turnover and profits too.
These people are wonderful merchandisers but our men are specialists.
They have never failed to show retailers how to make the most of our
products, our promotions, our in-the-store merchandising. Our agree-
ment to their offer would give them a surface advantage but would
deprive them of a bigger, more important advantage. We'd be doing
them a serious disservice."
What Mr. Osgard said is abundantly true. One additional considera-
tion is that our business has on loyalty and good faith. We
been built
cannot violate those with our salesmen any more than we can with our
customers.
Your business is so much to be desired it is difficult for me to reject
you on any terms. If it suits your convenience I am planning to catch an
early morning flight to Boston next Tuesday. I'll be delighted if you'll
see me and our local man, Mr. Hammond, at ten o'clock that morning.
The timing is particularly appropriate for we have news of a dramatic
new national promotion about to be launched. When you hear the de-
tails I know it will appeal to your fine merchandising sense and you will
Cordially,
Claude Snow, President
Mr. Snow got his appointment. He did not make a sale at that meet-
ing, but did win the chain's business within the vear. The letter quoted
above was an important factor, for it led the drug chain's president to
the inescapable conclusion that Mr. Snow's company stood for outstand-
ing integrity.
259
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
plies the dealer firms and their salesmen with advertising and sales
training materials. The firm offers a basic subscription to the dealer plus
supplementary kits for each of their salesmen. One morning's mail
brought this letter from an organization that employs an exceptional
number of salesmen:
Gentlemen:
Thank you for sending me samples of i/our MSS service. It looks quite
interesting and I can see where ive coidd use it to excellerit advantage.
We are considering taking a basic subscription plus eighty-six salesmen's
kits.
If we do take the service we will make full use of it. In other tvords
ice ivillbe using your neicspaper mats and sales letters and literature
extensively. We cover our territory thoroughly and I would icant your
assurance that we will be given exclusive use of your material for this
area before we enter into any agreement with you.
I look forward to your reply.
Sincerely yours,
R.M.A.
Kalb, Voorhis & Co. does not offer the service on an exclusive basis.
They answered Mr. A's letter in this manner:
Dear Mr. A.,
Your interest in the MSS service is as fine a tribute as we could hope
for. There are few retailing organizations in the country who liave won
the reasons why this is impractical, however, I think you'll agree that it
and as like as not, turn about and try to convince you of it, since
you are in doubt. But if you go at him in a tone of positiveness and
arrogance you only make an opponent of him.
—Benjamin Franklin
260
HOW TO SAY NO WITH A SMILE
have far fewer subscribers. The only antidote for that, naturally, would
be a considerable increase in the annual fees. The subscription price
would be multiplied by four or more. Even that might be acceptable
to you until vou weigh the advantages against the additional costs.
You undoubtedly noticed, when reviewing the sample issues, that we
do not send our subscribers the mats for the newspaper ads. We send
prints of the ads. If a subscriber wants the mats he requests them and
they are sent to him without charge. There's a reason for this. It enables
us to watch for requests for identical mats coming from more than one
dealer in a specific city. When this occurs we caution both dealers. They
check with each other and thus eliminate the possibility of identical ads
appearing over two different firm names in the same city. In five years
this situation has come up only twice. The number of ads we offer makes
it unlikely that two dealer firms will choose the same ads at the same
time.
The only other possibility of overlapping is in the use of our sug-
gested sales letters. Here the chances are even more remote. MSS brings
you fifty to sixtv suggested letters a year. The average firm may use
five or six. The chances of two dealers in one city selecting the same
letters and sending them to the same people are so extremely unlikely we
have not a single instance of its happening even though we have as many
as seventy subscribers in some cities.
The
sales kits your salesmen will get, as you have seen, give them
fresh,compelling approaches, sound answers to objections, prospecting
methods, telephone technique, practical information on tax-savings, and
many other direct aids. Here there need be no fear of overlapping at all.
261
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
8. Take a lot of space and time to give your reasons for refusal.
3. Below are two letters that achieve the same purpose, but one is better
than the other. Tell which is better and why:
a. Dear Mr. Fazeby:
Reference is made to your Mar. 12 requesting long-term credit for
letter of
a shipment of bolt oars. Periodically we
receive such requests, but any exten-
sion of credit beyond the regular 90-day allowance is against company policy.
We regret that we can't accommodate your request, and look forward to con-
tinuing to serve you as we have in the past.
in your economic difficulties. New firms, such as yours, frequently find them-
selves overextended and short of cash. Several have asked us to extend their
credit, but we learned long ago that we can help our customers more by keep-
ing a firm 90-day credit schedule, which enables us to offer lower prices. Al-
though we, regretfully, can't extend your credit, we would be glad to help
in any other way possible. If you would like, we will have our district manager
call on you; possibly he could make some marketing suggestions that would
stimulate your sales and increase your profits so that you can get on your
feet faster.
262
21
How to handle
delicate situations
—
an error graciouslv meanwhile reaffirming your company's honesty
and efficiency. You've discovered that with a little thought and in-
genuity \'0u can sweeten vour refusal of a request with an offer of an
unasked-for favor. You can see that once you have learned some meth-
ods of approach, planning, and organization, business-letter writing is
First, suppose you see how much you've learned, how well you are
doing. Here are six letter-writing problems. Read the problems. Study
them carefully. Think about them. Adjust your mental attitude and
then write the letters of reply.
After vou have written vour letters —not before —turn to the sample
replies on the pages that follow. Read the letters and the analysis of
each and measure your letters against the samples. See you are satis-
if
fied that you have thought of every point. Tell yourself whether or not
263
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
your letters were as strong and as effective as they might have been.
If they were not, see what you can do to impro\ e them.
alog. He is a business executive who has been selecting his firm's Christ-
mas gifts from your catalogs for a number of years.
You get a letter from him ordering 100 desk clocks. But he has made
an error. The clock he has specified is not in your catalog. It is featured
in a competitor's catalog. You have a similar clock. Your clock sells for
Gentlemen:
More than three week.s ago I saw your ad in the PDQ Trade Journal.
In response to the ad I wrote to you, enclosing my check for $142.78, a
copy of the ad, and a covering letter ordering one gross of your Model
0021, to be shipped to me express collect.
I have not received the merchandise. You haven't even had the cour-
tesy to acknowledge my order. If you are not prepared to ship the or-
dered merchandise immediately return my check at once.
Sincerely,
O. P. Hattery
264
HOW TO HANDLE DELICATE SITUATIONS
have come in promptly. His work has been excellent. Now you get a
letter from him instead of his completed assignment:
Gentlemen,
I have bad news. The whole time I've been taking your course I've
been working and doing the lessons at night. My wife has been working
too. Now she's broken her leg. The right one.
Now I have to work at night too. I fix the dinner. I wash the dishes.
I do the laundry. I clean the apartment. I help the kids with their home-
work and put them to bed and I have to tend to my wife too. I'm too
tired to do anything else. I quit.
Yours very truly,
Joe Typer
years ago the building was sold. Mr. Clay, the new owner, resides in a
distant city. You have never met him. He has refused to renew leases
for any of the building's occupants. You are on a month-to-month basis.
This morning you had a letter from the owner. He tells you he has de-
cided to completely modernize the building. In order to do so in the
least expensive and most efficient manner he is giving all tenants thirty
davs' notice to move.
Office space is difficult to obtain and you are in the midst of your
busiest season. Write a letter to the owner. (Sample reply on pages
272-73.
ume during the Christmas season. You stock heavily. Business is good,
but not as good as vou had hoped. Right after Christmas some new
merchandise of xarious tvpes conies on the market. Heavy national ad-
vertising by the manufacturers builds up a healthy demand.
You order the new merchandise You know you have to do some
in.
local advertising to let people know what you ha\'e. The combination of
265
\VRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
these conditions puts you in bad shape for current finances. Your bank
has loaned you as much monev as it will. Your resources are beginning
to press you for payment.
A letter arri\'es from the sales manager of vour biggest supplier. He
tells you he is unable to ship the goods \'ou just ordered because his
credit department advises him that vou are behind in your payment for
previous shipments. Your greatest hopes were based on your offering of
his goods. Your advertising, alreadv being printed, features that mer-
chandise. There is nothing you can do about sending his company a
check now. Write to him. ( Sample reply on pages 274—275.
Have you written your letters of reply? Go over them carefully. Edit
them. Picture yourself talking on the telephone, using the words you've
written. Do they sound right? Warm? Do they take the other fellow's
viewpoint into consideration? Do they cover all essential points? Does
each one start with a statement that will lure the reader into wanting
to know what comes next? Does each start with a tone that will help
the reader to feel well disposed toward you? Has each letter an ending
that pinpoints the action you want and makes it as easy as possible for
the reader to take action?
266
HOW TO HANDLE DELICATE SITUATIONS
the analysis of each sample letter could apply to your own efforts.
267
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
Analysis
mas orders each year and that all transactions have been "exceptionally
pleasant." The desirability of dealing with this mail order house has
been implanted in his mind firmly and with flattering courtesy.
Making the sale. The fourth paragraph makes a strong and logical
bid for the order. Without deprecating the competitive article the
writer builds up the greater desirability of his own. He makes com- it
pletely easy for the buyer to examine it by telling him precisely where
to find the illustration and description in the catalog. To be sure that no
chance is lost he even encloses a duplicate copy of the catalog. In tell-
Prelude to action. The fifth paragraph starts the drive for the de-
sired action. Without seeming to put undue pressure on Mr. Obermann,
268
HOW TO HANDLE DELICATE SITUATIONS
it makes clear the need for fast action. Model 41 is going fast. Fine serv-
ice to Mr. Obermann is manifest again — the writer is protecting his
customer's interest by holding the needed quantity for him.
twentv minutes after vour letter arrived. Bv this time you've had my
telegram advising you of the shipment.
My warmest thanks, Mr. Hatterv, for writing and bringing this in-
excusable delav to the surface. You've been very patient.
The moment your shipment was out of here and the telegram sent 1
started an investigation. Until you've had some more experience with
us vou'll find it hard to believe, I'm sure, but this is far from our normal
method of handling orders.
The rule here is that an order is acknowledged the dav it arrives and,
ifhumanly possible, the goods are shipped that same day. The longest
we normally take to make a shipment is forty-eight hours, unless we
have no inventory of the item requested. That's why vour well-justified
complaint constituted a seriou.s mvsterv here.
I didn't have to look far. The first place checked was the accounting
department. Your order and check went there first to be entered on the
books and to permit them to search the files to see if you were a new
customer or not. They found that vou had placed one previous order
nearly three years ago. And that's where it happened. When the old
folder was returned to the file your new order went in the file too. That's
where it was found this morning.
No heads rolled. Nobodv was fired. The folks working in that depart-
ment are good. Thev handle thousands of details each week and they
make amazingly few errors. But they are human and mistakes will hap-
pen. We had a little meeting and showed them what had occurred in
your case. It put evervone that much more on his toes to safeguard
against a similar slip in the future.
So, we owe you more than a deeply sincere apology, Mr. Hattery.
We owe you a vote of genuine appreciation. The incident will make us
even more efficient in the future.
I do hope that the delay didn't cause vou anv serious inconvenience.
Please accept our warmest thanks for vour business. I look forward to
hearing from ^'()u again so that we'll be able to demonstrate the far more
269
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
normal courtesy and speed with which your orders will be handled.
Although vour letter specified that the merchandise should be sent ex-
press collect we have prepaid the shipment, to demonstrate our desire
to make amends.
Sincerely,
Analysis:
Tell him at once the action taken. Mr. Hattery's greatest in-
terest is to find out what you're going to do. The opening paragraph,
therefore, gives him that information without frills or prelude.
This isn't normal here. The explanation may tell how it happened,
but you have another important job to perform. You have to convince
the customer that, despite his experience, you have an efficient organi-
zation. Paragraph six tackles that job, and number seven ties the bow
on the package.
Something extra. The final paragraph makes a bid for future busi-
ness and gives the customer a bonus to make amends for the discourtesy
and the delay. It is bound to leave Mr. Hattery thinking, "Aren't they
nice people!"
You've been doing a fine job up to this point. Seven months ago you
saw an opportunity to do something that would lead you to a real
career. You made your decision and went to work. You've worked well
270
HOW TO HANDLE DELICATE SITUATIONS
unusually well —
and the realization of your ambition is not far off. Now
there's been a disruption. But this present condition won't last forever,
Mr. Typer. You'll still reach your goal.
I'm putting y(Hir papers in a special file on my desk. On top of it I've
written, "Hold in suspense for three months." That means that you
won't have to do any assignments or make another payment for three
months. You're being given a leave of absence until your home situation
is back where it was before your wife's unfortunate accident.
All of us here hope that Mrs. Typer makes a quick and painless re-
covery. The only thing I'm going to ask you to do right now is to return
the postcard I'm putting in with this letter. Three months is my guess as
to the length of time you'll need. If you think the time should be shorter
or longer, or if you agree with mv guess, just tell me on the card and
drop it in the mail. That way I'll know when to send your ne.xt lesson.
Good luck and thanks for letting me know the circumstances.
Cordially,
Analysis:
You're right' Joe Typer's letter makes it clear that he's disturbed
and unhappy. He's in a state of rebellion. He has told you that he's
quitting. Undoubtedly he expects you to write back telling him he
can't or shouldn't quit. He's mentally prepared for that, and he's pre-
pared to resist you. The opening paragraphs of this letter take the
wind out of his sails. The school agrees with him. He's told he's right
that he's doing what anybody would do. Joe's mental resistance to the
expected onslaught melts away.
271
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
Not a word is said about his contractual obligation to the school. The
tone of the letter is that the writer wants to help a friend. You don't talk
to a friend about helping him in one breath and then threaten to sue
him in the next. You don't even hint at a possibiUty. If Joe fails to ac-
cept this generous offer it may become necessary to use pressure in
some future letters. In this first one, however, it would be completely
out of order.
272
HOW TO HANDLE DELICATE SITUATIONS
your renovated building. Perhaps, if your plans call for the completion
of the upper stories first, I can stay where I am until one of them is com-
pleted and then move right into that part of the building. I'll phone you
Thursday morning at 10:30 to discuss this idea with you.
Cordially,
Analysis
Clay's desk was piled high with red-hot answers. Letter after letter
would start out by pouring abuse on his head. Many of them would
drip with tears as the writers told their sad stories. A good percentage
would cry out about the long years they had paid their rent month after
—
month and then to be treated like this!
Out of this heap of bitterness, anger, self-righteousness, and self-pity
Mr. Clay would find few, if any, who looked at the problem from his
viewpoint.
Paragraph one actually pats him on the back. It recognizes his pro-
gressiveness. It makes him feel wise and enterprising. Here's a letter he
can read with pleasure and with an open mind.
Cooperation. In the second paragraph Mr. Clay gets his second
happv surprise. This tenant actually dropped everything and made a
real try to comply with the request that he get out in thirty days.
The third paragraph de\clops this theme further and reveals some of
the inescapable problems involved.
The fourth paragraph elaborates on the cooperation theme and sets
forth a possible solution to the difficulty. The writer has taken the initia-
tive in suggesting a wa\' out. Ho has not written saying he can't do it.
Temptation. Mr. Clay will have to find tenants for his recon-
structed building. Here's an Coupled with the
offer to take a half floor.
offer is the suggestion of how Mr. Clay and the writer can work out a
Action. The writer spells out what action he will take. He doesn't
leave the next step up to the harassed Mr. Clay, but takes the bit in his
own teeth.
In a situation of this type it is (juite possible that the cantankerous
landlord will not do anything for anybody. It is also possible, however,
273
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
that his reconstruction plans will permit him to forestall the need for
some occupants to move as quickly as others.Abuse and chest-pounding
have little chance of winning you whatever dispensation Mr. Clay can
hand out. The sample letter shown here creates an atmosphere that
would encourage Mr. Clay to give you the utmost consideration. It is
simply a matter of looking at every problem from the other fellow's
viewpoint.
hind in my payments right now and that's what he has to watch. He's
on his toes.
But, John, while he watches credits you watch business and you watch
the people you sell to. I'm only one of your many customers, but I be-
lieve you know how we went all out with your line this Christmas. As
an alert sales manager vou know, too, that Christmas business was not
what any of us expected.
— —
Your Christmas goods a fair part of them are still here and I
haven't called on you to take any of them oflF my hands. You have won-
derful merchandise and I know we'll sell it, given enough time. And
now you've proven again what great merchandisers you are by bringing
out your new line and backing it up with equally great promotion.
The demand is here. Folks are asking for your items and I'm spurring
that interest by doing a big local advertising job on your new lines.
If you and I were sitting in your office or mine, right now, and you
were the president of your company, I know perfectly well you'd back
me up. And I know what a top salesman you are, John. As a personal
favor to me, and for the broader distribution of your own goods, I'm
asking you to sit down with your credit man and sell him Harry Elect.
My business is sound. I need time and I need help to get out from
behind my over-heavy inventory, which I will do. My bills will be paid
— —
and your house will be the first to know it with checks when those
consumer dollars come in.
I'll call you Friday morning.
Cordially,
Harry Elect
Analysis
274
HOW TO HANDLE DELICATE SITUATIONS
pany and its products. The words you've used about the sales manager
appeal to his ego and to his business judgment. They make him want to
understand and appreciate your current problem.
The fourth paragraph lets him know that his company has your full
loyalty and support. You are devoting your advertising to the promotion
of his merchandise.
Challenge. On the dual basis of helping his company and \ou, the
fifth paragraph goads the manager with a friendly challenge to dis-
sales
play his sales ability, his knowledge of people and of markets, by going
to bat for Harry Elect.
Action. Taking the action on his own shoulders, Harry Elect ac-
complishes two vital objectives. He eliminates the need to sit and worry
He
while waiting for a reply. manager in a position
also places the sales
where he cannot put off doing something about Harry Elect's request,
no matter how busy he may be. That phone call is coming on Friday
morning and he must have an answer by that time.
275
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
number, they do so with the full realization that the money thev put up
will bring them no dividends or interest, and, if they happen to be
wrong, the money is gone foreyer.
Mrs. Bowers, you and I have had some long sessions together. You
have been frank and open with me, trusting me as your counselor, and
I know how important it is to you to preserve every bit of your capital.
You've shown me the vital need to keep that money working for you so
that it can produce the income you need for your living expenses.
I would be doing you a serious disservice if I did not warn you, as
Your money and your securities, Mrs. Bowers, are your property and,
of course, you have liberty to do with them as \'ou will. As your coun-
selor, and as a friend, I urge you not to go into this proposed venture,
but the final decision is yours and I'll do whatever you request.
Sincerely,
Analysis:
The writer shows that he took the time and trouble to investigate the
CDQ Company, for her benefit. He strips the situation down to the es-
sential truths so that she can see, for herself, the great risk she is taking.
276
HOW TO HANDLE DELICATE SITUATIONS
You HAVE A FREE CHOICE. The last paragraph of the letter puts the
power of final decision in Mrs. Bowers' hands. He is not dictating to
her. He is giving her counsel and allowing her the face-saving opportu-
nity to say, "I have decided not to take this big risk."
How well did you do? Are you satisfied that the letters you wrote
handled each of the six situations as fully and as understandingly as flie
sample replies?
This exercise is less a test of writing skills than a test of attitudes.
Compare the attitudes your letters reflect mth the attitudes displayed
in the sample letters. Are you satisfied that the approach you took, in
each case, is calculated to lead the reader to take the action you want?
Are your letters stripped of irritants? Has each of the letters taken full
recognition of the reader's point of view?
If you are not satisfied that your own letters did all the things they
should do, look for the missing elements; search for the sour notes. See
what you could have done to make your own letters —\our own action
requests — as easily acceptable as the samples.
What you are seeking is not a way to write these particular letters.
You are looking for the key to a winning attitude in all of the letters of
reply you write from this day on.
277
22
How to write
business reports
When you are assigned to write an important business re-
port, how you perform can mean a lot to your career. Here's
ten to every word of an oral report, but they mav read or skim the writ-
ten report at their convenience. The written report because — it is a per-
manent record —has other, more important, advantages
1. It compels the reporter to be complete and accurate.
2. It is less likely to be distorted as the ideas in it are transmitted di-
rectly from one person to another.
278
HOW TO WRITE BUSINESS REPORTS
viduals or agencies say it is. The writer does not include his own opin-
ions; nor does he offer his conclusions and recommendations. Examples
of informational reports are: a foreman's weekly report of production in
his section, a salesman's expense sheet, a management consultant's re-
port of employes' daily work habits, and a buyer's report of coat styles
being worn in certain parts of the country. Such reports are usually
valuable for their facts alone, although they may later be used —perhaps
in combination with other reports — as the bases for decisions by the
managements to which they are submitted.
port contains facts, but it also contains an analysis of the facts and the
writer's conclusions or recommendations. The analytic report is fre-
quently the basis for an important company decision. Thus, the writer
shoulders great responsibility. An analytic report might call for the
recommendations on how a new product could be successfully
writer's
under which they will revise our form letters. The fee is a flat $10,000.00
for one year's service, including the following:
departments.
2. Preparation of a Correspondence Manual for use by all those
who dictate. (The cost of printing is not included in the fee.)
3. A series of six one-hour discussion meetings for all letter-writing
personnel.
279
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
tables, charts, and other types of visual aids. It may also contain de-
tailed appendices and an index. It is sometimes printed and bound in
hard covers, like a book. Because the formal report is ordinarily the re-
sult of intensive investigation, it tends to be long. When it is very long,
a brief summary of its main points may be included immediately after
the introduction.
In style, the formal report is relatively impersonal and restrained. For
objectivity's sake the writer de-emphasizes his own point of view. Gen-
erally, he does not refer to himself as I or tee, but uses third-person ref-
erences such as "the \vriter," "the investigator," "it was learned," and
"investigation disclosed."
280
HOW TO WHITE BUSINESS REPORTS
281
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
to US their news files which have for many years meticulously reported
the activities of our competitors in the Chicago area.
Respectfully submitted,
John Phillips
Controller
There are many other ways in which companies describe their re-
ports: routine, operational, inspection, periodic, annual, sales, statisti-
cal, record, progress, special, examination, and so on. Actually, the name
applied to the report is less important than the writer's complete under-
standing of what is wanted and needed for the particular circumstance.
port he will write, he must consider: What kind of report has been re-
quested or is expected? When is the report due? What is the purpose of
the report? Who will read the report?
The reporter mav be instructed to make a specific kind of report or he
may have a precedent to follow. In the majority of instances, however,
he must decide for himself what type of report is required and along
what lines the content, format, and style should be planned.
The length of time the writer has to prepare the report should guide
him as to the type of report expected. If a very short time is allowed, it
might be almost impossible to prepare a formal report and, thus, an in-
formal report would be acceptable. But if enough time is allowed for
considerable research, the report will inevitably be formal in style and
will include the writer's conclusions
— perhaps even specific recommen-
dations. For example, if an office manager must in one day prepare a
report on the preceding month's absenteeism among clerical personnel,
he cannot be expected to produce more than a brief tabulation, prob-
ably in memorandum form. If, on the other hand, an office manager has
two weeks in which to prepare a report on the same subject, his re-
search will be more penetrating. He might study the conditions which
influenced attendance during the month, compare that month's record
with the corresponding month a year ago, or compare the records of
other companies to determine the significance of his firm's figures.
The writer also should be able to determine from the subject or the
purpose of the report what kind of report is desired. For example,
should the writer be asked to prepare a report to help decide whether
282
HOW TO WRITE BUSINESS REPORTS
his company should merge with another firm or continue as now consti-
formal report. If, on the other hand, a salesman were asked for a
weekly report on the new accounts he had called on, it is unlikely that
the company would vvant him to spend many hours on the project.
mal. The more the writer knows about the reader, the better able he is
to adapt his style and content to that person. Remember, howeyer, that
a report may be read by more people than the one to whom it is di-
rected. For this reason, when the writer is in doubt, the safe course is
After the writer has a clear idea of the kind of report he is going to pro-
duce, he begins the actual work of research and composition. This task
entails five distinct steps:
2. taking notes
4. making an outline
Company files. Much of the information the reporter needs may al-
he is inyestigating.
ing library materials and company files, the writer may need to talk
283
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
1. Do you
serve a packaged bread in your home? Yes No
Every day Often Occasionally
2. If the answer to question 1 above is Yes, please state name of bread
port. After taking notes, the writer requires a period of assimilation dur-
ing which he will again give careful thought to the purpose of his report
and try to establish a logical relationship between his seemingly far-
flung facts. At first there may be no semblance of order, but as the writer
keeps turning the data over in his mind, a pattern evolves. This pattern
may be of the most general nature, but it pro\ ides the writer with at
least a starting point, directional signs, and a few important stopping
places on the way to a conclusion.
In the analytical process much of the collected data will have been
284
IN PRAISE OF MEMOS
The memo, properly used, can be a powerful communication de-
vice to make your time more effective and work more efficient.
memo you can be absolutely sure that a request and due date are
as clear as possible. You can avoid lengthv, time-consuming con-
Assuming you are like the rest of us, your mind is splintered into
More and more businesses are places where "getting along " with
people is not only nice — it's essential. The memo can be helpful
where you must deal with people who, no matter how hard you tr)
just don't seem to be your type. A memo limits that danger area of
personal contact, while at the same time giving others all they require
from you in a usable form.
In the last analysis, of course, how memos help you get ahead
hangs on how good they are. Thev don't have to be literary gems.
But they do have to be clear, understandable, to the point. The best
285
WPUTE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
thrown out, the need for new data may have been revealed, and perhaps
the writer's preliminary ideas about the form of the report or its con-
tent will have undergone considerable change.
Most analytical reports are evolved inductively: The writer lets his
facts lead him to his conclusions and recommendations. In drafting the
outline, the writer will therefore put his facts first — at least tentatively.
When he reaches his conclusions and recommendations, however, he
has the choice of putting them at the end of the outline or going back
and inserting them at the very beginning.
Since an outline is prepared solely for the guidance of the writer,
strict formality in wording and numbering of topics is not required.
The OUTLINE as a guide. In the report, the writer follows the same
order as in the outline, all the time referring to his notes for the neces-
sary details. This step gives the writer the opportunity to test the com-
pleteness of his information and to question its validity or accuracy. If
the records he has collected are well documented, he can always go
back and consult his original sources. At times, he may see the need to
investigate additional sources for data relating to topics in his outline.
286
HOW TO WRITE BUSINESS REPORTS
the report is of considerable value if the facts are correct. At least, the
reader is able to draw his own conclusions on the basis of the data
presented.
logically. He should then write or dictate his report, keeping the para-
graphs and sentences varied in length and the words as simple as the
subject permits. The selection of exact words and their orderly arrange-
3. A business report should be concise. This does not mean that a long
report is always undesirable, but it does rule out the wordy report. An
executive must do an extensive amount of reading and usually insists
that any report prepared for his attention be confined to the essentials.
Irrelevant ideas, too much detail, and unnecessary words waste the
reader's and the writer's time.
4. Since the value of a report lies largely in its objectivity, the writer
EXTRAVAGANT CONSER\ATI\'E
The workers are lazy and incom- The incidence of lateness among
petent. the workers is higher than the
average in other departments. The
criteria for selection and the meth-
ods of training are not in accord
with modern personnel practice.
287
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
5. The writer makes his report more convenient for the reader to use
principally through its mechanical display. Center and side headings
are particularly helpful in providing points of reference. Lists, tables,
graphs, diagrams, and even photographs may clarify and shorten the
text material and save time for the reader. Wherever possible, the il-
lustrati\'e material — clearly labeled— should be adjacent to the related
text. In long reports a table of contents and occasionally an index may
prove beneficial.
Many business executives expect that the report will be prefaced by
a short resume, usually labeled "Summary" or "Conclusion." In this
way, an executive is able to grasp the main points of the report immedi-
ately and to leave the details for a closer examination at another time.
ter of presentation?
288
PART TWO
The tools
of the
trade
WHAT YOU WILL FIND IN
Part two
23. Good craftsmanship pays dividends 291
Good craftsmanship
pays dividends
In Part One you explored many ways you can make your
as the techniques you have studied are the basic nuts and
J.f you have ever tried to change a tire without a jack, or re-
place a washer in your kitchen faucet without a screwdriver, then you
know the importance of tools. Any craftsman, amateur or professional,
needs tools. There is no substitute for the right tool for the job, and the
good craftsman, whatever his trade or profession, makes certain that he
carries it in his kit.
you write, the talk you give, whatever form of communication you use
in the course of your business and private affairs.
tered, your hand fumbled at the typewriter, as vou probed your brains
for that suitable word, that suitable phrase? A delicate situation calls
for precision in your vocabulary. Is it "sympathy" or "consolation" you
want to say? "Blemish" isn't exactly what you want to indicate; is it
291
WTUTE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
grammar. You probably learned most of what you need to know about
grammar in school. Perhaps vou did some more advanced work in the
mechanics of the English language later on. You've learned, too, in your
daily experience, that poor grammatical structure in a memo, letter, or
report will rub you the wrong way and give you a negative impression
of the writer. None of us is absolutely free of uncertainties about
grammar.
Is it "these kind of cars" or "this kind of cars"? How can you always
tell when to use who and when to use whom? Should you say "If I were
you" or "If I was you"? Rather than guessing at or avoiding such prob-
lems in grammar, how much better to review some of the basic rules so
that your writing may flow more easily and work more effectively.
Spelling and punctuation are the two remaining tools in your verbal
kit. Now in English spelling presents certain problems. In most other
languages a word is spelled exactlv as it sounds, but we know that this
very often is not the case with our language. "Lake" is spelled with an
"a-k-e" so why not "ache"? "Lose" has one "o"; "choose" has two.
"Hoarse" is a condition of the voice and "horse," an animal. No wonder
so many people have difficulty in learning to spell properly.
292
24
But experts now agree that you can increase your word
Look at the word first in its context: in the paragraph where it ap-
pears. The sense of the paragraph will give you an inkling of the sig-
nificance of the word —
even if you have never seen it before. You nat-
urally become eager to know the definition of the word in order to
understand the sentence in which you have seen it: your approach,
then, is indirect and psijchological, because you wish the information,
not as an end in itself, but as a means to an end. You realize that if you
learn the meaning of the word you will comprehend the sentence. You
are using what is called the modern inductive method, in that you first
discover the word at work, you are challenged by it, you guess at its
meaning, and \'0u then confirm or correct your guess by referring to
the dictionary.
When you use thismodern method, words become living entities,
charged with action and emotion. They then become hard to forget.
293
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
the word is new to you try to guess at its meaning and keep it in mind.
Group A
1. He complained flcnmoniousZi/ (ack-ri-mo'-nee-us-lee).
2. We argued acrimoniously.
3. They mocked each other acrimoniously.
( You can feel the unpleasant overtone of this word, can't you?
Group B
1. He completed the operation adroitly ( a-droyt'-lee )
Group C
1. He moved slowly and circumspectly (sir-cum-specf-lee) through
the range of fire.
Group D
1. These two building leases ran concomitantly (con-com'-i-tant-lee).
2. Living and learning go on concomitantly.
3. Rain, snow, and sleet, all came down concomitantly.
Group E
1 He examined the plans cursorily cur'-so-ri-lee ( )
2. He ran through the pages cursorily, then threw the novel down in
disgust.
3. He did his homework so cursorily that he flunked his examination.
294
SEVEN MODERN STEPS TO WORD POWER
(glib'-lee).
4. The person who is looking for sympathy talks plaintively (plain'-
tiv-lee )
5. Pessimists usually speak ominously (om'-i-nus-lee) of the future.
295
HOW TO READ A DICTIONARY ENTRY
Whex it comes to learning new words or checking the meanings
or pronunciation of familiar ones, a good dictionary is your basic
tool. To use it most effectively, you should know the common ele-
1. Main entry. The main entry word is printed in bold face type
set slightly to the left. Main entries appear in alphabetical order
and show where the word is divided into syllables and where it
may be broken.
noun, v.t. for transitive verb) shows the part of speech. Frequently
symbols.
-o'QHBfVi
^Mffi
296
8. Inflected forms and derivative words. The past tense, past par-
ticiple, plural, and other inflected parts of verbs and nouns are
shown if there is any irregularity in the form. Words derived from
the main entry word are also listed.
entry.
It.
.
29'
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
the thirteen adverbs and two adverbial phrases you have just had. That
is, each adverb will have to be written opposite several words that you
think come nearest to its meaning. If you make mistakes don't be dis-
couraged. The whole object of this device is to help chnch the meanings
of these words in your mind.
1.
2.
SEVEN MODERN STEPS TO WORD POWER
ANSWERS:
(1) cursorily (2) circumspectly (3) didactically (4) irascibly (5)
ominously (6) plaintively (7) sub rosa (8) vociferously (9) om-
inously (10) irascibly (11) adroitly (12) circumspectly (13) dis-
paragingly (14) glibly (15) acrimoniously ( 16) inadvertently (17)
concomitantly (18) irascibly (19) circumspectly (20) with impun-
ity (21) gUbly (22) acrimoniously (23) inadvertently (24) dis-
paragingly (25) concomitantly (26) with impunity (27) acrimo-
niously (28) glibly (29) disparagingly (30) adroitly (31) irascibly
(32) ominously (33) plaintively (34) with impunity (35) cursorily
(36) didactically (37) plaintively (38) sub rosa (39) vociferously
(40) vociferously (41) vociferously (42) didactically (43) sub rosa
(44) plaintively (45) disparagingly (46) cursorily
1. You are a burglar. You have just entered a wealthy home through
an unlocked window. All is dark, and alas, you have forgotten to bring
your searchlight. What's more, you can't find the electric switch. How
will vou move around in this room until you can get your bearings?
2. You are an irritable, touchy old man, and as you \\'alk along the
street on raw morning vou
this cold, feel nothing but enmity toward
the whole world. A beggar stops vou for a coin. How do you refuse?
3. A friend has been importuning you for weeks to look over a novel
he is writing and give him vour criticism. Knowing your friend you are
certain that the novel is bad even before vou read it; besides you are a
very busy man. Rather than give your friend a blunt refusal, however,
you take the manuscript home one evening. How do you examine it?
4. Your small son wishes to know whv it snows. You are well versed
in the natural sciences and have made it a habit to answer all your son's
questions as clearlv and accurately as possible. How do you answer him?
299
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
have done, vou prefer to take as little credit as possible for vour accom-
plishments. How do you usually speak of yourself?
ANSWERS:
(1) circumspectly (2) irascibly (3) cursorily (4) didactically (5)
with impunity (6) acrimoninusly (7) disparagingly
1. acrimoniously 8. glibly
2. adroitly 9. plaintively
3. circumspectly 10. ominously
4. concomitantly 11. inadvertently
5. cursorily 12. irascibly
6. didactically 13. vociferously
7. disparagingly
ANSWERS:
(1) acrimony (2) adroitness (3) circumspection (4) concomitance
(5) cursoriness (6) didacticism (7) disparagement (8) glibness
(9) plaintiveness (10) ominousness (11) inadvertence (12) iras-
cibility ( 13) vociferousness
Occasionally you may feel that these exercises are time consuming.
But we urge you never to let the lack of time stand as an obstacle to
your work. Thomas Carlyle, the great philosopher, claimed that there
is time in every man's life for a career within a career. Even so-called
geniuses are largely geniuses because they are wilUng to use the time
that others throw awav. It was Michelangelo who said: "If people only
knew how hard I work to gain my mastery it wouldn't seem so wonder-
ful at all." And Alexander Dumas, the French novelist, confessed: "In-
fatuated, half through conceit, half through love of my art, I achieve
the impossible working as none else ever works. . .
."
Careers are not had by wishing and hoping. They are ])OUght with
work and enthusiasm.
300
I
25
how to unfold all the nuances of the new terms you encoun-
ter in your reading and conversation.
sentence.
Even if you have never seen a word before, you can usually get some
idea of its meaning from the way it is used. Try to sense the meaning of
the italicized words in these sentences.
The taciturn old man only grunted in answer to our questions.
The speaker's polemic aroused the people against the dictator.
The voung man's fatuous giggle was extremely irritating.
If you guessed that the old man in the first sentence was not the
talkative type, you're right. Taciturn means "habitually silent or re-
served." Did the speaker in sentence two criticize the dictator? He did
indeed; polemic means "an attack on another person's opinions or
principles." And if you think the young man in the last sentence was
acting rather silly, you're right again. Fatuous means "foolish."
The meanings and uses of the following group of difficult words will
be revealed by what we might call the "unfolding process." As you
meet each word, even though it is for the first time, its meaning will be
301
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
partially shown to you by the context, and its full meaning will grad-
ually unfold before the chapter is over.
Synonym: A word used when you can't spell the word you want.
—Chicago Daily Tribune
302
LEARNING WORDS BY THE UNFOLDING PROCESS
three words identified with the letters "a," "b," and "c." Check which-
ever word you think is a synonym for "abstemious." Continue the
process. Refer back to Section I when you wish to.
ANSWERS:
(1) c (2) b (3) a (4) b (5) b (6) b (7) c (9) c
(10) b (11) b (12) c (13) b (14) c (15) b
Please recheck vour answers and correct your mistakes if you have
made any. Also go back to Section I on each of your mistakes and note
how the sentences have new meanings once you properly understand
the word.
303
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
abstemious. Check the one that \'ou think is the antonvm, or opposite
inmeaning, and repeat this process with the whole list. We have put in
ANSWERS:
( 1 ) peremptory ( 2 ) ochlocracy ( 3 ) pariah ( 4) Machiavellian
(5) omniscient (6) fetish (7) poignant (8) ubiquitous (9) facet
(10) querulous (11) abstemious (12) specious (13) vainglorious
(14) chimerical (15) unctuous
305
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
ANSWERS:
( 1 ) poignant (2) chimera (3) fetish (4) unctuous (5) Machiavellian
Group 2
At Christmastime, the
1. Salvation Army lassie re-
minds a selfish public of people for whom the season may not be merry.
2. That is a argument; but possibly you may get a
number of unthinking people to believe it.
3. I admit you have done a lot for your country, but this absurd
ANSWERS:
( 1 )ubiquitous (2) specious (3) vainglory (4) querulousness (5) facets
Group 3
1. No one knows what
is going to happen in the world. Things are in
ANS\VERS:
( 1 ) omniscient ( 2 ) abstemious ( 3 ) ochlocracy ( 4 ) omniscience ( 5 ) pariah
Group 4
1. Some mothers make their commands so that they
antagonize their children.
2. He is winning you over to his side with reasoning.
3. His machinations make him the most feared and the
least trusted man in America.
4. In the spring the color green may be said to be almost
5. Some housewives make an absolute out of neatness.
ANSWERS:
(1 )peremptory (2)specious (3)Machiavellian (4)ubiquitous (5)fetish
VII. Defining some words is incredibly hard. Just think, for instance,
of writing a definition of "sky" in such a way that a blind man will get a
clear idea of what you mean. But your very attempt to define the fifteen
306
LEARNING WORDS BY THE UNFOLDING PROCESS
words that are listed below will force you to think intensively about
them and will hammer and clinch their meanings in your mind in a way
that nothing else could. When you have finished please check your an-
swers with the dictionary definitions. Your wording, of course, will be
different, but if your definitions contain the main elements, you may
certainly consider that you have substantially mastered the words.
ANSWERS:
( 1 ) Eating and drinking sparingly; self-denying in the indulgence of the
appetites and passions.
(2) Merely imaginary; fanciful; fantastic; visionary. The noun means a
frightful, vain, or foolish fancy.
(3) One of the small surfaces cut upon a diamond or other gem. By ex-
tension, a part, aspect, or point of view of any large subject.
( 4 ) A material object believed to be the dwelling of a spirit that will pro-
tect the owner from harm; any object of devotion or blind affection.
(5) Of or pertaining to the Florentine politician Niccolo Machiavelli, or
to a system of political trickery.
(6) Mob rule.
( 7 ) All-knowing or all-wise.
(8 ) A social outcast.
(9) Positive in judgment or opinion; dogmatic; dictatorial.
( 10) Severely painful or acute to the spirit.
( 11 Disposed to complain or be fretful.
)
Use such a word then. It will make for brevity and clarity. It is much
307
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
A conflagration is a fire. And you don't retire; you just plain go to bed.
The highest art is usually the simplest in form.
For example, once you are aware of synonyms, you won't neces-
sarily have to write that the girl is cute, the game exciting, the idea
interesting, the dress pretty. Instead you can choose among a vari-
ety of adjectives like graceful, exquisite, or dainty for the girl; hair-
308
26
from Latin and Greek will help you increase your vocabu-
lary quickly and easily, for these are the building blocks
sign you wear; signal, a sign; 5/gnify, make a sign; as well as design,
signature, insignificant. We also have the Latin term portare, "to carry,"
which leads to porter, one who carries; /;or/able, able to be carried; re-
porter, one who carries news back; deport, carry away; im/;orf, carry
A
knowledge of Latin and Greek roots is a splendid vocabulary
stretcher. In the pages that follow you will learn a few of the most
you look up a word, vou'll soon become acquainted with many more.
In the exercises ahead we will take English words apart and will show
309
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
how you can easily identify and define hundreds of words that you may
never have seen before.
son who marries any other person while having a legal spouse living.
Here we have a combination of two languages: bi means "two" in Latin,
and combined with gamos gives us "two marriages."
(3) Polygamy (po-lig'-a-mee) This means several spouses to one
:
310
QUICK VOCABULARY BUILDER
we have
tion,
311
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
ANSWERS:
( 1 ) ONE eye ( 2 ) speech by ONE person ( 3 ) control by
lens for
ONE person of the market (4) place where people live ALONE (5)
vehicle of TWO
wheels (6) creature with feet TWO
(7) TWO-
sided (8) MANY-sided figure (9) HATER of women (10) belief
in MANYgods (11) raising to GODhood (12) LOVERS, hence col-
lectors, of stamps (13) MANlike ( 14) STUDY of life (15) country
where ONE person rules.
GAMY—marriage
QUICK VOCABULARY BUILDER
—
animosity vehement enmity
pusillanimous— fainthearted; cowardly
animadvert— to turn the mind to; to notice; to criticize
ANSWERS:
( magnate (2) magnify (3) magnificence
1 ) (4) magniloquent (5)
magnitude (6) magnum (7 ) magnum opus
313
KNOW YOUR PREFIXES AND SUFFIXES
With roots or stems, prefixes and suflBixes are among the most im-
portant building blocks of words. A study of them will be of great
value to anyone who wants to increase his vocabulary. A prefix is
tion. Here is a list of some of the most common prefixes and suffixes,
Prefixes
ante-
QUICK VOCABULARY BUILDER
ANSWERS:
( 1 ) unify or unite ( 2 ) unicorn ( 3 ) uniform ( 4 ) union ( 5 ) unique
(6)unison
gether to form the word: bene, "well," and nolens, "wishing." Benevo-
lence means, literally, "wishing others well." Bene is found in other
that new Latin stems can easilv be added to our repertoire: "benedic-
tion," a blessing, is, literally, a "saying well." The stem die is from the
Latin dicere, meaning "to say" or "to tell." You can see it in the follow-
ing words:
Thus, the study of a few of these simple words brings to hght eight
new Here are the Latin words with their meanings and with the
stems.
part that serves as a stem in italics. Can you think up an English word
315
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
5. bene well
6. volens wishing
7. facere to do, to make
8. dicere to say, to tell
ANSWERS:
( 1 ) one ( 2 ) Uvo ( 3 ) many ( 4 ) hatred of ( 5 ) marriage ( 6 ) God
( 7) man ( 8 ) love of ( 9 ) knowledge, study of
In this section we will explore several roads that branch off from the
simple numbers one, two, and three. You may find that we will repeat
some etymological roots that we have already had.
316
QUICK VOCABULARY BUILDER
ANSWERS:
( 1monograph ( 2 ) monologue ( 3 ) monomania ( 4 ) monoplane
)
graphic— hence,
written; vivid
graphite—the black material in a lead pencil
autograph — own signature
one's
chirography —handwriting
telegraph — writing distance at a
WORDS BASED ON BI
II. Bi is a prefix from the Latin, and denotes "two." Thus, "biannual,"
twice a year; "bicameral," with two chambers, as the Senate and the
317
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
ANSWERS:
( 1 ) bicycle ( 2 ) biennial ( 3 ) bifocals (4 ) bigamy ( 5 ) bimonthly
( 6 ) binoculars ( 7 ) biped ( 8 ) biscuit ( 9 ) bisect ( 10 ) bivalve
318
QUICK VOCABULARY BUILDER
ANSWERS:
( 1 ) tricycle ( 2 ) trilateral ( 3 ) trilingual ( 4 ) trilogy ( 5 ) trimonthly
(6) trinity (7) trio (8) triple (9) triplets (10) tripod
1.
27
Two keys to clarity:
grammar and usage
"Dull rules and duller drills" expresses the attitude that
gether again ( the same sort of thing we do with a jigsaw puzzle ) The .
pieces of the game are the parts of speech ( noun, verb, adjective, ad-
verb, etc.), and we are required to place the pieces properly to put
together a recognizable picture. We become detectives, discovering the
relationship between words and phrases and clauses. We become
lawyers, arguing the logic of our cases as to the use of a specific word
or the structure of a sentence.
Grammar can be Young people who show no interest in the rest
fun.
of their schoolwork sometimes become completely involved in this
game of grammar. But this happens only when they recognize it as a
game, and not as a series of dry-as-dust rules and definitions to com-
mit to memory.
We may have been taught that a verb "shows action or state of being,"
but did our teachers explain that "state of being" is expressed by some
form of the verb to be (am, is, was, will be, and so forth)? Did they
320
I
TWO KEYS TO CLARITY: GRAMMAR AND USAGE
or thing") and the person, place, or thing, itself? In many cases the
answer is No, and if we were bored by grammar we will have to put
the blame where it probabK' belongs on the way we were taught. —
Actually, grammar involves relatively few rules. What it does require
is the ability to analyze, to make judgments, and to act on your deci-
sions. If vou can follow the instructions that come with a dress pattern,
ifyou can trace the route of some old wiring and revitalize an electrical
outlet, then understanding grammar should be no problem at all.
with some justification, that she has invited you for the wrong evening.
If you say "between you and I," talking very confidentially, when you
should say "between you and me," you may erode the respect and con-
fidence vou've so carefully built up in your business colleague or cus-
tomer or date.
You may not wince when a star quarterback announces, in a television
interview, that his team played "good." You hear that kind of thing so
often. But you had better not say that your desk-model mini-computer
works "good," if you're trying to sell that machine to a young executive.
Still, when our speech is transferred to the written page, we will say,
321
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
and wisely, "It is I who am responsible for this department," not "It is
me who is responsible . .
."
The late William Strunk, Jr., made his advice to students brief
and cogent. Among his most important maxims was "omit needless
words." Another, equally useful, was: "Use definite, specific, con-
crete language." The examples below illustrate the merit of his sug-
gestions for achieving a crisp, accurate style.
WEAK: The fact that one acts in a hastv manner is bound to re-
322
TWO KEYS TO CLARITY: GRAMMAR AND USAGE
than they expected." But in most cases "from" is the preferred usage.
You divide the apples "between" two; you may divide the apples
"among" four. You don't "refer back" to some item in your sales letter;
you simply "refer" to the item; "refer" implies a looking back. You
never say, "I plan on being in the office at nine in the morning"; you
say, "I plan to be in the office."
323
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
ELEMENTARY TEST
1. You (was, were) not present at last night's meeting.
2. ( Them, Those ) hats are very becoming.
3. I seen, saw an interesting sight yesterday.
( )
324
TWO KEYS TO CLARITY: GRAMMAR AND USAGE
ADVANCED TEST
1. He ( lay, laid ) asleep for an hour.
2. Please (lay, lie) your hand on mine.
3. John is ( lying, laying ) down.
4. Have you ( laid, lain ) on the grass this morning?
5. How (
is, are )
your mother and father today?
6. What kind ( of, of a ) man did she marry?
7. Everything he (prophesied, prophecized, prophesized, prophe-
cied) came true.
(7) any (8) have (9) eaten (10) staved (11) from (12) did
(13) Let (14) This (15) doesn't (16) Well (17) teach (18) her
(19) stolen (20) began (21) us (22) We (23)HeandI (24) its
(25) happier (26) dnmk (27) Sit (28) risen (29) isn't (30) ever
(31) written (32) drowned (33) regardless (34) invitation (35) did.
(13) her (14) is (15) Has (16) is (17) is (18) is (19)1 (20)
uninterested (21) are (22) hanged (23) as (24) who (25) You're.
325
28
Good grammar
in a nutshell
326
GOOD GRAMMAR IN A NUTSHELL
The sentence
Words are, of course, most meaningful in relation to each other. Place
a word in a sentence and a sentence in a paragraph and they will always
mean much more than when standing alone. A word by itself with no —
relation to any others —
means little. Apples. Sky. Logic. Uranium. The
firsttwo words make clear images. The third brings to our minds a
thought process. And, unless we have scientific knowledge, "uranium"
perhaps evokes the hazy vision of a bomb blast shaped like a mushroom.
Phrases say more, of course. Bushel of apples. Dark sky streaked by
lightning. Logic of events. Uranium, a metallic chemical element. Such
phrases, in varying degrees, add to these subjects. But if verbs and com-
plements are added to them their meanings become comprehensive,
complete; they become sentences.
atomic energy.
understood. If someone asks, "When will you arrive?" the reply may
be, "Early tomorrow." It means, "I'll arrive early tomorrow." Part of the
sentence is understood.
The different kinds of words that make up full sentences are known
as parts of speech. These terms come up frequently in the study of
the sentence; they fall traditionally into eight categories —conventional
"filing drawers" — into which the words of our language have been
327
WRITE BETTEB, SPEAK BETTER
gathered for more than four hundred years. You studied, probably
memorized, these parts of speech in school but here is a Hst of them
and their usual definitions to jog vour memory.
( "The," "a," and "an" are special adjectival forms called articles. )
^Ve just heard about a little boy who said to his teacher, "I ain't
got no pencil."
She conected him at once: "It's 'I don't have a pencil.' 'You don't
have a pencil.' 'We don't have any pencils.' 'They don't have any
pencils.' Is that clear?"
328
GOOD GRAMMAR IN A NUTSHELL
Kinds of sentences
The parts of speech are the building blocks of language and are com-
bined in different ways to make sentences. However, there are only
four kinds of sentences that result from these combinations: simple,
compound, complex, and compound-complex.
SIMPLE SENTENCES
The most rudimentary sentence consists of a subject and a verb or
predicate.
Smoke rises.
The noun "smoke" is the subject; the verb "rises" is the predicate.
The classification of a sentence as simple, however, has nothing to do
with brevity. This, also, is a simple sentence:
A good newspaper editor has a talent for stripping long, verbose para-
graphs of unnecessary detail, a knack of writing arresting headlines, an
abilitt/ to select the most graphic pictures for his front page, and a fan-
tastic memory of the middle initials in the names of the totvn's leading
citizens.
Among all the nouns in this sentence, only "editor" is the subject, about
which something is being said, and only the verb "has" is the predicate,
which says something about the subject. All of the other elements of the
sentence are complements. Whatever the intricacies of a sentence, its
structure can easily be mastered once the subject and the predicate
have been determined.
These sentences are also simple, though each of them has compound
elements.
329
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
about Franklin's place on the team: "is" and "plays." Example 3 has two
adverbs modifying the predicate "mixes up": "boldly" and "excitingly."
Although the elements of these sentences are compound, the sen-
tences are simple; each one is a simple, independent whole.
COMPOUND SENTENCES
Two sentences put together bv a coordinating conjunction make a com-
pound sentence. That is to say, a compound sentence consists of two or
more independent clauses, each of which could, bv definition, stand
alone as a sentence. ( A clause is a group of words containing a subject
and a predicate whether or not it stands alone.
Everyone knoics that Joe DiMaggio was one of the best hitters of his
day, but some experts say he was the most graceful center fielder in the
history of baseball.
Put a period in the place of the comma, take out "but," and capitalize
"some," and these two independent clauses could stand alone. They
would not, however, provide the dramatic contrast that they do when
combined into a compound sentence, as above.
A compound sentence may also be formed with punctuation.
The stock market turned upward today; it was the first rally after a
week of declines.
The semicolon takes the place of the coordinating conjuction, but
there .should also be a connection in sense; the ideas of the sentences
should be related.
COMPLEX SENTENCES
Who, what, when, where, how, and whv? The answers to these are a
fair description of what goes into the dependent clauses which combine
with an independent clause to form a complex sentence, contributing
information that makes the independent clause more precise, more
meaningful.
330
HOW TO DIAGRAM A SENTENCE
Teachers and students of English grammar have often found it
mar, but because many people find it entertaining and useful, here
a vertical line which crosses the horizontal line, then by the verb,
then by another vertical line which does not cross the main line but
separates the verb from the direct object. A single-word modifier
#^ (
subject ) A4viiAM' (
verb ) I
yj/tfJ-^ ( dxrect object 1
V- ( modiiier
'
( modijier
331
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
The teacher wrote on the blackboard: "I ain't had no fun all sum-
mer." Then she asked a youngster in the front row, "Harry, what
should I do to correct that?"
COMPOUND-COMPLEX SENTENCES
The fourth kind of sentence consists of a compound sentence (two or
more independent clauses) and one or 'more dependent clauses. The
compound-complex sentence has all the ingredients of the other three
kinds of sentences, as well as some new elements.
Most novels which win the critics' praises are ignored by the public;
although the sale of film rights to Hollywood redeems some, most of
these books are commercial failures.
The sentence above contains two independent clauses and two de-
pendent clauses.
Independent:
1. Most novels are ignored by the public
. . . . . .
332
GOOD GRAMMAR IN A NUTSHELL
This clause begins with the same word as Example 1: "most." Here
the word is a noun, rather than an adjective. ("Most" can also be an
adverb, as in "most disturbing," where it modifies an adjective.) The
way to tell that "most" is the subject is simply to take apart the sen-
tence —that is, to analyze it. If the prepositional phrase "of these books"
is mentally eliminated, it is easier to detect that "most" is the subject of
the clause and "are" is the predicate.
In the words "commercial failure" we meet an example of the comple-
ment. Together, this adjective and noun tell us something about the sub-
ject; they complement it. ( Complements are of several kinds, and are
discussed below under "Other Parts of Sentences.")
There are also two dependent clauses in our example of a compound-
complex sentence:
after, as, as if, as long as, as though, because, before, if, in order that,
provided that, since, so that, than, though, unless, until, when, whenever,
where, ivherever, while
Word agreement
It may seem needless to say that a singular subject takes a singular verb,
while a plural subject takes a plural verb. However, in conversation and
writing people frequently make a grammatical error when a phrase or
other element comes between the subject and the verb and the agree-
333
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
ment may not be clear. It's hard to tell which noun the verb belongs to.
The small table around which the children play was in the hall.
The following words are generally considered singular and take the
singular form of the verb
ject. As already shown above, there are many instances in which the
verbs, as well as the subjects, require other elements to make them clear
and to make them say all that we want them to say. Once these main-
stays of grammar —the subject and verb —are recognized, the other
grammatical "supports" that may accompany them can be more easily
singled out.
The complement mentioned in the discussion of dependent clauses
Language most shows a man: speak that I may see thee. It springs
out of the most retired, and inmost parts of us, and is the image of
the parent of it, the mind. No glass renders a man's form, or like-
334
GOOD GRAMMAR IN A NUTSHELL
relation is to the subject, we will find a rather colorless verb linking the
rect object)
Linking verbs are also intransitive and usually do not express action.
the passive voice serves us better by putting the main idea foremost.
335
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
He was expelled.
The books were burned.
whom or for whom the action expressed by the verb is being done.
They (subject) gave (verb) him (Indirect object) the prize (direct
object)
Her (pronoun) tact (subject) won (verb) her (indirect object) many
friends (direct object)
In a sentence such as "He gave to it his best effort," the use of "to"
makes "it" the object of a preposition. Here "it" is not an indirect object.
Such a prepositional phrase usually appears after, not before, the direct
object, and there is then no confusion between a prepositional phrase
and the indirect object.
The objective complement relates to the direct object and may be
either a noun or an adjective; it completes the meaning of a sentence in
which the direct object has not done so.
Appositive
Verbals
All the major elements of the sentence have now been mentioned except
three, which have names so formidable that they discourage many
from even approaching grammar. They add greatly to the richness of
336
GOOD GRAMMAR IN A NUTSHELL
the language, and anyone who wants to enrich his own speech or writ-
ing should make use of them. These are participles, gerunds, and infini-
tives, all verb forms known as verbals.
The participle is used as an adjective, in the present tense by adding
-ing to the verb form, and in the past tense usually by adding -ed.
Traveling is educational.
All verbals may take complements (or modifiers) and form verb
phrases; in addition, the infinitive forms clauses.
Participial phrase:
He found another student going his way.
Gerund phrase:
Crowning a king is the greatest pageant of modern times.
Infinitive phrase:
The hoy was asked to develop color pictures.
Infinitive clause
The father asked the hoy to develop color pictures.
337
29
Why spelling and
punctuation are important
Don't underrate good punctuation and spelling! These "lit-
tle" skills are basic tools in the writer's constant quest for
Xjet's take three little words, in the same order, and punctuate
them diflPerently:
"What a girl!"
"What, a girl?"
338
WHY SPELLING AND PUNCTUATION ARE IMPORTANT
a simple statement that the girls clean the office before leaving?
You can't tell without the proper punctuation.
Punctuation can make the difference between the understanding of a
communication —business, social, or any other kind — and the absence
of that understanding.
There are some thirty punctuation marks we use in the English lan-
guage. Each of them is of considerable importance to our writing, its
clarity, and its effectiveness. In the next chapter, you will find a com-
plete list of these punctuation marks and a thorough explanation of
how to use each one properly.
teachers' time, and the difficulties thrown in the way of English chil-
dren trying to learn their own language; or the fact that nobody with-
memory for words ever succeeds in
out a visual spelling conventionally,
however highly educated he or she may be."
He even went so far as to leave a huge sum of mone\- in his will to
endow the development of an English alphabet which would make
English spelling logical, at least as he saw it.
Until that alphabet comes along, however, we'll have to make do with
339
\\'RITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
the one we have; and let us not minimize for a moment either the diffi-
in our products, and may lose us that possible sale. Poor spelling in let-
Nevertheless, for all the seeming lack of reason, there are a number
of spelling rules which may be learned to good purpose, and there is a
consistency in these rules which makes them helpful.
Chapters 31 and 32 define these rules and tell you how to employ
them. You will also find in these chapters a number of tried and proven
methods for sharpening your spelling abilities. There are quizzes that
will help you determine both your weaknesses and strengths in spelhng;
and lists of words frequently misspelled, with drills and tests to aid you
in mastering them.
Spelhng may be one of the more difficult elements in our English lan-
guage, but it is an element which cannot be neglected if our business
and social communications are to be understandable and effective.
340
30
Punctuation
pointers
Clarity, clarity, and clarity are the three main reasons for
your reader through the sentences you have built and bring
341
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
Punctuation marks
PUNCTUATION POINTERS
as a word, without regard to its meaning, but use the regularly formed
plural if a meaning is attached to the word.
Comma
Appositives. Use a comma to set off an appositive, that is, an expres-
sion that explains or gives additional information about a preceding
expression.
But do not separate two nouns, one of which identifies the other.
Cities and states. Separate the name of a city from the name of a
state; also, separate the name of the state from the rest of the sentence.
The total number of children in high school is increasing and will con-
tinue to increase for several more years.
We appreciate very much vour order of July 16, but we are unable
to accept it because of our established merchandising policy.
The comma may be omitted before and if the clauses are short and
closely connected in thought.
The radios were shipped yesterday and the televisions will be shipped
tomorrow.
343
\ATUTE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
Dates. Separate the dav of the month from the year by a comma. If
no day is given do not separate the month from the year by a comma.
The trend is to omit the comma after the year, unless the construction
of the sentence requires punctuation.
Ellipsis. Use a comma to indicate that one or more words, easily un-
derstood, have been omitted. (A construction of this type is known as
an ellipsis. )
strictly enforced.
Inseparables. Do not separate words that belong together and are in-
terdependent, such as a verb from its subject or object or predicate
nominative, or a limiting clause from its antecedent.
In the following examples the commas in brackets come between
such inseparables and should be omitted.
344
PUNCTUATION POINTERS
Place a comma between a name and Inc., Sr., Jr., 2nd, III, etc.
O, OH. Use a comma after oh if other words follow it, but do not use a
comma after the vocative O.
Oh, he returned the manuscript yesterday.
O Shepherd, speak!
Parentheses and comma. Use a comma after a closing parenthesis if
You need tea, sliced lemon, sugar (preferably lump), cream, and as-
sorted cookies.
345
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
modifies when the noun is not the subject and the participial phrase is
WRONG: The operators, having agreed to arbitrate, the union called oflF the
strike.
RIGHT: The evidence being merely circumstantial, the jury acquitted him.
right: The operators, having agreed to arbitrate, went back to work.
Phrases with a common element. Place a comma before a word or
words that are common two or more phrases but are expressed only
to
after the last phrase. In the following examples the commas in brackets
are frequently omitted in error.
The report was documented with references to many, if not all [,] of
the recent court decisions on the question of interlocking directorates.
(The words "of the recent court decisions" are common to "many" and
to "all.")
The sales manager's reports are clearer, more concise, more accu-
rate [,] than those of the advertising manager. (The words "than those
. .
." are common to "clearer," "more concise," and "more accurate.")
Quotation marks and comma. Place the comma on the inside of quo-
tation marks.
346
PUNCTUATION POINTERS
tion connecting the last two members of a series. (See the use of a
semicolon in a series, pages 355-356.
This amount is equal to the covered loss less ( 1 ) the coinsurance de-
duction and (2) the normal loss.
He can ask for changes in the estimate or for a completely revised
estimate.
Colon
social.
These conditions must exist: adequate heating, plastered and painted
walls, locked front doors.
But do not use a colon to introduce a series of items that are the direct
objects of a preposition or verb or that follow a form of the verb to he.
WRONG: The requirements of a good secretary are: ability to take rapid dic-
tation and to transcribe it rapidlv; ability to spell correctlv and to
use the dictionary to the best advantage; familiarity with . . .
^ote: A colon may precede a formal tabulation even when the tabu-
latedwords or phrases are the objects of a preposition or verb or follow
a form of the verb to be.
Time. Use a colon to indicate clock time, unless the time indicated is
347
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
Matthew 10:4.
Dash
Principal use. The dash is used principally to set off explanatory
clauses, to indicate abrupt changes in the continuity of expression, and
to set off a thought that is repeated for emphasis.
When I last spoke to John — it must have been two days ago —he was
willing to sign the petition.
IT'S A PROBLEM
Although they are often confused, its and it's are two completely
different words. Its is a possessive pronoun meaning "belonging to
348
PUNCTUATION POINTERS
dash. Do not use a dash with a comma or semicolon. Do not use a dash
and colon together before a list of items.
Ellipsis
When you are quoting and want to omit words, use three consecutive
*
asterisks ( " » ) or dots ( . .
.
) to indicate an omission of words. If a
period would ordinarily follow the words omitted, you will then have
three dots followed by a period ( . . . .
)
Exclamation point
349
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
Note: If the figure is written before the word "dollars," do not use the
dollar sign; if the figure is written after the word "dollars," use the dol-
lar sign. This rule also applies to the percent sign.
Stock may be divided broadly into two kinds: (1) common stock and
(2) preferred stock.
He gives more +'s than 's. — She used three because s in one
Add two 4's and three 5's. sentence.
The 1890's were gay. He should mind his p's and ^'s.
350
PUNCTUATION POINTERS
thetical clause or phrase. They are outside the parentheses if they be-
long to the words of the rest of the sentence. See also Periods and
PARENTHESES, bcloW.
The boy ran as if a ghost (and, indeed, he may have been right) were
following him.
He reported the action at once. (He has a strong civic sense of re-
sponsibilitv.)
He turned in a perfect examination paper. (What an example for the
rest of the class!)
Period
Contractions
ass'n sec'y
WOR NBC
Periods and parentheses. When an expression in parentheses comes
at the end of a sentence and is part of the sentence, put the period out-
351
%\TyTE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
The creditor can get a judgment against him and garnishee his wages
(see page 384).
The creditor can get a judgment against him and garnishee his wages.
(The law of garnishment is discussed at page 384.)
The honorary chairman of the board (he retired from active duty
several years ago) addressed the Quarter-Century Club.
Periods and quotation marks. Always place the period inside the
quotation marks.
Have you heard the decision that was made at the conference?
(Direct)
Mr. Rogers asked me, "When \\ ill the book be ready for publication?"
(Direct)
Mr. Rogers asked me when the book would be ready for publication.
(Indirect)
What will be the significance of man's landing on the moon if men still
cannot get along with their fellows? If man's cultural endeavors have
been sacrificed? If world peace is still unstable?
352
PUNCTUATION POINTERS
Who is responsible for (a) copyediting the book, (b) the art work,
(c) the production schedule?
Quotation marks
quotation marks, but do not enclose words that are not quoted exactly.
The quoted material mav be a word or several paragraphs in length.
But do not use quotation marks when the name of the speaker immedi-
ately precedes the quotation or in question-and-answer material.
353
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
Titles and names. Use quotation marks to enclose the titles of:
articles paintings
chapters or parts of books plays, motion pictures, sketches
brochures, pamphlets poems
operas songs
Rachel said, "Anna asked me, 'Well, do you like my play?' and I
"
answered, 'I'll produce it.'
Day' Dinner"; "Prices Shished for Our 'Fire Sale' "; " 'No Trespass-
ing.' " And the card that graces (or graced) the knick-knack shop
in Palm Beach: "Brow 'z ers Always Welcome." Somebody had
something cute in mind, but what?
Actually the legitimate uses of quotation marks are fairly few:
to enclose the exact phraseology of spoken or written language that
is being cited; to set off titles of books, chapters and the like, when
italics are not so used; to mark a word or phrase being used in a
special way, and sometimes to disclaim responsibility for the words
of someone else. — Theodore Bernstein
354
PUNCTUATION POINTERS
Who is the author of the short story, "Curfew Shall Not Ring To-
night"? (The entire (juestion is not quoted.)
He shouted, "I will never consent to those terms!" (The exclamation
is part of the quotation.
Semicolon
The adjustment has been made; the file has been closed.
A low rate of interest usually reflects easy conditions and a rather in-
On the other hand, if the turnover is low in comparison with the nor-
mal figure, it shows just the opposite; that is, weaker sales policy, and
poorer purchasing ability and stock control than the average.
operations; (2) long bills arising from the making of foreign loans;
(3) finance bills.
355
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
therefore, thus.
He telephoned that he did not plan to leave until next week; there-
fore, I did not consider it necessary to send the report to him by airmail.
PUNCTUATION POINTERS
Following the rules outlined in this chapter, punctuate the following
sentences:
1. Its plain to see said she there are too many ands in that sentence
2. The artist Marat will open a show in Richmond Virginia on Wednesday
April 27
3. The suggestion which had arrived too late was held for the next meeting
4. However you do it get here by the first of the month
5. However I would like to see you earlier if possible
6. Jim Browne hes a friend of yours isnt he called today
7. Cans made up 60 percent of the litter bottles 40 percent
8. Did the company destroy its image he mused
9. Will you please send the five hundred dollar $500 withdrawal as quickly
as possible
10. Yes the concert will be played over Station WXYZ at 130
11. Hurry deliver the package to the following address 6672 Schnefel St
Kansas City Mo
12. The businessmens assn was formed in the early 1940s
356
31
How to become
a good speller
You can't expect to become a good speller overnight, or by
will help you tackle the job in the most interesting and effi-
through all these little steps? Why can't I get the answer immediately?
I'm the future king!"
"There is no royal road to knowledge," answered his tutor.
357
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
follow the steps enumerated below. This is a prescription for good spell-
ing that has rarely failed. Why not give it a trial?
Try to discover little devices of your own that will help you to remem-
ber the spelling of words that have no rules. For example principal
means the head of a school or the main thing; principle means a rule or
a truth.
Much slaughter on the battlefield of spelling has been caused by
these two enemies of peace of mind. And yet one simple device will re-
move forever the confusion caused by them.
A princip/e is a rule. Both of these end in le. Now you have the whole
secret. If it means a rule, spell it with the le; the other meaning must be
spelled principal. You may remember it another way. If your principal
is a fine fellow, he was a PAL to you. And there you have the second
How can you be certain? Easily. Take a letter; yes, a letter. That's
what stationery is used for, and you'll notice that letter ends in ER.
Now stationery ends in ERY.
The otherword means standing still. Think of the a in standing and
you'll remember the ARY in stationariy.
SEPARATE
The word separate has long been a trouble spot.
Think of the word PART. When you sep AR ate, you take things
a PART. That will tell you to be sure to spell the word with AR.
These three devices you may use. But the best tricks are the ones you
think up yourself. When you discover a way to spell a word that has al-
ways given you trouble, you will be so overjoyed at the discovery that
you will never forget the spelling. All laws of psychology teach us that
we seldom forget anything we learned with pleasure. Therefore, try to
be a spelling discoverer; enjoy your latest discovery and one more spell-
ing demon will be eliminated.
358
THE SIMPLE RULES OF SPELLING
here "^
(w)here I place
(t)here J
The dictionary is probably the most valuable book in your library. You
should form the habit of consulting it the moment you are confronted
with any spelling difficult^ Don't delay. When a word bothers you, and
no rule or device will help, lookup while the annoyance is fresh. This
it
is good psychology. The sooner vou remove the cause of the annoyance
( the doubtful word ) the more certain will you be of its disappearance
,
as an annoyance.
The dictionary is an authority that cannot be challenged. It is much
more reliable than the memory of ordinary mortals. Why worry about
the spelling of a word? A glance into the dictionary will answer your
question. Sometimes the same word may be spelled correctly in more
than one way, and the dictionary will help you with this. For ex-
ample, U.S. spellings of labor, favor, and armor are paralleled in Eng-
land by the spellings: labour, favour, and armour. The British prefer
The British (and many Canadians) spell these words with RE: cen-
tre, metre, theatre. The U.S. spellings are: center, meter, and theater.
In all these instances, and many more, a good college dictionary will
indicate these differences. For this purpose the special section on
"Spelling" is especially useful.
Remember! Consult the dictionary.
359
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
Listen
and consequently they don't really hear what is being said. The more
cultured the topic, the more alert must the hstener be. These days there
is much talk in the field of economics. Terms like government, secu-
2. Close your eyes or turn away and form a picture of the word in
your mind. If the letters are not clearly before you, look at the word
again, until you see it with your eyes closed.
:]. Pronounce the word and write it at the same time. If you are not
sure, try to picture the word. Be certain that you write it correctly the
first time.
4. Write the word a second time, using it in a sentence.
5. The next day write the word down as someone else reads it to
you.
360
32
The simple rules
of spelling
good speller. Careful study of the rules, word lists, and exer-
cises in this chapter will enable you to spell all but the most
every word vou want to use without wasting time sounding it out or
looking it up in the dictionary.
This chapter will give you a few of the most useful and important
spelling rules and help you solve problems like these:
How many times have you been puzzled about doubling a consonant?
Does beginning have two n's in the middle?
Does omitted have two t's?
These and all other questions are easily answered if you will remem-
ber a few scientific rules. There are very few rules in English as sure to
help you as these.
361
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
Rule 1: When a one-syllable word (run) ends in one vowel (u) fol-
Now discover for yourself what would happen to the final consonants
of these words
Word
THE SIMPLE RULES OF SPELLING
Study the suflBxes to the following words. Each word satisfies three
conditions:
1. It has more than one syllable.
2. The last syllable has the accent.
3. The last syllable ends in one vowel and one consonant.
Word
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
Remember Rule 1. There must be only one vowel followed by one con-
sonant for you to double.
cramp nod
drum rain
grin rest
hit "g
look scrub
Six out of the ten doubled their consonants. The remaining four did
not because they had a vowel and two consonants (cr a m p) or two
vowels and consonant ( 1 oo k )
Look at the words below and notice how the meaning is determined
by the single or double consonant. This is why correct spelling is so
important to convey your meaning.
bused transferable
chagrined transference (but transferring)
gaseous {hut gassed) facility
defer + ed deferred
refer + ence tire + less
shop -f ing swim + er
suit + able trim + er
hit + ing occur + ence
singe + ing commit + ed
control 4- ing equip + age
repel + ant excel + ing
consonants.
364
THE SIMPLE RULES OF SPELLING
365
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
The final E
Rule 1: When a word ends in E, drop the E before adding a suffix
The final Y
Why should the final Y cause so much trouble? Two simple rules will
take care of all such words. Notice these words
Singular Plural
abb(ey) abbeys
journ(ey) journeys
monk(ey) monkeys
366
THE SIMPLE RULES OF SPELLING
1. tourney in plural
2. past tense of allay
3. past tense of volley
4. alley in plural
5. past tense of survey
6. present participle of portray
7. past tense of journey
8. past tense of relay
9. plural of delay
10. past tense of parlay
b. add a suffix:
airy + LY = airily
angry + LY = angrily
clumsy + LY = clumsily
367
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
c. to form the third person singular of a verb add ES; to form the
past tense of a verb add ED :
Caution! There is only one case in which the Y is retained when it fol-
lows a consonant. That is before ing — in other words when you form the
present participle of a verb.
altos
WRTTE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
To form the plural of nouns ending in Y, see "The final Y," page 366.
brothers-in-law mothers-in-law
A few compound words are practically single words and add the S at
the end. This explains such cases as:
A long time ago the English language had quite a list of words whose
plurals do not end in S. Only a few are left today, but they never give
any trouble because they are learned in the very early grades of school.
child
THE SIMPLE RULES OF SPELLING
fungus
focus
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
t flurry
Mary sulky
anniversary surrey
dromedary inequity
kerchief satellite
4 functionary
court-martial avocado
bay dynamo
Exercise 3. Have someone dictate the follo\\'ing passage containing
many singular nouns for which you will write the plurals.
When you are able to add able and ible correctly, you have an ability
that is to be envied. If you learn how to use able correctly, then ably
and ability follow naturally.
With this particular spelling difficulty, the best advice is: Observe
carefully. There is no hard and set rule. But if you master a few key
words, the others will come easily.
Our most familiar words add -able to form the adjective. This list
372
THE SIMPLE RULES OF SPELLING
Now study the words that end in -ible. You will notice that the words
in the following group have a double -ss before the -ible.
Each of these words, except possible, has a noun ending in ion. That
is another sure way to recall their spelling.
Few writers make mistakes in spelling the noun permission, and you
should not have difficultv with the adjective if you associate the sufBx
-ion with ible. How would you tell the spelling of a word like kiss? It
ends in iss. But it has no noun in -ion (kission) and hence no ending
in -ible, but has the form kissable.
You can apply this -ion -ible test to many doubtful words, and you
will be able to think of the correct form that way.
Notice! The following words all end in ion:
Now the simple rule in all of these words is: Drop the on and add ble.
Practically all other adjectives ending in ble have the form able.
Adjectives which also end in -ible but do not have an -ion form can
be remembered in this way: The ible is necessary to preserve the sound
of soft g or Thus the word tangent has the adjective tangible, because
c.
an able would change the pronunciation of g from its present sound to /'
Be sure that you remember the three reasons for adding -ible, not -able:
1. It follows double ss and comes from a noun ending in -sion (per-
mission )
2. The noun ends in -ion coercion )
(
373
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
Exercise 1. Add able or ible to each of the fifteen words on this list:
Did you add -able to each of these? Then you were 100 percent
correct. Now add -able or -ible to the roots of these words:
abomination abominable conformation
commendation appreciation
admiration consideration
Did you add -able to each of these words? You were 100 percent
You can accept as a basic fact: A noun ending in -ation will
correct.
Did you add -able to the roots of each of the words ( after dropping
the -ation)?
374
THE SIMPLE RULES OF SPELLING
best to study each of the following lists, using the words as often as
possible until you habitually spell them correctly.
abundant
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
original word.
Adjective + ly = adverb.
verbal + ly = verbally
accidental
THE SIMPLE RULES OF SPELLING
the list of ise words and then remember that all others are spelled ize.
advertisement
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
adventure
33
www cxzllmnhd!" The jittery teller kicked his alarm button, bells
clanged, police converged on the bank and nabbed the man. They
discovered that he was a respectable businessman with laryngitis. What
"May I have a new checkbook?"
the note said was,
Bad handwriting doesn't always have results this bizarre. Still, illegi-
379
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
signature. When he starts out in life, it's clear and legible. The higher
he climbs, the worse it gets." A graphologist, an expert who reads
character from hand\vriting, offered this explanation: At the bottom of
the ladder, the man is considerate, conscientious, hard-working, anxious
to make a good impression — qualities reflected in his straightforward
script. In the rough-and-tumble of competitive life, however, he has less
time for such basic details. As a result, his writing becomes hasty.
be more considerate of others b\- writing more clearly, you may find
could read every word. She simply had the thoughtful idea of using a
finer pen point and writing more distinctly. "Now," she writes, "I must
keep a desk that lives up to my handwriting. It's never been tidier. For
the first time in my life, I know where everything is!"
380
CAN YOU READ WHAT YOU ^VRITEr
were turned down," he said. "Their illegible sales slips would create
extra work for our accounting division, cause customer complaints,
destroy good will, and lose business."
Some vears ago, Philadelphia businessmen complained so about the
deplorable handwriting of the city's high school graduates that school
officials launched a drive for better penmanship. They came up with a
new look in the alphabet, called the "Philadelphia Simplified Alphabet,"
and prepared manuals, wall charts, and teaching guides.
Much of the trouble, the educators found, was caused by fancy cap-
ital letters, so they pruned all unnecessary and potentially misleading
"scrollwork." They insisted on such things as this: that t's contain no
^ja!<vsAVi»y'*.ts>i>
Could the teacher tell that this extreme backhand slant on the left was part of the
Gettysburg Address? Besides, the letters are all the same height, and there is not
enough space between words. Some backhand slant (see right) can be readable.
How's that again? Forward slant on left is so extreme that loop letters have been
closed. Letters are crowded, and too thick a pencil has exaggerated both errors. Slant
on right is clear.
(f-c^
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
loop and that they be clearly crossed ( to avoid confusion with I's ) ; that
the loop of an e be clearly kept open; that great care be taken to distin-
guish between potentially look-alike numerals such as 4's, 7's, and 9's;
3's and 8's; 6's and O's. They insisted that a one-letter space be left be-
tween words, that all letters slant the same way, be uniform in size, and
look as though they rest on a straight line whether there are lines on
the page or not.
Today many of Philadelphia's public-school pupils are learning the
new handwriting method. And from the samples I've seen, they're
doing it well.
After seeing the difference these changes made, I went to work on my
own capitals, numerals, and loops. With patience and practice, I
Remedial action has also been taken in the schools of New England.
The New England School Development Council, with a membership
of 150 school systems, appointed a Handvio-iting Committee which dis-
covered that far too many elementary and high school pupils did not
know how to sit propcrlv, how to hold their pens or pencils, or how to
tellwhat was wrong with the way they wrote. The committee drafted
and distributed a teacher's guide. Handwriting Today, which has re-
vitalized penmanship programs.
"fiandwriting," says Lewis Mumford, "is an art open to any amateur,
for the delight he gets himself and the further pleasure he gives
from it
to others." With a little care all of us can write more clearly, showing
that we respect the written word and, above all, the reader.
A final word of advice: When you start your improvement program,
tell your bank and credit-card companies what you're up to. My bank
382
PART THREE
How
to speak
better
WHAT YOU WILL FIND IN
Part three
34. Of cabbages and kings 385
Of cabbages
and kings
"The time has come," the Walrus said, "to talk of many
things: of shoes— and ships— and sealing-wax— of cabbages—
Almost three hundred years ago, British author and politician Joseph
Addison had this to say about it: "If the minds of men were laid open,
we should see but little difference between that of the wise man and
that of the fool. The difference is that the first knows how to pick and
cull his thoughts for conversation . . . whereas the other lets them all
indifferently fly out in words." And this is still true today. It is by what
you say and how you say it that people judge you most often. That is
385
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
"I need your help," says your immediate superior, walking up to your
desk. Is he issuing a command or making a request? Is he delivering a
routine order or is he paying you a welcome compliment?
"Please come in." Are you asking your milkman to step into the
house, while you get the money to pay his bill, or are you joyfully wel-
coming a long lost friend?
These are simple phrases in simple situations; yet the wav we speak
them gives each a distinct emotional meaning. Now let us explore
another area: the ambiguous phrase in a complicated situation.
Asked about his possible candidacy and reelection in 1928, Calvin
Coolidge said, "I do not choose to run." Coolidge was known as a plain
speaker, his remarks often on the dry side. Yet in a matter of the greatest
significance to the people of the United States the President had de-
livered an enigmatic phrase. Was he really retiring from the political
scene, orwas he demanding that his party draft him as its candidate in
the coming elections?
When President Lyndon Baines Johnson made a similar statement
in 1968, he was careful to add that he would not run for reelection even
if he were nominated by his party. This prevented the kind of confusion
that followed the Coolidge pronouncement.
Now the words we use, and the way we use them, are not likely to
386
OF CABBAGES AND KINGS
shake the nation. They may, however, have a considerable eflPect on our
business, social, and family lives, and in our communities.
Each of us speaks many ways at different times. We have one way of
speaking to the man behind the when we
grocerv counter, another
speak to our emplovers or employes. We
way in a discussion
speak one
group at the P.T.A. meeting, another with the man who is examining
our income tax statement, and still another when we entertain our good
friends and relatives.
Our vocabulary and our tone also change with the different audiences
How do we define this art which arouses our interest, respect, and
trust? More importantly, how do we develop this art in ourselves? Both
of these questions will be explored and answered in the coming
chapters.
You'll find all the answers to these questions in Chapter 36, "The Art
of Being a Successful Host." There you will also find suggestions on
387
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
How do you speak with someone who is blind, or who suffers from
some other physical handicap? The tendency is to be tender and overly
sympathetic. This approach, of course, is all wrong. Handicapped peo-
ple want their handicaps ignored, want to be treated like any human
being. Unhandicapped persons may find this difficult, particularly at a
first meeting; but they can unlearn this awkwardness.
How do \'ou talk with bores, drunks, "wolves," quarrelsome people,
gossips, foul-mouthed people, people who insist on discussing their
embarrassing private lives? Chapter 38, "Ten Conversation Problems
and How to Solve Them," steers you through the course.
388
ARE YOU A BORE?
If you think vou are, vou're not. If it never occurs to vou that you
might be, there's a horrid chance that you are, for the outstanding
characteristic of the bore is his unawareness of the fact. He is too
mv mind, is the narrator who starts his story with its grandmother,
explores every branch of its family tree, and ends up with remote
descendants, while his listeners sit around in a state of polite, help-
less petrifaction.
I also shrink from the Jokester Bore: You have only to lay eyes
on him to see "Have you heard this one?" rising to the surface. We
all know the Hypochondriac Bore who draws up symptoms from a
bottomless well and is never happier than when giving a stitch-by-
stitch account of that last operation. I dread too the male — it is
right place. And there is the Snob Bore who manages to inject
Not all bores are talkative; there is the Strong, Silent Bore. In
his own household he glooms his family into an awestruck hush;
at parties he never opens his mouth except to put something into it.
best is to stay alive and interested, not onlv in our own affairs
—I.A.R. Wylic
389
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
ability to speak so that others will not only be interested in your ideas
but will be influenced by them as well, is one of the greatest assets a
business person can have. And like any special skill, eflFective speaking
can be learned.
Do you know, for example, how to make an introductory telephone
call to a prospective customer? Do vou know how to arrange the first
meeting with a client? And what do you say when you walk into his
oflBce for the first time, with your attache case in your hand? Once
you've made the how do you develop it? Should you be
initial contact,
always with us, and our talk will invariably prove more interesting
and more effective if we give time to developing the latent arts and
skills in speaking that we all possess.
390
35
The secrets of
good conversation
An interesting conversationalist is welcome anywhere— and
you can learn to be one. Here are tips and helpful exercises
that will give you more confidence in a group, show you how
tunities for asserting our individuality, telling the world just how we
feel, or "letting off steam." Talk of this sort is pleasurable and valuable.
It is like tinkering with a hot rod, or breeding tropical fish, or puttering
391
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
Did I fail to keep a conversation going? Did I let it bog down? Could
I have moved more smoothly from one topic to another? Was I clumsy
in ending a conversation?
Was it some mechanical fault that made me ill at ease? Was it mis-
pronunciation, forgetting names, overuse of slang?
392
THE SECRETS OF GOOD CONVERSATION
your Aunt Matilda, aged seventy-five, arrives unexpectedly with her pet
canary one gloomy Sunday and announces plans to spend three weeks
with you. But armed with some principles, and some previous practice,
you ought to be able to greet her or turn her away with more poise than
apoplexy.
EXERCISE NO. 1
During the coming week take careful note of your conversations and
their characteristics. What were your weak spots, your strong points? At
the end of the week, decide what you need most to improve upon.
Each successive week, for a month or two, sit down at approximately
the same time and repeat the process. Pick a time when your schedule
isn't likelv to be broken or interrupted.
may be thinking about topics in the wrong way. You may have some
misconceptions concerning the things people talk about and what sub-
jectsmake for interesting conversation.
One common misconception is that only the \ery unusual event is
worth talking about. You ransack your mind for some preposterous
coincidence, some tremendous achievement, some shattering experi-
ence, some hilarious situation.
Vastly exciting and amusing events do occur in this world, of course,
and people enjoy hearing and telling about them.
But many an agreeable evening has been spent in small talk about
the ordinary happenings and problems of everyday living — getting the
children off to school, whether tomato plants should be staked or not,
good places to spend the weekend.
Soyou have never had quintuplets nor explored the upper Amazon,
if
nor been forced at the point of a gun to prepare breakfast for four bank
robbers, you need not remain silent. However simple the life you lead,
it provides plenty of material for conversation. Remember that most
other people are mainly interested in day-to-day events, too.
very learned.
People do talk about the special theory of relati%'ity, gambits in chess,
and atomic fission, to be sure. But more often, thev talk about life and
393
WTIITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
love, and food and drink, and the weather. So do not feel that only
topics )0u have studied for months are suitable for conversation.
Air your prejudices, too, if you want, provided you show by words
or your tone that you know them to be prejudices; and provided, of
course, that they are not offensixe.
If vou can't stand calorie counting, or
amateur ps\'choanalysis, don't hold back. On the other hand avoid be-
coming known as a person who "can't stand" things.
Some persons like to make challenging statements. To an admirer of
Eugene Ormandy, they'll sav, "Don't you think he plays everything too
fast?" Such remarks may provoke stimulating discussion; they may also
provoke discord. The challenge must be carefully handled, and you had
394
THE SECRETS OF GOOD CONVERSATION
better leave you are very sure of yourself and your company.
it till
Before offering a topic, be sure vou know something about it. This
doesn't mean your knowledge must be encyclopedic. But be sure you
are familiar with it. If you have had only a weekend of skiing you had
better not tell how to execute a stem-Christy. There may be an expert
present, and you wall be much safer describing your first reactions to
395
\VRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
IS IT TOPIC TROUBLE?
—
One possibility remains that vou haven't really got topic trouble at all.
There may have been topics vou could do well with, only you were too
shy to speak up when they were mentioned.
You may have set your sights too high. You may have talked very well
without realizing it.
Or you may have wrong goals. You may have been comparing your-
self wdth someone who is a good conversationaHst, but in a style not
suited to you.
If that is the case start afresh. At the next occasion where you can do
so, sit in, but onlv as a listener.
ing him warmly, then I smiled at him and asked him about himself.
I paid very close attention while he told me. I went out of my way
to agree with his views on how wonderful he was. He talked for
nearly an hour and when we finally parted company I knew I'd
made a friend for life." The man paused for breath. "But, boy!" he
concluded, "what an enemy he made." Maclean's Magazine —
396
THE SECRETS OF GOOD COWERSATION
EXERCISE NO. 2
Jot down a list of possible topics from your past reading and listening.
Make a separate list of topics you have heard discussed in groups you
were with during the week.
Do anv topics occur on both lists?
Could you have used any other of the topics from the first list?
length on some topic, and yet not be adept at conversation. One may
tell some very good stories connected with the topic and yet provoke
groans and boredom instead of laughter and interest.
For good conversation involves two, three, or more persons, not just
appliance or ask him about problems in designing it. But )()u wouldn't
begin with a recital of defects you have found in it or with your notions
of how he should have designed it.
"but the cause that wit is in other men." Try not to hinder the inter-
change of ideas. Try to keep the conversation moving. Try to keep it
pleasant.
With old friends, this is no problem. We know their likes and dis-
likes. We enjoy talking about the same things. We feel at ease with
them, even during long silences. If we didn't, we wouldn't be old
friends.
397
HOW TO READ BODY LANGUAGE
All of us communicate with one another nonverbally, as well as
with words. We gesture with eyebrows or a hand, meet someone
else's eyes and look away, shift positions in a chair. These actions
we assume are random and incidental. But researchers have dis-
run without sound, it's not too difficult to identify from his gestures
the language he was speaking. One reason English-dubbed foreign
films often seem flat is that the gestures don't match the language.
Experts in kinesics — the study of communication through body
movement — are not prepared to spell out a precise vocabulary of
398
looked me up and down. Finally, a friend explained that Israelis
Far East it is impolite to look at the other person at all during con-
versation. In England the polite listener fixes the speaker with an
There are times when what a person says with his body gives the
lie to what he is saving with his tongue. Thus a man may appear
calm, self-controlled — unaware that his foot is beating the floor
constantly, restlessly. Rage is another emotion feet and legs may
reveal. Fear sometimes produces barely perceptible running mo-
tions — a kind of nervous leg jiggle. Then there are the subtle, pro-
tures, eye behaviors, etc. — they also learn a subtler thing: how to
The American and the Arab are even less compatible in their
space habits. Arabs may stand very close together to talk, staring
intently into each other's eyes and breathing into each other's face.
These are actions the American may associate with sexual intimacy
and he may find them disturbing in a nonsexual context.
The amount of space a man needs is also influenced by his per-
399
\\T^ITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
take effort and time. We may even haxe grown shy of meeting and talk-
ing with strangers generally.
Are those your problems? If so, let us see what you can do to make
meeting and talking with strangers easier and more pleasurable.
When \ou go into a strange house, be obser\ ant. Look for clues that
will help you to know the people who li\e there a bit better. What pic-
tures, books, magazines do they live with? Do they read Time and the
New Yorker? Or do they enjoy Life and Fortune? If you don't like their
taste in bric-a-brac or lampshades, cross those topics off your list. Look
for things you can praise or that suggest a mutual interest.
At a large party, sur\ev the several groups before you join one. Try
to spot one whose members at least look as if they might have some-
thing in common with you.
When you join a group, listen for a while for hints about the speakers'
personalities before making contributions Nourself. It is better to hold
back a bit than to blunder. ( If what you hear doesn't interest you, wan-
der off to another group. And listen there for a while before joining in.
hand. In a few moments you will know much more about him.
Volunteer information about yourself. Mention what you do, or hap-
pen to have been doing just before you met him. This will probably
lead him to tell you something about himself.
Ask personal, but not too personal, questions. Obxiouslv, one doesn't
ask a person's salary. But if one's host is with Bethlehem Steel, you can
certain!)- ask of a guest, "Are you with Bethlehem too?" If he is, you can
express interest or go on to further questions. If he isn't he'll probably
say what his work really and you can go on from there.
is,
The stranger's first few remarks should give you clues to his interest.
If he says, "This rain is certainly good for crops," you know that his in-
400
THE SECRETS OF GOOD CON\'ERSATION
terests are different from one who says, "If we have any more rain, the
versation, answered that it wasn't the topic, or the people as such, but
rather the attitudes of people. They found it easy to talk with the
friendly person, difficult to talk with the dogmatic person.
Is it your own attitude that you're uncertain about? Is your worry,
not what you say, but Jiow you say it? Do you think you might improve
your attitudes, but don't know quite what to aim at?
Below are two lists, one of attitudes generally considered good in con-
versation, one of faulty attitudes. Run over both. If you think you ha\'e
Be interested, not just in the one person you know very well, but in
all the persons in the group. Let your gaze move from eye to eye. Pick
out the person who hasn't said much, who looks ill at ease, and make a
special point of talking to Jiim.
401
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
their sensitive spots. But we should try not to wound through mere
thoughtlessness.
7.Be courteous. One could make a presentable case for the idea that
good conversation is good manners. This does not mean merely remem-
bering to say "Please," when asking for something, or thanking one's
host for a pleasant evening upon leaving.
It does mean having a general attitude of consideration for others.
Moderate \our statements. Avoid all and always. Swing over to some
and sometimes. Use a few, many, a great many, occasionally, infre-
quently, whichever you think is warranted. Be careful too not to say
golfers when vou really mean the golfers I happen to have met during
my three-day stay at Oceanside.
Learn the face-saving and argument-avoiding uses of: perhaps; do
402
THE SECRETS OF GOOD CONVERSATION
you think; last week I heard someone say that; maybe I'm wroni^, but.
More important, avoid using a dogmatic tone. Some people manage
to say, "It looks like snow," as if they were government meteorologists.
Conversely, outrageous exaggerations can be gotten away with if you
say them lightly and with a twinkle. "Fashion is spinach" didn't anger
the couturiers overly —and perhaps turned them for a season or two to
broccoli.
2. Don't be condescending. An attitude of being superior to everything
and everybody will soon leave you in splendid isolation. There are bet-
ter amusements than sitting alone looking down one's nose.
3. Don't be argumentative. Almost everybodv likes a good fight — in the
prize ring or the political arena. But almost no one is overjoyed to dis-
403
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
actions; but without gi\'ing the impression that you think the universe
revolves about you. Don't talk in such a way that your topics can be
described as "the Pyrenees and me," "inflation and me, " "the Taj Mahal
and me," "the Supreme Court and me," "the decimal point and me," etc.
"•
Don't aim to be ''tlie life of the party." We admire the wonderful
storyteller, the brilliant wit, the character whose infectious humor keeps
the party convulsed with laughter. But we shouldn't let our admiration
lead us into thinking that our every remark must be a joke, that the
chief goal of conversation is laughter. Good conversation can be serious
as well as gay.
If you wish, practice storvtelling, read magazines such as the New
Yorker for their humor, commit to memory prize bits of wit. These will
help your conversation; and you'll have many chuckles as you read,
say, Sydney Smith's "Bishop deserves to be preached to death by
wild curates," or "he was very agreeable, but spoke too lightlv, I
404
THE SECRETS OF GOOD CONVERSATION
utes with new guests to see that they are started off in conversation.
If you're uncertain about the other person's name, be sure to get it
spelling, for some people are verv proud of their names. But be cau-
tious here. If the name seems bizarre, perhaps vou'd better not show
that you think it unusual at all. Osbert Thwistletick has probablv suf-
fered enough from his name already, without your comment.
A remark about the surroundings is a standard starter, and a good
one. "It's a lovely part\', isn't it?" will do; and so \\'ill pleasant comments
about the house or the other guests.
food, the difficulty of managing the egg nog, the hors d'oeuvres, the
napkin. . . .
Keep the tone light at the beginning. A banker and an economics pro-
fessor, upon being introduced, each adopted a bantering tone. "You're
one of those fellows who tell us poor bankers what to think and do."
"Well, you seem to like it. You're always stealing our best professors
away to work for \'ou." Sexeral more smiling interchanges, and they
settled down to serious talk of the state of the nation.
Asking the other fellow about himself and his work or interests or
volunteering information about yourself is an excellent starter. "Do you
come from this part of the country?" "Have you lived here long?" Or,
if the host has mentioned his being an engineer, you can well ask
whether he is a ci\il, electrical, or chemical engineer. But don't be too
personal in the (questions vou ask.
And in xolunteering information, be sure mereh' to mention what
you do or what you're interested in. Don't launch into a five-minute de-
scription of your entire working-day routine.
Finding a mutuallv satisfactorv topic to talk about, and the right
tone, may take time and effort.
Sometimes two people click immediately. They spy each other across
a crowded room, head for each other, and, somehow, are soon im-
mersed in exchanging hints on the cultivation of mushrooms.
But sometimes half a dozen or more topics will be attempted and
none will strike a .spark. If this happens, don't give up. Keep trying.
405
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
Bearing in mind what vou know of the other fellow, the group, keep
throwing out the best ideas you can. All of a sudden, there it will be
the thing that two of you, or all of you, can have a very good time talk-
ing about.
Listening: Listen to what is being said. Don't let the talk flow over
and past you like water over a stone. Focus on the ideas, focus sharplv.
Listen actively. Let yourself react to what is said. Think about it.
Feel about it. Show your reaction. Nod, smile. Don't be a jellyfish,
Try to listen so well that you will be able to tell afterwards fairly ac-
curately what was said.
Keep your eye on the ball, on the topic or the aspect of it that is be-
ing discussed now. Don't think ahead to what may be said two minutes
from now. This may help you endure a boring speech; but conversation
requires alertness. You don't want to wake up, suddenly, to find every-
one waiting for you to answer a question you haven't heard. That stops
the conversation.
Don't interrupt. Listen politely to the other fellow. Give him his say.
Don't be so anxious to cut in with your idea that you disconcert the per-
son talking. Learn to listen so well that you can tell when he is coming
to the end of his contribution, so that you can come in with yours as a
fellow contributor, not an intruder. Then you will have had your say,
and you will have been a pleasant companion too.
406
THE SECRETS OF GOOD CONVERSATION
delightful."
Transitions: The time comes when the best of topics seems to be ex-
hausted. Interest wanes, contributions lag. That's the time to turn to a
new topic.
One way to make the transition is to let the old topic die. Miss Frost
says the last word on Florida oranges. Silence. Then, out of nowhere,
"I met an interesting character last week. He grows worms." And
you're off to interesting characters, worms, or odd occupations.
Another way is to pick up the last bit of talk on the old topic and
shift by one or more steps to something new. When no one has any-
thing to add on different types of mortgages you may remark, "Mort-
gages don't come into plays much anvmore, do they? In the old days
no self-respecting drama could do without one. The suspense was ter-
407
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
drugs, and someone is telUng how her Aunt Martha was cured, don't
latch onto the Aunt part and give your Aunt Emma's recipe for elder-
berry wine. If you must talk about aunts, restrict yourself to those who
have swallowed aureomycin and lived.
And don't shift too soon. While the topic still seems to interest the
others, don't let your waning interest lead you into pushing them
around. Make a polite comment sit silent and try to look in-
or two, or
terested. A few coins of patience must sometimes be paid for the de-
light of good conversation.
And the best of conversations must end. Start to go before the other
408
THE SECRETS OF GOOD CONVERSATION
fellow takes out his watch, don't dawdle over the coats and wraps,
avoid starting new conversations at the door, pay your respects briefly
to your host and hostess, and go.
Ending a conversation is also a way of keeping one going — the next
one, the one you hope you'll be invited for.
The major faults in our conversation are, of course, the violation of any
of its underlving principles, such as talking on topics which are taboo,
or conversing without regard for the other fellow.
But there are also several mechanical faults which we should avoid.
These result from carelessness, allowing ourselves to slip into a conver-
Pet words: A common fault is to have pet words and to use them
whether they are suitable or not.
Some people call all things they like or want to praise cute, or darling,
or exciting, or fabulous. They describe all things they dislike or consider
unsatisfactory as ghastly, or weird, or dull, or queer, or putrid. Some-
times a conversation seems to consist largely of lousy and swell.
Obviously, a mountain is not cute; and there are many other words
for describing people, places, and books than ghastly.
The correction lies in learning to use those other words. Eliminate the
pet words from vour conversation for a while. Try to use terms which
fitwhat you are describing. Refine your evaluations. Praise and blame
with discrimination. Think first: Is it excellent, good, fair, poor, com-
pletely lacking in merit? Learn to use admirable, deficient, awesome,
spurious. Build your vocabulary. Then, if you wish, return to cute and
gliastly, but use them properly.
told him to go, and naturally, he ." Also overused are: frankly, to
tell the truth, so to speak, you see, you know, if you see what I mean,
do you get the point.
Eliminate such unnecessary words and phrases.
409
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
Fad words: Still other persons load their talk with fashionable words
and phrases. They do not dislike things, they are allergic to them. At
present overall picture, contact, dynamic, process, basic, in terms of,
Too much slang: There's nothing wrong with slang itself. Even the
college professor uses it, though he may confine himself to old forms
now considered "acceptable." But much newly coined slang hardly
lasts the year out.
Avoid too much slang. Use it occasionallv and sparingly when you
think it will lend vigor and color to your talking.
Exaggerating: You must have heard a would-be wit proclaim his story
beforehand as "the funniest story I ever heard," only to look crestfallen
when the company didn't laugh quite as hard as he expected. Or you've
heard an enthusiast describe the wonders of a gadget, and then have to
back down when some more objective user listed its limitations.
410
THE SECRETS OF GOOD CONVERSATION
there was this man and he went into this store and he asked for one of
those, those what-d'ye-call-ems. . .
." This man doesn't seem to know
what "this" story is about.
Make up \our mind what the point of \our personal experience is.
Give names or not as you please. Mention only the details that count,
hearse the telling of a story. One can practice introductions. The best
practice for conversation is conversation itself.
topics, talk about the play you have all seen ( or the movie, or the tele-
vision program). Trv to keep the conversation going for a good while.
Build conxersations out of the events of the day as given in your eve-
ning newspaper. Bring half a dozen possible topics to the dinner table.
Practice with your friends. In\ ite a few over for the exening. In plan-
ning the evening don't let it be all bridge or some other game. Reserve
part of the evening for conversation. If vou feel that an innate friendli-
ness is one of your strengths, and want to develop it, concentrate on an
attitude of friendlv interest in the talk of the others for that evening.
Practice with strangers. Try to put the principles you ha\e been
reading about here into practice. Be on the alert for hints that will help
you. Adjust to the other fellow. Try to talk. Be an alive, an interested,
listener and talker.
Most important of all, seek out conversation. Look for the situations
in which conversations will develop. Cultivate a healthy, positi\e atti-
tude toward meeting friends and strangers. Each opportunit\- to talk
will proxide practice. vou improve, you will know more and
And as
more the stimulation and relaxation that good conversation offers.
411
36
talk to the men; and the women will talk to the women.
"What's on the chair is more important than what's on the table," said
W. S. Gilbert of dinner parties. Filling the same chairs with the same
guests party after party, however engaging and stimulating they may
be individually, is as unimaginative and palling as to serve truffles or —
an\' other delicacy — as the only course at every meal.
412
THE ART OF BEING A SUCCESSFUL HOST
Vary your guest list from party to party. Experiment. Bring in un-
"Father, this is Joe White's son Robert"; or, "Father, Bruce Hackstafl."
413
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
completely from your mind. Remember that everyone has had the
same experience. Admit frankly, "I just got one of those awful name
blocks on you, after twenty years. You say it!
^^'hen you have to leave a new guest with a group he has just met for
the first time, tell them enough about each other so that the conversa-
tion will have a starting point. "Roy is just back from the Pacific North-
west," you might say, "and he almost didn't make it. His engine conked
."
out while he was crossing the Columbia River bar . .
Seating arrangements
The way you seat vour guests at a formal dinner could make or break
your party. Work this out carefully, well in advance, host and hostess
comparing opinions. Then put the names on table cards, so that there is
ble and all the pears at another. On the contrary, upset the fruit basket.
Having gone to the trouble of bringing a variety of people together,
414
THE ART OF BEING A SUCCESSFUL HOST
You occasionally find a host who assumes that once dinner is over, his
responsibilities are over too. He disappears into the television room,
and that is the last anyone sees of him. The discourtesy is obvious. At a
huge gathering, run bv a trained staff, it may be possible for the host
or hostess to disappear without damage, but not at a party given by you
or me.
A generation ago, Lady Asquith held a reception in London. She re-
ceived the guests graciously, and then retired upstairs to play bridge.
Next day in a restaurant a woman at the next table said, "Lady Ascjuith,
415
YOU CAN REMEMBER NAMES
"A person's name is to him the sweetest and most important sound
in the hinguage," wrote Dale Carnegie, the shrewd teacher of hu-
man relations, in Hoiv to Win Friends and Influence People. Many
men and women who are leaders in their fields know this truth and
practice it.
The experts he consulted didn't help much, and his own think-
an accurate memory for names and faces was not necessarily a gift,
troduced what his name is. (But for goodness' sake, don't ask the
host —
he may have forgotten it.) The guest won't mind repeating
the name correctly.
2. The name must have a chance to sink into i/our mind. The
is indeliblv registered.
3. While you are getting the name, get the face. Look at the
person carefully. From his first day on the force every well-trained
policeman has drilled into him the technique of remembering a face.
This technique can be just as useful in ordinarv life.
416
Start at the top — with the hair. Is it blond, dark, gray? Then the
face: Is it round, oval, thin, heavy? Note the color of the eves, the
shape of the features. It is amazing how shaq:) the image will be
and how long it will remain with you.
Hat-check girls who operate in large restaurants and night clubs
without the use of markers, airline hostesses who never hear their
charges' names, and a host of others whose livelihood depends on
their abilitx' to remember faces teach themselves to observe and
register what they see. You can do it, too.
4. With name and face in mind, you have to cement the tico
together. Try to make a mental picture. You may be able to asso-
ciate a man with his business: A carpenter may be named Sawver,
a contractor mav be named Bridges. Mr. Mason —whether he is a
wac-law-ski!
This procedure may seem sillv, but, after all, you are the onlv
one who knows you are using it. And, again with practice, you will
find it extremely effective.
417
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
itv is still very much alive. B\' this time, most people will know whom
they want to talk to; up to vou to see that no one is left out.
but it is
If the partv is small enough so that everybody can sit, arrange your
living room chairs in advance to facilitate conversational groupings,
a diversion.
If someone is putting his audience to sleep with an endless story
about his dog, give him the hook: ask the mother of five at his right
whether she thinks sex in motion pictures has become too explicit, or
Sound like a strain for you? Well, in one way it is. A host can no more
relax completelv than a horseback rider can. At any instant the horse
might shy. But if you have prepared your party carefully; if you have
carried it forward with organization and consideration; if you have pre-
vented the men from forming into one group and the women into an-
other; above all if you have kept the conversation alive and lively —then
when it is all over, you, as well as your guests, will have had a wonder-
ful time. They will remember a sparkling evening —and vou will be the
one who put the spark in the sparkle.
POINTS TO REMEMBER
Take time to plan everything about your party with care. You'll find it's
418
37
That sort of regality gone with the wind. These are the days of de-
is
being laid.
Ann Landers, Mrs. Hubert Humphrey, and Mrs. Martin Luther King,
Jr., who became my friends after onlv one day's meeting. We often drop
419
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
You ha\e tsvo choices when your turn has come to meet a celebrity.
You can tell yourself you're such a worldly person that you won't bother
him, which may mean that you're just plain sh\-, or else you can ap-
proach him gameh' and say something. The latter alternative would be
your favorite if only you knew of some opening remark so deft and
delightful that the celebrit\- would be captixated hx you. That kind of
moment is the fabric of many a Walter Mittv dream, but it's not un-
realistic at all. Celebrities have to talk to someone while they're waiting
for their coffee to cool, and it might as well be you. And you might as
420
WHEN YOU MEET A FAMOUS PERSON
in a department store and rush over to tell her how much they miss
seeing her on What's Mij Line?
\\^ien in doubt, take the safe route of ambiguity and then gently
change the subject — as in, "I've always appreciated your work so much.
What are you doing in our town?"
Above all, don't ask him for clarification if you can't recall perfectly.
It's essence of nightmare when a fan, beaming with bonhomie and quite
impervious to the misery he is inflicting, insists on groping through his
The hapless actor is obliged to catalog his entire New York career but
he knows in his heart that it will turn out to be a plav tliat starred
There's something even more depressing than this sort of thing, when
the fan's only grasp on reality is the celebrity's name, and that's when
the fan doesn't have a name at all, not even a wrong one. He is not
deterred bv this a whit. He knows that the face is familiar, but he can't
are somebody."
NBC News correspondent Aline Saarinen told me of her all-time "Are
you somebod\?" experience. She was in Los Angeles reporting on the
opening of a museum. With her was another NBC correspond-
new art
421
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
woman approached with jov of recognition written all oxer her face.
"I just lo\e your reports on the Today show," she told a complimented
Mrs. Saarinen. "Your movie reviews are the best ever."
"Thank you," Aline responded graciously, "but I think you have me
confused with Judith Crist."
"Oh, yes," said the lady, and she turned her attention immediately to
Jack Paxton, "But I'd know \'ou anywhere. You're John Chancellor!"
There's one other minor disaster area when approaching a celebrity
who makes his or her living in front of a camera. Never indicate that he
looks different from what you expected. It's astonishing how many
otherwise sensitive people beliexe thev are delivering a great compli-
ment when they say, "The camera doesn't do you justice. You're so
much better looking in real life," or that the celebrity looks younger in
his hope that he looks good on camera — and that's a blow at his pro-
fessional survival. He must grit his teeth and say thank you, but some
of his confidence leaks out. What is even worse is to tell him that he
looks better on telex ision than he does in person. Either way, you can't
win. Nor can he.
Don't assume from this that it would be a lot easier on all concerned
to leave the celebrity strictly alone, thus avoiding all known booby-
traps. People with famous faces expect to be noticed and have a stock
awkwardness you might feel.
of gracious responses to help \'ou with the
Most of them would be very disappointed if some sort of flurry of atten-
tion didn't accompany their travels.
Sometimes the problem is that we the public think the celebrity will
be irritated b\' too much attention. I used to feel this way and the loss
was mine. I remember attending a buffet dinner where Harry Belafonte
was also a guest. The other women at the party swarmed around him
so aggressively that I decided to reduce his burden by at least one fe-
422
WHEN YOU MEET A FAMOUS PERSON
change even a few sentences with a celebrity. But try to appl\- old-
cided to stand a few feet away and just stare at him as he ate, and one
boldly pulled up a chair and joined us. Johnny has told me that this is
that we talked about it for days. Shortly after our first astronauts landed
walk of life, not to mention the astronauts themselves. But Lee and I
men. With bright lights continually flashing in his face, and strangers
leaning over with their arms on him, he tried gamely to eat his dinner.
He never lost his patience and I never felt more sx^mpathetic or under-
standing of his plight. Sinatra's only choice would have been to have
the dinner completely, but then he would have missed the evening's
left
BE CONSIDERATE
What have I learned from all this? I'd make it a rule not to approach
any celebrity while he is eating or relaxing at a prixate dinner. If you
want to say something kind, or ask for an autograph, write a message
and have the headwaiter deliver it.
(It's a minor point, but it makes a difference: before asking a celeb-
rity for an autograph, please obtain a pen and a piece of paper. It's a
423
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
—
by plane you have fastened \our seat belt preparatory for takeoff and
looked around at x'our fellow passengers to discover that the one in the
next seat is a celebrity. What to do?
Well, abo\e all, be considerate. The celebritv may be in transit from
one ordeal of putting out high-voltage charm to another that will be
even more of a strain on his resources. Perhaps he has been counting
on the peace and privacy of the flight to restore his energy and collect
his thoughts. By all means speak to him, say something flattering and
friendly —and then pick up a book and leave him alone. be pro- He'll
foundly grateful to you if he's tired, and vou've established an opening
for a conversation when he feels like it.
After
After the termination of the Seminole campaign,
camnait General Andrew
Jackson visited Washington City, and during his stay there, having
occasion to supply himself with a nether garment, employed a fash-
ionable tailor named Ballard to make it. Ballard, who was a very
which poor Ballard was afterwards obliged to wear to the day of his
424
WHEN YOU MEET A FAMOUS PERSON
and he has repHed that he is touched by your compliment. Now it's your
turn again.
Try something that demonstrates empathy with the celebrity as a
fleshand blood person, subject to fatigue and wounds like any man.
Chances are, in fact, that he is a more vulnerable person than you are,
and basically shy as well. Don't expect that his real personality is ex-
actly like his professional one; the confident, zany, or sexy image that
the performer projects to the public is often a piece of fiction. Co-
medians in particular put on a glittering show while they're working,
butmay be withdrawn and despondent otherwise.
Most people who succeed in having really engaging conversations
with celebrities stick to the areas that can be described as human inter-
chat with Queen Elizabeth at a cocktail party because she asked how
the Queen's clothes had weathered the previous day's windy visit to an
open-pit iron mine. The Queen bubbled as she described her amazed
discovery that she had been dyed henna from head to toe, and went on
to tell of attempts to brush her hat clean and her worr\' that her en-
semble could be salvaged
—"and it was brand-new, you know." By ex-
425
WT^ITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
celebrity's private life have received, no one has the right to poke into
them, unless the celebrity brings it up.
In most cases, though, children are a safe subject. You can ask how
many a celebritv has, how old they are, where are they, is he satisfied
with their schools. If you're a parent too, you have common ground
under your feet and room to be expansive. You can tell him that your
child is older, or about the same age, or whatever, and that you have
mixed feelings about the length of his hair, or that she collects lame
animals of assorted and smelly varieties.
Keep it light; don't open the closet. This is no place to tell about the
time your daughter ran away and was brought back by the police, or
what the psychiatrist said last week, or the night your son cracked up a
car. It's too heavy, too sad, too personal; resist the temptation to keep
the celebrity's attention bv playing Peyton Place and dramatizing the
misfortunes of niomb(M"s of vour fainilv.
426
WHEN' YOU MEET A FAMOUS PERSON
pation a housewife. She has a tall and \'ery handsome husband, four
children, but no actual claim to fame except for her interest in peopl(>
and the time she takes to nourish her friendships. As a result, she nimi-
bers among her \erv close friends such varied celebrities as Alan King,
Sheila MacRae, Jack and John Huston. Lola and I were re-
Valenti,
cently at a party that Alan King and his wife Jeanette gave in their
beautiful Long Island home to honor Ethel Kennedy on her birthdaw I
was seated at dinner next to Indiana's attractive Senator Birch Bayh.
The senator was being mentioned as a possible Democratic candidate
for President his and my views of that possi-
and we talked about both
bility. But Lola show and the senator when she was introduced
stole the
over dessert. "Tell me, Senator Bayh," she began, starting slowly, "how
are the tomatoes eomino[ along?" The senator laughed out loud and
asked how on earth she knew that he used to grow tomatoes and still
loved to. Lola, who now had his complete attention, explained that she
knew that he was going to be at the party and that she'd looked him up
in a reference guide she had at her house, much as she would study a
libretto of an unfamiliar opera before going to see it. She also knew a
good deal more about the senator and was so refreshing and compli-
mentary because she had done this homework that I lost the senator
for the rest of the dinner. But it was worth it for the experience.
42'
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
when John Kennedy was introduced to him and said he had liked
F.
Deer Park. Rachmaninoff, they say, hated his two most celebrated
preludes and called them "very bad music."
A humanized and deliberately provocatixe question has fewer snares.
Ask a painter what is the most beautiful thing he has ever seen. Ask a
writer how he first broke into print. (And never ask how he gets his
ideas; that's trite. Or ask the celebrity where he lives and if he likes it,
)
First thing you know, the celebrity will be talking to this person — you.
And you won't just be hstening, you'll be talking, too, and, most im-
portant, you'll be having a good time.
428
WHEX YOU MEET A FAMOUS PERSON
the book is nonfiction, do what I often do when I must talk with five
authors a week. If the book is nonfiction, I read the first chapter and
the last, and a few in between. If there isn't time, or I can't get a copy
in a hurry, I try to find a review of the book. It is no substitute for hav-
ing digested the entire book, but it's better than no preparation at all.
hail them bv their first names. Buddy Hackett and Red Skelton are
perfect examples of this. They give the impression that they are gregar-
ious to a fault, but awa\' from the stage, neither is very communicative
except with close friends. Alan King is the rare exception to this gen-
erahzation. He has a wade range of interests from politics to religion
and loves nothing better than a stimulating discussion. But very often,
highly creative people who work — alone painters, poets, fiction writers,
429
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
it's sneaky, but that's what it is. And don't presume because you have
a tender heart and have read Malcolm X that you appreciate the diffi-
culties of being black. Unless vou are black Nourself, you can't possibly
imagine what his life is hke.
I remember my own experience that taught me this lesson. I was
filming an interx iew with the brilliant and strikingly beautiful wife of
Black Panther leader Eldridge Cleaver. I approached Kathleen Cleaver
with great waiTnth and empathy asif to conxev to her that I was com-
answer them, but don't try to pretend that you have any knowledge
of what I've actually gone through."
So keep to the same topics that would interest you if he weren't a
Negro: Ask him if he finds celebrity tours a strain; if he would prefer
talking to a male or a female audience; ask for tips on packing a suit-
case; ask about the children. And don't go overboard with gracious
charm. As in "Some of my best friends are Jexvish," oversolicitude is
athletes and many, in fact, depend on sports for their small talk. Presi-
dent Richard Nixon, for instance, is said to use the subject of sports as
his ice breaker. To make strangers feel more comfortable in his pres-
430
WHEN YOU MEET A FAMOUS PERSON
cuss the technicalities ot the game, and 1 don't try, but 1 am interested
in him. I can ask what is the excitement of the game lor liini, liow does
his family feel about his playing, does his wife worry about his being
hurt, does the traxeling across time zones upset him, do his children
want to be professional athletes and how does he feel about that. And
unless it's really terribly funin^ or in his field, I don't inflict on him tlie
story about the time I got a stiff neck at the tennis matclies, or my
hilarious attempts to skate. I know he'll be bored rigid.
achieving the warm safety of real fame and always anxious that what
little they have mav slip away. Their inner fear may show itself as
brashness, or quick fury oxer imagined discourtesies, or arrogance.
However difficult the personality, put yourself out to be kind. Treat him
with the deference he desperately requires. The lesser his fame the
greater may be his need for affectionate treatment.
to put the crucial questions obliquely in the third person. Don't ask Joe
DiMaggio how he felt to be sitting in the stands idly while the crowd
roared for a younger slugger. Ask him instead to comment on Mickey
Mantle's gloomy observation on retiring, "From now on, it's all down-
liill." In answering that, he's almost certain to draw in his own experi-
admitting her age and asked if she felt that beautiful women in general
had a more difficult time than others accepting age. I remarked truth-
431
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
fully to Rex Harrison, "You seem \ ery happy, \erv much at peace," and
he told me that "getting out of one's cradle is a verv nice thing," and
that he thinks he gets better parts now that he is middle-aged, and that
he enjo}'s growing older.
Keep it positive, avoiding such negative openers as "What do you do
with your time these days?" or, "We miss seeing you on television.
Where have you been?" or, "It must be hard to be away from the stage
for so long." If you really must explore a sensitive area such as a former
drinking problem or an old scandal, again be indirect. For example, I
might ask an actor who has had more than his share of ups and downs,
"How do you feel about the public, which seems to swing from criti-
asked her how voung people in show business today compared to her
friends in the days when she was starting in vaudeville. And I got an
answer that still makes me feel sad every time I recall the interview.
"We all started too young in those days," she said. And then she added
with a tiny smile, "You know mv mother was the stage mother of all
time. She reallv was a witch. If I had a stomachache and didn't want
to go on, she would say 'get out on that stage or I'll wrap you around
a bedpost.'
The point is that if vou ask a performer not about himself but about
others, \ou will \ery often find that he will respond by talking most
personally about himself.
Another tip on the same subject: Don't attempt to probe in sensitive
areas right after the introduction. Talk about less personal matters until
you've built up some feeling of trust and liking. Until the celebrity, or
anyone for that matter, feels comfortable with you, it's not likely that
he will feel like disclosing anything more intimate than his hat size.
432
38
433
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
lated to the death, but not to his feeling of loss. Ask if he plans to move,
or if most of the familv were able to attend the funeral, or if he plans
to go away for a while.
If you can't think of something sufficiently neutral, talk of .something
else entirely. A friend of ours whose beloved brother had died met a
mutual friend on the street the next dav. She was close to tears and
dreaded talking to him for fear of making a spectacle of herself, but it
couldn't be avoided. He looked at her somberly for a moment and said,
434
TEN COXVERSATION PROBLEMS
"It's a damn shame," and then brisklv told her how he'd been able to
figure out that zoning problem that had been bothering her. She
couldn't digest a word he was saying, but she remembers that she
listened in a haze of gratitude for his tact.
You're going to have to use your own tact to gauge whether talk is
what the grieving person wants or not. If vou have privacy, and if the
death was recent, it's more likely that the person will want to talk of
nothing else, will need to talk of nothing else. There's a Hebrew proverb
about "wearing out" grief — if you bottle it up, you'll never soften it.
"Give sorrow words," said Shakespeare. "The grief that does not speak
whispers the o'erfraught heart and bids it break."
When you're with someone who has had a recent loss, and wants to
talk of nothing else, you're going to have to compose yourself for pa-
tient, sympathetic listening. Life isn't easy; every conversation can't be
a joy. And in later years, he'll remember gratefully that you listened
when he needed you most.
All grief is not for the dead. People show the same symptoms of grief
— lassitude, preoccupation with one topic, a general grayness —when
they have been through mutilating surgery, or when a marriage or a
love affair has ended before they were ready, or when they've just
moved from a place where they lived long and happily, or when their
self-esteem has been punctured by the loss of a job or failure to be
chosen for an expected honor.
Be tender; let them tell you how rotten they feel, and what a lousy
world this is. Don't argue and try to point out that they ha\'e no prob-
lems. Sometimes, as with teenagers, just sympathetically saying, "I
know, I know," helps. And have no illusion that thevll be comforted to
know you went through something similar —thev couldn't be less in-
terested. Also, it's unfair to all concerned to try to share the load by
haihng someone over to join you. Psychologists say that one-to-one
relationships require the most sensitivitv and inner resources of which
we are capable: look at the practice you're getting.
Eventuallv there comes a time when it seems reasonable, at least to
you, that the period of mourning should be over. You've heard the same
tale of woe twenty times and concluded that the person is being mor-
435
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
bid. It's time for him to move on, but you don't want to be ruthless
about it.
It's about a rich man who hears that there are four words which will ex-
plain the secret of life, but they are known only to a very old hermit
who is almost impossible to find. The man is so desperate to learn the
four magic words that he travels the world over and finally he climbs
the highest mountain in Tibet and there, exhausted and penniless, he
locates the old man. And the old man haltingly tells him the secret of
life, "This too shall pass."
The handicapped
A former radio and television actor whose career was ended by Parkin-
son's disease, the affliction that used to be called "shaking palsy," re-
436
TEX CONVERSATION PROBLEMS
ease with me, and I with him, and then I was able to ask him many
questions about his personal life and adjustment to his great handicap.
understand.
I concluded bv asking what he would most want people to know
about his condition and he replied, "Please make it clear that we handi-
capped are not freaks, but feeling human beings."
In most circumstances where you are uncertain about your behavior,
let the other person take the lead. Maybe he'd rather talk of trivialities
while you both get your bearings, and maybe he's come to a time and
place where he wants to unburden some of his agony. The choice is his,
not yours.
We once had Mercedes McCambridge on Today and I was introduc-
ing her as a fine actress who in the past was an alcoholic. "Not was an
alcoholic," she corrected me emphaticallv, "is an alcoholic." With that
she began to talk about alcoholism and her long struggle with it in a
43'
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
by saying you ha\e a friend with a similar situation, you're still taking
liberties with private pain.
Increasingly, however, people ha\'e a healthv, open attitude about
such matters as mental illness or mental retardation in their families.
For centuries people had such intense shame about any variation from
normal appearance or behavior that the \ictims were hidden in attics
just fine. I've been out in Wa\"erlv with her and we've had the grand-
children at the lake with us, and Vicky remembered how to swdm from
last year. And she's growing up to be such a nice young lady. She's
seven and a half now and she's learning to read. So she has many possi-
bilities ahead of her. She's doing very well."
Obviously, to discuss a relative's handicap is a decision that must be
made within the individual, consulting whatever wisdom and courage
is available. More and more people are making the decision I did, be-
lieving that they can ease some of the dark fears by sharing their ex-
perience. But many still can't bring themselves to talk about it, and I
understand that too.
Never introduce the subject yourself, but if the person you're talking
to is able to mention a mentallyill mother or a retarded child, don't
The bore
A bore has feelings. Very often he will interrupt something boring he
is saying to comment that he is a bore.
If he is boring you, mavbe it's your fault. "Being interested makes
one interesting,' Dr. Erich Fromm observed, to which I would add that
you generally get out of a conversation what you put into it.
438
TEN CONVERSATION PROBLEMS
a sex symbol?
'
or, what teacher helped him the most when he was a
child?
You can also trv whate\'er provocati\e subject is in vogue; there's
bound to be one making the rounds, a guaranteed grabber. Pick what-
ever is current and choice, and ask the bore to comment on it. What he
says may make you angry, but at least you won't be bored.
Is the problem that your particular bore talks so loud that he's giving
you a headache? Lower your own voice to a near whisper. It has the
effect of making him aware of his noise, in contrast to vour softness.
Night club singers use the same trick when audiences make too much
clatter —they make themselves almost inaudible, and people (juiet down
to listen.
There are some desperation gambits when all else fails with the bore.
If you're eating together, you can try talking about the hospital experi-
ment in which x'olunteers can select anv menu at all, but must eat ex-
same food in exactly the same amounts for thirtv days. What
actlv the
would he eat? Ask him if people were colors, what color would he be?
What color would his wife be? His boss? If he were an animal, what
kind of animal would he be? Remind him that in George Orwell's 1984
the hero and heroine were broken because Big Brother discovered the
one thing both dreaded most in the world. What is the one thing he
couldn't stand?
Truman Capote has a natural gift that makes him a great guest at a
439
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
self, what kind of a wife he might have, what he likes and dislikes. To
get the answers, he starts to ask some of these questions aloud. In short,
Truman gets so absorbed in finding out why he is bored that he is no
longer bored at all.
The drunk
I'm afraid I don't suffer drunks gladly, even comical ones. There's one
variety of drunk who is turning up more and more regularly on the
social scene: the woman-hater. He's the kind of man who conceals his
resentment of women when he is sober. His wife is washed out, his
secretary harassed, and his mother hated him. As he drinks, he gets
testier on the topic women, and when he is ripe he'll find one
of push)'
of the successful women in the crowd and tell her off.
The most graceful rescue I've ever witnessed happened one evening
at a party Kitty CarUsle Hart had given. A drunken actor was taking
off on me when Kitty suddenly appeared at his elbow. "Oh John," she
said to him, beaming, "that's just how you used to insult me. You re-
member that time at Peter's when ." And she led him away, brightly
. .
the personal invective or else the newcomer will come to your support.
Try to move the conversation from the particular (
you ) to the general
440
I
TEN CONVERSATION PROBLEMS
(life); try to edge the drunk into a larger group. Whatever you do, slip
away as quickly as you can and stay out of range for the evening.
If, on the other hand, the drunk is someone important to you, your
boss or a close friend, and vou don't want him to be contrite about his
condition for the rest of vour relationship, yoti pretend to be sick, and
leave. The next dav you telephone to apologize to him lor having to
slip away early.
When the drunk is a woman, a particularly unattractive situation, try
to help. Tell her the noise of the party is getting you down and you'd
Hke to sHp upstairs to a quiet room for a cup of coffee, and would she
please come with you? If you were about to lea\'e, ask if you can drop
her off and you'll have an opportunitv to visit together on the way.
Suggest vou both find the powder room, and take the long route.
If she won't budge, and as a last resort only, suggest to her escort that
he'd better take her home. In the ease of a male drunk who is out of
control, have his wife or a friend remove him from the premises. In
either case, the light touch works best.
The Casanova
First of all, don't take him seriously. Unless you are alone on the sixth
fairway at two in the morning — and how did you get there anyway?
My own opinion is that there's far too little flirtation in our country as
is. Most attractive males talk to most attractive women as if they were
Rotarians comparing sales percentages in Des Moines. A European, on
the other hand, or his rare American counterpart, breathes a little faster
when talking to a good-looking woman. His eyes get brighter and some-
how, for you an\wav, the room gets brighter.
So be grateful. Even a man knowni to be on the prowl has so7ne taste
and he picked you.
If you are the object of a drunken pass, which admittedly is tasteless,
don't get angry and tell him off, and don't bring it up the next day. It
was annoying, that's true; but don't make a big thing of it.
Most verbal advances are the male's sniff of the wind. Is the girl
available, or isn't she? He's entitled to one exploratory maneuver. If
you're not available, realh/ not, he is likely to feel the total lack of \ibra-
tions and drop the pursuit. If you're confused, or if you're feeling lonely
at the time, or if you've had a fight with the man in \our life and you're
thinking of revenge, the Casanova will get the subliminal message that
441
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
he can proceed. Then if matters get out of hand, it's hardly fair to play
the outraged maiden.
Occasionalh' such men are so vain that they block out all the negative
signals. Then I suggest vou trv scaring him to death. I knocked off a
persistent knee grabber at a dinner party by looking into his eyes and
purring, "You're right. We are meant for each other. Why don't vou
di\orce \our wife and marrv mc?" He has avoided me evermore.
The fighter
Into each life, alas, some verbal fists must fall. We all have had the ex-
"How are the peaceniks making out these days?" or, "You rich people
really kill me." A friend of mine who helped to sponsor a youth hostel
was asked by a stranger she'd just met, "Are you still hanging around
with those long-haired freaks?"
The resultant conversation is not likely to be rich in human warmth.
Don't waste your charm and logic on him; listen briefly to whatever de-
struction he stocks and then exit diplomatically by telling him that ob-
\iously he has given the matter a good deal of thought ( a nice touch of
irony there ) and it was interesting to^aear his views.
If, however, you're in a mood for a scrap when someone insults vou.
and you're* sure you can keep vour control, go ahead and defend \'our
views. You can't possibly change his mind, but vou'll sleep better.
The gossip
Gossip can be fun when it's gossip about famous people who'll never
hear of your discussion and couldn't care less if they did. For me, gos-
sip about Liz and Richard, or Jackie and Ari, is entirely fair, enor-
mously and probably completely untrue. But gossip about
interesting,
people you know is not only morallv wrong, it is also tacticallv wrong
because it almost alwa\'s gets back to the person invohed.
And don't kid yourself into false virtue because you kept silent when
others were lacerating someone's reputation. You're never just a spec-
tator: Unless you put a stop to it, you're a participant. Change the sub-
ject in a firm voice; say, "I like Jane very much and I'm sure none of us
here is glad that she's having problems. Let's talk about something else,
442
FIVE WAYS TO SAY NO
Almost every day manv of us are caught in positions where we
should logically sav No, but don't. However, there are several rea-
sonable and friendly ways of saying No.
1. Put it on an impersonal basis.
One of the most serene housewives in town says she achieved her
he mav agree with him, but legally his hands are tied.
He talked about what fabrics would harmonize best with the mod-
ern decor. Soon the woman had completely forgotten chintz.
4. In .saying No, show what needs to be done to get a Yes.
Dr. William Reilly, author of Successful Human Relations, advises
business executives how to handle the man who wants a raise but
give it to vou we will have to make you more valuable to the com-
pany. Now let's see what we need to do. . .
."
443
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
like what I've been wondering about these past few minutes —who do
you think gossips more, men or women?"
I guarantee that the resultant debate will be much snappier than the
original gossip.
Of course, there's alwaxs the classic line when someone is running
down a mutual friend. You look amazed and say, "Funny, she always
speaks so well of you." I dare the gossip to go on after that, especially
if you follow up your line with a compliment that the friend actually
paid the gossip in \'Our hearing.
Conversely, if vou meet someone who you've heard has made a
bitchy comment about you, try to be big about it. We all have said un-
kind things that we didn't really mean, tricked bv something ner\'ous
in the situation or in ourselves. Sometimes people gossip just because
they feel they must in order to be interesting.
If the gossip is someone you like and respect normally, tell her or
him that you've heard he has a gripe about you and you'd like to
time I interviewed her on the Today show, I asked what she would do
From the reporter's point of view, nothing could be finer than a Presi-
dentwho replies to a question about liis operation bv pulling out his
shirt and showing the scar. But the news value is absent when an ac-
quaintance at a cocktail party wants to tell you about her alcoholic fa-
ther or her concern that her husband is impotent.
It may be that the intimate disclosure is of a nature that touches on
your experience and you can handle the conversation sympathetically.
444
I
TEN CONVERSATION PROBLEMS
Then vour calm acceptance can be a big help. But keep in mind il you
encourage her to talk about the problem that she may hate herself to-
morrow morning because she was so frank, and she may blame you for
her indiscretion.
If, on the other hand, you want to beat a retreat from the subject,
don't fake understanding. Your discomfort will ultimately show itself
and seem like righteousness or rejection. You must divert her at once.
Find something positi\e to say, along the lines of, "I always knew that
you were under some kind of strain and I guess almost everyone is, but
I admire so much the way you handle your relationship with your chil-
Tell the wailing one, "I love you both, but I won't let you tell me
about this trouble because it hurts me too much." Or say, "I'm not a
peacemaker. I'll just stay here on the sidelines and hold both coats."
The foul-mouthed
Obscene language at social gatherings as often comes from women as
confront their stuffiness and prepare them to accept change. The under-
ground press is still mired in the conxiction that obscenity is change it-
tered once or twice — it could be a slip, and besides I've read better in
books and heard worse in movies. But after the fifth time I say, "If
you're trving to shock me, you're not. What vou are doing by tryino; so
hard, though, is offending me."
Dirty jokes also leave me unimpressed. I've confronted nn own
stuffiness, and I've decided to keep it.
445
39
How you come across
on the telephone
Do you know the proper way to answer a home phone? An
office phone? How do you place a business call? What's the
446
HOW YOU COME ACROSS OX THE TELEPHONE
she can."
If the caller should say, "I want to speak to Mrs. Brown personally,"
whoever has answered replies, "I'm sorry, but I can't interrupt Mrs.
Brown. May I give her a message?" If the caller still refuses to leave a
message or give his name, he can hardly expect Mrs. Brown to speak
to him.
caUing, please?" so that thev are prepared when they reach the tele-
phone. Howe\'er, others feel that this gives an impression of prying and
may prefer "Just a moment, please."
When a woman is alone in the house, she definitely should ask "Who
is calling?" before giving out any information as to her husband's
whereabouts or return. This is not only correct — it's a necessarv safety
precaution.
Whether to give your name with or without title is a frequent (jues-
tion. When talking with strangers, titles are always used, but in other
situations usage may vary.
The following rules hold good: An older person announcing herself
or himself to someone much xoumjer savs, "This is Mrs. Elder" or "Miss
Senior" or "Mr. Elder."
A younger lady, whether married or single, says, "This is Marie Man-
ners." To an older woman whom she knows socialK- she savs, "Hello,
447
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
Mrs. Knox? This is Mary Bailey." Mrs. Knox answers, "Good morning,
that of a friend or a member of the friend's family, you say, "This is Jim
BrouTi," or probablv "This is Jim." If the voice is unfamiliar, you say,
'This is Mr. James Brown. May 1 speak to Mr. Allen Gray?" or if the
friend is the only man in the house, "to Mr. Gray."
Invitations by telephone
When Mrs. Jones issues an inxitation by telephone, there is no long con-
versation, but merelv:
Mrs. Jones: "Is that you Sally? This is Helen Jones." (// she is mucJi
older than Sally, she would say "This is Mrs. Jones." ) "Could you and
your husband ( or John) dine with us next Tuesdav?"
Sally: "I'm sorry we can't. We are going to the theater Tuesday night,"
or "We'd love to." And probably she repeats "Next Tuesday at eight" to
be sure there is no misunderstanding of date or time. Before hanging
up, she would add, "Thanks so much," or "We look forward to it."
expected to dine with the Borings or to play bridge with the Revokes.
On the other hand, if he answers, "I have an engagement" and is then
told that he would have been invited to something he likes very much,
it is disappointing not to be able to go — without seeming rude to the
person he has at first refused. A young woman who says she has an en-
gagement and is then told, "Too bad you can't come, because John Bril-
448
HOW YOU COME ACROSS ON THE TELEPHONE
liant was looking forward to meeting you," cannot change her mind and
say, "Oh, then I'll get out of my dinner somehow and come." To do so
would be the height of rudeness to all concerned.
In responding to a telephone invitation, it is verv rude to say, "I'll let
definite reason, "I'll let you know" sounds as if you were waiting for a
better invitation to come along before saying Yes.
Don't let too young a child answer the telephone. A lot of the caller's
time is wasted trying to make the child understand a message and relay
it to the right person. If there is a long silence, there is no way of know-
ing whether the child is hunting for Mother or playing with his dog.
449
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
In either case, be sure that you do return the call as soon as \ou can.
will give you your rating. If every one is "Yes," you deserve not merely
a crown, but a halo!
1. Do you make sure of the correct number so as not to risk disturb-
450
HOW YOU COME ACROSS ON THE TELEPHOfE
her own: "Mr. Carlson's office. Miss Norton speaking." If her employer
is not in, or if she wishes to protect him from unnecessary calls, she
should then offer to help the caller if she can, or if not, take a message:
"He's not available at the moment. May I take a message?" or "He's out
of the office just now. May I have him call you?" or "He's attending a
meeting this morning. Could I help you?" If he is in his office, she asks,
"May I tell him who is calling?" Any of these phrases should ehcit the
As soon as your call is answered, you must identify yourself; and un-
less the person you are calling knows you well, you must also name
phones?
451
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
a call from a woman who said she was starting a chicken farm and
wanted to know how long to leave the rooster with the hens.
"Just a minute," said the agent, who was busy on another phone.
"Thank you very much," said the woman, and hung up.
—Bert Gustavson
Long-distance calls
452
HOW YOU COME ACROSS OX THE TELEPHONE
speak at once, both are shut off until one or the other stops talking.
Keep on the tip of xour tongue what you have to say, and say it
promptly. If vou have several things to saw write them downn and read
them off.
tary as "Mr. Hook of Brown and Smith," and when he gets the person he
wants, say, "This is Bryce Hook."
2. A housewife properly answers the phone, "Sally Silt speaking."
453
40
How to handle
an interview^
looking for? How will you sound to him? Here are pointers
honesty. Honests^ means that you not only refrain from stealing and
lying, but also that you do a full day's work without supervision, are
punctual, and have respect for the rights of others as well as a sense of
454
HOW TO HAXDLE AN INTERVIEW
justice and fair play in all your dealings. A prospective employer will
not question you directly about your honesty, but he will look for signs
of this trait in your attitude and conduct. Never lie on an appHcation
form or during an interview. If a prospective employer suspects you of
viewer will try to find out. Do not answer his questions with, "Money,"
but go beyond that. Explain your motivation in terms of basic goals.
Clarify these goals in your own mind first, so that \ou can talk about
them intelligently and clearly when called upon to do so.
455
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
They want people who are aware of the complexities of a job, under-
stand the personal relationships it involves, and are resourceful in meet-
ing new or difficult situations. An occupationalK' intelligent person
knows the \alue of time — the time that belongs to him and the time
that belongs to his employer. He is alert to errors and to new informa-
tion that will improve his efficiency. If \ou are such a person, you have
the qualifications that employers value highly.
An employer is al\va\'s interested in any special talents or exceptional
qualities that a job applicant may have, such as unusual creativity, im-
agination, analytical skill, or leadership and executive abilit)'. If you
have any one of these proficiencies to a marked degree, you should
bring it to the attention of your prospective employer. If you reor-
ganized a department in another company, thereby increasing efficiency,
or if you won a prize for accomplishments related to your work, tell
456
HOW TO HANDLE AN INTERVIEW
familiar. Avoid gestures that might distract the interviewer from the
matter at hand. Do not play with your hair, clean your teeth with your
tongue, examine vour nails, scratch an ear, or fasten your gaze on a pic-
ture hanging a little to one side of the interviewer. Above all, do not
haul out your cigarette pack, light up with a kitchen match, and seeing
no ashtrav, drop the ashes on the floor.
and wait until he has finished before presenting your ideas. You must
understand his statements in order to respond intelHgently.
The best way to find out how your speaking voice sounds to others is
to make a five-minute tape recording of yourself as you read a newspa-
per article. Choose a piece that contains many of the words you use in
457
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
Since the purpose of the interview for you, the applicant, is to find
out about the job, you should plan beforehand all the questions you
will ask about the company and the position for which vou are apply-
ing. It is a good idea to list the duties or functions of the job, and to see
how your idea of these responsibilities compares with that of the com-
pany. Often, the character of a job differs from company to company.
You should be prepared to give an accurate account of your
also
background, emplovment, education, and everything else that you have
mentioned in your chronological resume or personal-data sheet. Review
each item on it before going to the interview, so that the facts will be
fresh in your mind. Remember to take a chronological resume even if
gently with the interviewer, you will have a better rapport with him.
You will also be able to devote most of the interview to the specifics of
the job rather than to background information.
Dress appropriately for the interview. While there is greater accept-
ance today of brighter colors and a wider range of styles for business
attire, your safest course is to lean to the conservative side.
Be punctual. That does not mean that you must arrive far ahead of the
appointed time. Appear five minutes before the appointed time so that
the interviewer will know that you can be interviewed as scheduled. If
you are late, he may think that you will not appear and take up other
458
HOW TO HANDLE AN INTERVIEW
business, which he may not be able to leave when you arrive. If late-
ness is unavoidable, try to telephone. on the other hand, you are kept
If,
waiting fifteen or twenty minutes by the interviewer, you may ask the
receptionist or secretary would be more convenient for the
if perhaps it
go along with him to his office wearing your coat or rain boots. Leave
such things in the reception room, even though he wears his coat into
the oflBce.
Say, "Good morning, Mr. Jones. I'm very glad to meet you," or express
a similar friendly greeting. Do not sit down until he asks you to. Leave
your cigarettes in your pocket. If the interviewer offers one, refuse it
with thanks. You will have enough to occupy you without having to
the employer looking for in a job applicant, and how do you qualify?
You may have said in your letter of application that you would like to
work for the company. This is your opportunity to explain why you
made that statement. You are the one who sought the interview. Of
course, if the interviewer starts the conversation, pay attention to what
he savs and be ready to respond at the appropriate moment. Do not in-
terrupt the interviewer. Listening is an art, and you will not be able to
459
HOW TO HANDLE YOUR COLLEGE INTERVIEW
A COLLEGE \isiT and interview serves a twofold purpose. It gives
lege you will attend, vou can all contribute opinions formed from
firsthand impressions.
460
Don't be disappointed if you travel several hundred miles for a
might be a good idea to write him that you will be visiting on a cer-
it stipulates otherwise.
Christmas vacation. This is because you will start studying for mid-
term examinations shortly after Christmas and also because most
colleges start their admission selection work after February 1. Many
colleges specifically state that they will not interview candidates
Don't give the impression that your child depends on you to do his
thinking and talking for him. College interviewers realize and take
into account the fact that thev are talking to nervous teen-agers
461
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
the job and the company. While \ou are expected to have a mmd of
your own and need not agree \\Tth everything the inter\iewer says, you
must remain calm and friendly throughout the interview. If you display
temper or boredom, vou can expect to ha\e the interview suddenly cut
short. You may be interviewed by someone who does not have as many
college degrees as you have. Give him your full cooperation and re-
spect. Try not to show superiority. In addition to giving an account of
you consider the other person during the interview and make it as easy
as possible for him, his reaction is bound to be favorable.
Find out the essential facts about the job. Do not be afraid to ask
questions about the job functions, the organization of the company, the
standard steps of promotion, and similar relevant matters. The inter-
viewer, of course, will ask you questions to find out whether you are
the right man for the job. He will ask you about vour most recent job
and about other items mentioned on vour resume. Make sure you can
talk intelligently and concisely about the various functions in your last
job and your areas of competence. Be frank, but remember to avoid
any criticism of vour former companv or co-workers. If you bear a
grudge against your former employer, keep it to yourself. Mention only
your pleasant and constructive work experiences. It is a good idea to
have in mind certain incidents reflecting the high standards of your for-
mer company and to mention them, if the occasion arises. If you were
discharged for incompetency, do not hesitate to say so. You are not
unique. The interviewer will realize that your former employer may
not have described accurately the functions of the job before hiring
you. Make it clear that you want to avoid the same mistake and intend
to know exactly what your next job will entail.
462
HOW TO HANDLE AN INTERVIEW
available, the interviewer mav or may not ask to see it during the first
interview. Bring the portfolio with you, but do not try to show it to the
interviewer if he expresses no interest in Some employers believe
it.
that matters of proof and samples of work can wait until later, when
the employer has decided whether the applicant has the basic qualifica-
tions to justify spending more time with him. Be prepared to give a
concise explanation of each item in your portfolio of proof in case the
interviewer does want to see your portfolio.
time to leave, rise, shake hands, thank the interviewer for giving you
his time, and say that you will look forward to hearing from him at an
early date; or, if be no further communication, say that you
there is to
enjoyed meeting him. Be sure to take with you your portfolio of proof
and any other belongings. Collect anv belongings that you left in the
reception room and, in leaving, thank the receptionist.
As soon as you can, write a letter of thanks to the interx iewer. Confirm
your interest in the job if you are interested, and say that you look for-
ward to hearino; from him in the near future. E\'en if \'0U do not obtain
a job with the company at this time, you will have established \Wth it
a friendly relationship that may help you if you apply there again.
463
41
464
THE FIVE STEPS TO SUCXZHESSFUL SELLING
ices, which of them can afford a purchase, and whether other salesmen
have an inside track. Where the prospect is an employe, he finds out
whether he has the authority to buy for his company.
His ratings enable him to select the better prospects for immediate
action and to ehminate deadwood or unlikelv candidates. He keeps a
tickler file on those prospects who are not available now, but who
might be approached some weeks or months later.
The astute salesman does not attempt to build his list by obviously
spurious means, like the roofer who, every three months, blankets the
community with postcards reading: "While working near your home
recently, I noticed that your roof needs repairs."
The approach
The salesman makes his approach when he establishes contact %\dth the
465
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
you shortly." But he doesn't leave his first customer unless the customer
is having diflBculty making a choice, and then only with permission.
If a representati\e makes his first contact by phone, he says with a
smiling \oice: "This is Arthur Jones. I'd hke to speak to Mr. Barton."
( Not, apprehensively, "Do you think Mr. -er- Barton has time to speak
to me?" ) His request for an interview is direct, honest, and brief.
If this contact is made by letter, the tone is simple and vigorous and
stresses the service angle. The hard-sell approach is not necessary, since
you expect to make the sale in person later on.
When keeping the appointment, do more than announce yourself to
the receptionist. Ask her a simple question, such as the correct spelling
or pronunciation of your prospect's name. Be very pleasant and courte-
ous here. It will pay to make a favorable impression. Receptionists and
secretaries can be important helps or hindrances in your sales efforts.
membering you are appeahng to his needs and wants and also
that
confirming your knowledge of them. You attempt to show him what a
disadvantage he is at in not having these wants and needs satisfied.
to business. Your prospect may be active in civic affairs; but if you let
him infer from your opening that vou seek his aid in combating ju-
The presentation
This step, whether short or long, is the one toward which all your
preparation has been heading. For here you show how your product or
466
THE FIVE STEPS TO SUCCESSFUL SELLING
467
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
Overcoming objections
Objections may arise at any point during the interview. When they do,
meet them in one of the following ways
If the objection is a serious one, use the "Yes, but " technique.
Agree with the prospect, and even praise him for his perspicacity:
"That's a verygood question," "I'm glad you brought that up." Then
show him how the disadvantage he has mentioned is counterbalanced
or outweighed. The price is high, but the article has extra sturdiness,
and promises fewer repair bills and longer life. Or balance the price
against other features —greater safety or ease of operation.
If a strong objection is raised on a minor point, concede the point and
do something about it. Offer extra service, replace or change a part,
make a special concession or price. The new arm rest, cost $2, may sell
468
I
THE FI\T STEPS TO SUCX3:SSFUL SELLING
better to say: "We don't have that in stock right now, but I'll be glad
to order it for you.
The close
The customer has reached his lowest level of resistance and is ready to
buy. He needs just a Httle push to get him to sign on the dotted line.
Ask questions or make comments which suggest that the article is al-
ready sold. "Would you like delivery next week?" Have the order form
on the desk and fill out part of it when you think he is really interested.
If he isn't, he'll stop you; if he is, vou'll have closed the sale.
point 2, that we . .
."
Get the pen into the customer's hand indirectly. Ease the asking for
the signature b\' having him write something else, for example, the full
name of a beneficiary.
If a sale is impossible, make vour close an opening for a next time.
"I'll call again in three months."
469
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
Not taking the initiative in closing the sale. What is the point of do-
ing everything except sell the item or the service? A salesman's job is to
sell, and the last step is as important as the first.
470
42
How^ to run
a meeting
The man who can make meetings work is well on his way to
success as an executive. Here's how the able leader under-
stands his role and knows how to get the meeting started,
needs and demands of each specific meeting and adjust to those needs
with ease and authority.
The leader, like the hub of a working gear, is the center around
which all else revolves. He has to be alert to any change of pace. He
must adjust to changes faster than anv other part of the mechanism.
Nevertheless, it is the members who provide the drive. The leader is
471
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
leader must take his position behind the wheel is the most important
concept for meeting members and prospective leaders to learn.
The leader has a clearlv defined status: (a) He is not just another
member, (b) He is supposed to have more authority than anyone else
in the meeting. (
c ) He must be more conscious of time and the effec-
tiveness of the meeting than anyone else.
After all, the leader is responsible to the other members and to him-
self for the productiveness of the meeting.
The meeting is an investment in time. It must be made to pay out.
spected. He will stand out —there are so few like him. If you do
nothing else to improve your meetings, this will be a big step. Remem-
ber, to start on time means you have a better chance to end on time.
State the purpose of the meeting clearly. Ordinarily, you will have
set down in an agenda circulated earlier to those attending the subject
and purpose of your meeting. Remember, however, that this agenda is
ately set the tone and direction of the remarks that will follow. Point
out the importance of the problem. State the implications and effects
472
HOW TO RUN A MEETING
of the decisions that will be made at this meeting. Show that the meet-
ing is worthwhile, and give the members something to shoot for. Don't
be negative!
Use vivid words that ivdl make your ideas sound interesting. The
crispness and vitality of your opening remarks will set the tone and
pace of the entire meeting. Frame your ideas in colorful phrases. For
instance, this is the type of statement that smothers meetings
"We should try to appraise the possibilities of purveying the meat
currently in inventory."
Try this:
cussion, watch for conflicts and personality flare-ups. Channel the group
toward possible solutions. Emotions and facts must mix whenexer peo-
ple talk face to face. However, the emotional tone of the meeting will
be better, and the meeting easier to handle, if you as leader can assume
a neutral position.
473
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
meeting you are dealing with perhaps a dozen people, and there is
no script.
Think of the meetings vou've attended when a sudden and deadly si-
lence has set in and evervone sat waiting for someone else to make a
comment. This unpleasanth- awkward situation breeds tension. Ten-
sion is a direct road to conflict, dissension, and confusion.
Keep the ideas flowing. Once this flow flags it is difficult, often im-
possible, to reopen the tap. The leader must run herd on the group;
keep nudging to maintain the pace.
Suggestion: Be alert to "silent periods." Move quickly to comment,
question, or explain the moment you sense this silence settling in.
When the ideas slow down, so docs the urgency and the ability of the
group to cope with the problem.
Watch for emotional "build-ups." Meetings are made up of people,
and people are made of a little bit of logic and a lot of emotion. These
are not the ingredients of "sweetness and Hght." It is the leader's job to
maintain order and reasonableness.
The more the discussion stays in the realm of fact, the better the
chance of success. Emotions don't solve problems or make rational de-
cisions, and in the context of a meeting there is usually no answer to
emotional conflicts.
474
HOW TO RUN A MEETING
major function of the meeting is to get all the facts out of the meeting
members, and then to talk about those Only then can the group
facts.
Draw contributions from all members of the group. There are silent
members in almost every group. The meeting situation is designed to
draw on the thinking of all members; to call out all ideas and mold
them into a decision.
Be sure that everyone has a chance to make his offering. Encourage
the member who shows signs of meekness. Be careful, however, not to
put a reluctant member on the spot. Draw him into the discussion
through an area you know is familiar to him. Then dig deeper for his
position on the subject at hand. This will reduce the danger of post-
meeting comments, which are usually made in the hallway outside the
meeting room, such as
"I just don't think I can go along with the decision made in the meet-
ing." Or:
"That's all very well, but no one told Bill that my department just
475
THE ART OF ASKING QUESTIONS
No MATTER who we are or what our way of life, it has become in-
when we see our doctor or even talk to our family and friends,
we interview and are interviewed.
How can we do this more successfully? Here are some useful
techniques developed by experts:
Recognize that every encounter is "emotional." There is no such
thing as an impersonal meeting of minds. Look inward: There's
a human awareness, an exchange of feelings, with the waiter who
takes your luncheon order, the unseen person at the other end of
476 1
the open-end question, which lets the other person assume the initi-
to probe for the other person's weak spots. In real life, those who
have to ask for sensitive information generallv follow the opposite
Start where the other person is. "Beginners," says Dr. Leslie A.
Osborn of the Universitv of Nebraska College of Medicine, "often
rush into an area of feeling where the other person is not yet readv
to admit tliem." A worried heart patient, for example, mav have to
discuss the effects of his illness on his work and his family before
the interviewer to find out what is on the other person's mind and
start from there.
ened and uplifted. Why? To have concern for the other person, and
show it, is the rule that makes all the others work.
477
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
leader must be firm! Don't allow the meeting to break up into smaller
discussion groups. It's the leader's job to see that each member is heard
by all present. If a splinter group persists, focus the attention of the
"Jim and Bill seem to have come up wnth something. Will you tell us
about it?"
478
HOW TO RUN A MEETING
to the growing need for specialists. Explain that the meeting is de-
signed to draw together the thinking of all these many specialists. Draw
out contributions by praising the group as a unit.
Suggestion: Conflict is alwa)'s going to exist among people who think
strongly. Take every opportunity to point out the advantages of "pool-
ing" thinking. The feeling of cooperation wall be stimulated by meet-
ings that work. Successful, workable decisions are the most persuasive
argument for cooperation in future meetings.
that the listener always understands exactlv what is said to him. Noth-
ing could be further from the truth.
Here's how the leader can clarify issues in the meeting:
1. Ask questions in areas that may have been missed:
"There is one question we haven't asked: 'What is the marketing po-
tential of this product?' Bill, what is your estimate?"
2. Pull out details needed to make each offering crystal clear:
"The one point we haven't covered is the cost of the advertising. How
does this affect the plan?"
3. Define words that could lead to a misinterpretation:
"Al, when you say that this idea is 'critical" to the plan, do you mean
that it wouldn't work without it?"
correct?"
479
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
even more difficult for him to bow out gracefully. Often a member in a
meeting would like to change direction or retreat from a stand, but
finds it too awkward to do so. Be alert to this situation. Give him the
opportunity to revise his position without seeming to "roll over!" Again,
the leader can do this job better than anyone else.
480
HOW TO RUN A MEETING
As a result, thev will mo\e more directK" to solutions and avoid waste-
ful tangents.
Suggestion: Keep the promise you made when you sent out your
agenda. Keep to vour stated time limit. If the meeting drags, move in
quiekly. Make it absolutely clear that you plan to work within the time
you established. Nothing can make you more popular.
Wrapping things up
The closing of the meeting places special demands on the leader. Good
guidance has brought the group to a solution of the problem. Now is
the time to nail down the decision. Without a firm hand by the leader,
they are small or great. Try to define them to the satisfaction of all pres-
ent, particularlv the minority group. Remember, you \\\\\ have to deal
481
43
482
"me? speak in front of a group?"
The chapters that follow will instruct you in the skills and techniques
of the art of public speaking. They Nvall tell vou how to choose an ap-
propriate subject for your talk, how to organize vour material and plan
the speech, and how to deUver it in the most comfortable, impressive,
and perhaps memorable manner.
The dav arrives when xou are scheduled to give a talk. "You're next,"
says the chairman of the meeting. And, likely as not, for all your love
of the spotlight you suddenly stiffen up, your legs feel weak, your hands
sweat, and an abrupt emptiness hits you in the pit of the stomach.
You've got stage fright!
This is the most common of all afflictions the public performer ex-
periences. There isn't an actor of an\' note who doesn't suffer from it.
Let us talk about the moment you were first asked to make this fright-
483
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
select the theme for your talk, as well as Hsts of specific subjects. It also
pertinent data, facts, figures, and quotations. It will instruct you on how
to develop the body of your speech, how best to begin your talk, how
to build to a climax, and how to end it.
And how do you persuade an audience? Do you ride herd? Are you a
bulldozer of a speaker? Or do you lead, patiently, and wait for your
audience to follow? Chapter 48, "How to Sell Your Idea," analyzes the
various approaches of persuasion, as well as the value of each. It tells
you how you can convince an initially friendly audience and explores
the techniques for winning over the occasional hostile audience you
may encounter.
Another way to helpyou develop the burden of your talk is to use
visual aids to dramatize or emphasize a point. Chapter 49, "Use
Visuals to Prove Your Point," offers a thorough discussion of techniques
and equipment that can give your talk that additional visual punch.
Now that we have the speech and the mechanics of it all prepared,
let's turn to the speaker himself. Have you given any thought to your
appearance on the platform, and its possible effect on both your speech
and your audience? Do you think casual clothes will be best for your
talk at the Civic Club? Do you think business attire would be more
suitable and effective? When is formal dress the proper wear? You know
that, whether we wish it or not, the appearance of others affects our
484
I
"me? speak in front of a group?"
How about your attitude toward your audience? Does the occasion
call for a familiar approach? Should you tell jokes? Or do you think it
better, in this formal address, to keep some distance away from your
listeners?
How about notes? Do you want a small outline in front of you to refer
to from time to time? Do you think you might hav^e some dates, names,
places, on a card to which you can easily refer? What about the micro-
phone room? the acoustics? How well will vour voice reach vour
in the
audience? Have you tested it? All these questions and problems are
fully discussed in Chapter 50, "Preparing Yourself to Speak."
485
44
How^ to beat
stage fright
Stage fright afflicts just about everyone who's called on to
486
HOW TO BEAT STAGE FRIGHT
we are not going to fight the audience, and we are too responsible to
run away.
Nevertheless, our system is prepared for violent ph\'sical action. We
must find a way to release this nervous energy in constructive expres-
The speaking pressures and tensions are released because our nervous
system believes we need them. It is as if we set off a false fire alarm,
—
and now we are stuck with the apparatus energy that is seeking an
outlet. Once it is given an outlet, we can return to a relatively normal
physiological rhythm.
First, remember that every experience is different. The dissimilarities
are greater than the similarities. What reminds us of the past is entirely
believe the reality and challenge the myth. We are then free to believe
48'
WTUTE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
what is possible and to assume the attitude and the actions that help
us change. We are ready to take on the outward manifestations at-
tributed to a successful speaker.
There is a classic reference to this point written by William James
Common sense says, we lose our fortune, are sorry and weep; we meet
a bear, are frightened and run; we are insulted by a angry and
rival, are
strike . . rational statement is that we feel sorrv because we
. the more
crv, we strike, afraid because we tremble.
angry because . . .
Everybody knows how panic is increased by flight, and how the giv-
ing way to the symptoms of grief or anger increases the passions them-
selves. ... In rage, it is notorious how we "work ourselves up" to a
climax by repeated outbursts of expression. Refuse to express a passion
and it Count 10 before venting your anger, and its occasion seems
dies.
ridiculous. Whistling to keep up courage is no mere figure of speech. On
the other hand, sit all day in a moping posture, sigh, and reply to every-
thing with a dismal voice, and your melancholy lingers.
There is no more valuable precept in moral education than this . . .
Critic Kenneth Tynan tells this story about a joint loss of memory by
the incomparable acting duo of Alfred Lunt and Lynn Fontanne.
An unexpected and unplanned silence developed in mid-scene dur-
488
HOW TO BEAT STAGE FRIGHT
energy at first, until I got going. But for a minute, I didn't beHeve it
would ever happen. Then when I saw them sit up and open their eyes!"
Do your homework
Eddie Rickenbacker, the World War I flying hero who later became
president of Eastern Airlines, told of the time when he returned to a
hero's welcome as the "Ace of Aces." At an important banquet in his
him again. The next day he hired a speech coach, had Damon Runyon
write a speech for him, and studied grammar. Then he arranged for a
long lecture tour. Mr. Rickenbacker learned that each specialty re-
quires its own preparation. A hero in battle can be a coward before an
audience unless he is prepared.
If fear and tension do nothing else but stimulate the speaker to do his
homework, thev have performed their natural service.
Fear and tension should be considered a positive influence which
489
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
sharpens our strategy so that we may do our best. We are always facing
diflBcuIties. We make progress by meeting the challenge and conquering
our fears. In that wa)- our emotions motivate greater effort —which in-
490
HOW TO BEAT STAGE FRIGHT
"Original Amateur Hour" during the 1930's, told about his first experi-
expect much!"
best way he knows how, then he should be able to ride out any tensions,
however unpredictable.
For the rest, he must have faith in his audience, knowing that they
will appreciate his effort.With every important venture we run a risk
— a risk of making fools of ourselves. And if, by earnestly performing as
we do, we are labeled fools, then that's a chance we must take.
For it is that very courage to meet what comes that is wTitten on the
speaker's face and is respected by the listeners. Perhaps the first lesson
speak often.
Throw away all your fine excuses.
through."
491
45
How^ to pick
your subject
Unless a topic has been assigned, your first job will be de-
492
HOW TO PICK YOUR SUBJECT
schools; sales taxes; tax laws; safer cars; safer driving; shopping cen-
ters; war and peace; the mature mind. Then there are the "how to"
topics, by which you can give others the benefit of expert knowledge
that you've acquired: how to prepare your income tax; how to buy a
used car; how to acquire better reading habits.
Practice exercise
List ten subjects about which you think you have enough information
to deliver a talk. List ten propositions which you would enthusiastically
defend or attack.
Choose a subject that suits your audience. Audiences will listen more
readily if your subject is one which \itally concerns them and is timely.
Practice exercises
Jot down subjects you think might interest the groups mentioned
above: health workers, engineers, members of a social club.
Go over the two lists you made in the preceding section (ten subjects
about which you think you have enough information to deliver a talk,
ten propositions which you would enthusiastically either defend or at-
tack). From these, select subjects you think would interest: a group of
Boy Scouts; the Ladies' Aid or Women's Guild of your church; a group
of tourists visiting your city, school, or plant.
Choose a subject that suits the occasion. The demands of the occasion
are so obvious that they would hardly seem to need mention. The Me-
493
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
morial Day Program demands a tribute to the dead and the ideals for
which they gave their Hves. The annual business meeting calls for re-
ports on the year's activities and perhaps a look at plans for the future.
Yet all of us have been bored or annoxed by the speaker who disre-
garded this principle. He was so wTapped up in his owii interests or
wanted so badly to get something off his chest that he completely forgot
the occasion. At a graduation ceremon\- a prominent doctor got very
little applause for his excellent paper on "Diseases of the Liver." And
at the initiation of new members into a society, a defeated candidate
for office probabh' lost all chance of ever being elected hx attacking the
successful candidates and the election methods.
Keep your subject within the spirit of the occasion.
Practice exercise
What subjects would be suitable for: a Christmas party; the laying
of a cornerstone; the fiftieth anniversary of a club, a business organiza-
tion, or a college?
Practice exercise
Assume that "Democracy at the Crossroads" is the theme of an hour-
long radio program. List four subjects which might be discussed by as
many speakers under this general lieading.
Sometimes all four of the above factors will be of about equal im-
portance in the choice of a subject. Sometimes one, such as the occasion,
will be the most important.
Finally, if you arc and find, after some thought,
giv^en a specific topic
thatyou are not interested in it, suggest another topic that you feel
would be more suitable, or refuse the invitation politely. There are
times when it is better to remain silent than to speak.
494
how to pick your subject
Practice exercises
Assume that you are program chairman for the opening of a Youth
Center in your town. The program committee has decided to include
three short talks on the general theme of "Youth Today." What would
you suggest as three subjects under this head?
Take the original lists of subjects you made out for yourself and see
how vou might adapt them to fit the various situations mentioned in
this section.
You will make a better speech, have a better chance of getting the
response you want, if you define clearly beforehand both the general
and the specific purpose of your talk.
On the basis of their general purposes, speeches tend to fall into four
categories. Keeping vour subject in mind, decide into which of the fol-
495
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
some of the Usteners remember the content of the speech long enough
to put it to use.
As such, it tends more to emotion than to logic, and may contain little
or no information. It is frequently accompanied by other stimulants to
the emotions: food, flowers, decorations, music, costumes, flags, lighting
496
HOW TO PICK YOUR SUBJECT
Practice exercises
On the subject of the weather, think of possible speeches you might
make whose general purposes would be to interest, teach, impress, per-
suade your audience.
What were the general purposes of the twenty subjects on your orig-
inal lists? Could you also deliver other speeches on the same subjects,
but with different general purposes?
After you've determined the general intent of your speech, the next step
is to phrase as concisely as possible its specific purpose.
Drug abuse.
How to start a store.
Lincoln as a young man gave little promise of his later greatness, but
when we consider his background we can readily say . . .
If you want to talk about drug abuse, for example, you might limit
your topic to, "What to Tell Your Children About Drugs."
497
SELL YOUR IDEA WITH QUOTATIONS
Ix ONE SENSE, the Speaker need never be alone on the platform.
He ahvays has strong friends he can call upon to back up the
point he is presenting to the audience. These friends are called
authority, testimony, and quotation.
Very often your audience will refuse to accept an idea with only
your own authorit)' behind it. Perhaps all they are looking for is a
bit more convincing. Whatever the reason, the speaker has to reach
into his bag of proof and come up with something that will help
people standing behind your point of view, and they will find that
they have to agree with what you say.
Authority and quotation are powerful forces for the speaker, if he
uses them correctly!
Here are some guides for the use of this type of support:
your speech.
Audiences never fail to respond to quotes by famous men; from
literature; from the Bible; sayings which the speaker can use as
498
supports for the idea he wants to drive home. If you are speaking
on the need for executives to think out a problem carefully before
they act, you might use this quote from Plutarch:
I do not think him a good shoemaker who makes a great
shoe for a small foot.
to the job and a stronger holding to beliefs. You could quote Abra-
ham Davenport, adviser to George Washington, to whom a meeting
adjournment was suggested because of the approach of the British.
He answered:
The Day of Judgment is either approaching or it is not. If
it is not, there is no cause for adjournment. If it is, I choose to
be found doing my duty. I wish, therefore, that candles may be
brought.
selection.
499
write better, speak better
Practice exercises
What is wrong with the following specific purposes?
a. The Washington Monument
b. Hints for a long-distance call
c. Savings banks, and investment funds, and stocks and bonds, and
loans
d. I want you to think about taxation
Try to improve the statement of these specific purposes.
Assume you have to speak at (1) a partv at an old folks' home, (2) an
assembly program at a senior high school, (3) a meeting of members of
a theatrical union, (4) a political rally. Which of the following subjects
might be suitable? Guidance; Children's fears; Communism; Events in
the news; Arbitration; Television; The spoken versus the written word;
Basketball.
Choose good specific-purpose sentences for those subjects you consider
suitable.In the situations given what subjects would you choose to
speak on? What would be vour specific-purpose sentences?
could not be the same speech, with the same approach and arguments.
What won applause in the one case might call forth hisses in the other.
Before you make a talk, decide how the answers to the following
questions will affect your speech:
500
HOW TO PICK YOUR SUBJECT
3. What will he the age range of my listeners? How far back the experi-
ence of your listeners goes will affect your cfioice of material. With
older folk, a mere reference to the Depression of the thirties will elicit
likely to have? Try to find out beforehand the economic level of your
audience, the sort of clubs they belong to, their social position. Liberal
or conservative, management homeowner or apartment-renter
or labor,
— each tends to have firmly held beliefs. The skillful speaker avoids
arousing needless hostility. In his arguments, he tries to show that his
proposal ties in with principles they cherish.
501
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
plore all the common ground the\' have with the audience; they return
to points of agreement before \enturing into areas of possible disagree-
ment. In other words, they hope that if the audience gives a series of
Yes responses, it will be less disposed to say No.
8. What are they likehj to know about me? If the audience knows Httle
about \'0u, \ou may tell them some of your past accomplishments. But
do so modestly. Whether thev know )"ou little or well, avoid the pitfall
of boasting. Let the audience learn your worth from the competent way
you handle your subject.
Answering the above questions should not be difficult when you are
to speak in \our local community. The important thing is to adapt your
for it helps to show an audience that you know something of them and
their special problems.
Keep on the alert, moreoxer, ready to change your adaptation to the
audience up to the moment. An important event on the afternoon
last
with regard to the special adaptations you have made for them. If you
do not get a fa\'orable response, take another tack.
Practice exercise
Select several subjects you might conceivably talk on and determine
how you might adapt them to fit the interests and firmly held beliefs of
audiences drawn from the following:
(1) Rotary Club (2) Elks (3) Ta.xpayers' Union (4) Knights
of Columbus Masons (6) Christian Endeavor (7) Zionist Or-
(5)
ganization of America (8) 4-H (9) Hi-Y (10) a country club
(11) an electrical workers' union (12) a social fraternity (13) the
National Association for the Advancement of the Colored People (14)
the National Association of Manufacturers (15) Young Republicans
(16) Young Democrats
502
46
How to prepare
your speech
Speech consultant Dorothy Sarnoff tells you how to plan and
and the verbal tricks that bring it to life; the climax and the
J/irst you must collect your material. Then you must organize
it. Begin by jotting down what you already know of a subject. Add per-
sonal experiences or observations illustrating the points you wish to
make. Interview people who have information you may lack.
of 1966?"); you may make a dramatic statement; you may cite an inci-
dent from the dav's news, history, or your own experience.
Quotations and anecdotes can make good introductions. "Quotations
503
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
ha\"e great ser\ ice for speeches," said Aristotle, "because audiences are
commonplace. People are pleased when a speaker hits on a wdde gen-
eral statement of opinions that they hold in some partial or fragmentary
form." But use them onl\- if they are appropriate. Nothing is more piti-
able than a story or joke dragged in, like a stray dog, by the scruff of its
neck, and tied into your talk against its will.
Jmmor. Nothing can warm up an audience like a good joke well told —
but do not N'enture on a joke unless you know how to make it come off.
At the beginning of a speech, you make friends with your audience and
your proposition. At the end, you nail down your proposition. But
state
thebody is the heart of your speech. It is there that you develop your
theme and convince your listeners.
504
HOW TO PREPARE YOUR SPEECH
The main idea and the supporting ideas should take their due positions
the next.
It is natural to prepare, or at least organize, the body of the speech
before deciding how to introduce it, since there is no point in develop-
ing an introduction before you know the idea you are introducing.
However, some people preparing a talk prefer to begin at the end.
Somerset Maugham said he always wrote the end of his stories first;
once he knew where to go, all he had to do was find a way to get there.
505
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
tion comes to life for a listener not in billion-dollar terms but in terms
of the cost of a loaf of bread or a quart of milk.
As Elizabeth Barrett Browiiing put it:
A red-haired child
Sick in fever, if you touch him once.
Though but so little as with a finger-tip,
Will set you weeping; but a million sick . . .
As usual the village dudes had congregated there, and one, bolder
than the rest, remarked: "Mr. Lincoln, your speech was good but
there were some points (^uite beyond my reach."
The simple Lincoln looked up and chuckled, "I'm sorry for you;
I once had a dog that had the same trouble with fleas."
—Edmond Tisdel
506
HOW TO PREPARE YOUR SPEECH
the village often for supplies and always stopped at the post office, a
frame building that had once been a Catholic mission." Knowing that
Think) was a frame building, and that it once had been a Catholic
mission, makes it seem more real to the reader.
headed." And again: "The sheets were damp and clinging and
. . .
stillness."
There are images, too, that evoke the sensations of physical activity,
ing, slapped his chest and said very proudly, 'Wanderobo- Masai won-
"
derful guide.'
507
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
FIGURES OF SPEECH
Figures of speech, if not labored, add greatly to the color of a talk.
We all use figures of speech, often without even realizing what we are
doing; if you say "Wall Street is in trouble," you don't really mean a
you mean the stock market
street, in general.
There are many types of figures of speech.
Ironif says one thing to convey another: "To prove his devotion, he
beat her soundly."
Hyperbole is the use of exaggeration for emphasis: "He stood tall as
a mountain."
508
HOW TO PREPARE YOUR SPEECH
The climax
The most popular cHmax is the strong conclusion. Arrange your ideas
in a series that climbs to a crescendo. As in some symphonies, the talk
"Others may hesitate, others may procrastinate, others may plead for
further negotiations; but as for me, I am ready to act now. And for my
action I am ready to answer to my conscience, my country, and my
God."
509
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
and for me." The final words fade Hke the spothght, leaving the audi-
ence emotionally drained.
CHmaxes, whether crescendo or diminuendo, require skillful han-
dling. When overdone or inappropriate, thev onh' make the audience
uncomfortable and the speaker absurd. Say the sentences aloud before
you put them down. Underact them in delivery. Rehearse until you
know your cadence is right and vour emotion convincing.
Questions can also strengthen a speech. They are of three kinds: those
the speaker asks the audience to answer aloud; those he asks the audi-
ence and answers himself; and those which are entirely rhetorical, im-
plying their own answers.
—
Be sparing with statistics and visual aids charts, blackboards, slides.
Use them judiciouslv to make your point clear, never allowing them to
dominate your speech. Remember audience attention should focus on
you the speaker; visuals can only illustrate or clarify your point.
If your speech requires a blackboard or easel, do not display the in-
formation on it until the time has come to use it. It distracts your
listeners' attention.
510
BEATING THE "HO HUM ... SO WHAT?" BLUES
A GOOD FORMULA for Organizing a speech is given by a public-
speaking expert, Richard C. Borden. He classifies the four parts
of a speech as:
Ho hum.
Why bring that up?
For instance. . . .
So what?
"Ho hum" suggests you are facing a bored audience who must be
wakened to an interest in what you have to say. Mr. Borden says
"Don't open your speech on safety-first by saying, 'My subject
"Why bring that up?" indicates that you must then tell your audi-
ence whv it should listen to you. In the safety talk you might point
out that one of those coffins may be for you or one of your friends,
"Why bring that up?" and "For instance" are the meat of the
sandwich. Thev fit between the opening, which grabs attention, and
the closing, which restates the theme and asks for action.
"So what?" means, Borden says, "The end of vour speech should
have a point." Tell your audience clearlv what vou expect them to
ning picture of a scantily clad young lady. After the class had had time
to inspect it carefully, he put it away. Then he asked, "What was the
month showing on the calendar?"
^^^hen no one could answer, the instructor drew this moral: "Don't
make your teaching aids so attractive that they draw attention away
from the message that they are intended to present."
He would never blindly accept or blandly deliver a text he had not seen
and edited. We always discussed the topic, the approach and the con-
clusions in advance. He always had quotations or historical allusions to
include. Sometimes he would review an outline. And he always, upon
receiving my draft, altered, deleted or added phrases, paragraphs or
pages. Some drafts he rejected entirely.
The Kennedy style of speech-writing — our style, I am not reluctant to
say, for he never pretended that he had time to prepare first drafts for
all his speeches —evohed gradually over the years. Prepared texts were
carefully designed for an orderly presentation of their substance but
^^'ith no deliberate affectation of any certain style. We were not con-
scious of following the elaborate techniques later ascribed to these
speeches by literary analysts. Neither of us had any special training in
composition, linguistics or semantics. Our chief criterion was always
audience comprehension and comfort, and this meant: (1) short
speeches, short clauses and short words, wherever possible; ( 2 ) a series
512
HOW TO PREPARE YOUR SPEECH
The test of a text was not how it appeared to the eye but how it
sounded to the ear. His best paragraphs, when read aloud, often had a
cadence not unlike blank verse — indeed at times key words would
rhyme. He was fond of alliterative sentences, not solely for reasons of
rhetoric but to reinforce the audience's recollection of his reasoning.
Sentences began, how ever incorrect some may have regarded it, with
"And" or "But" whenever that simplified and shortened the text. His
frequent use of dashes as a means of separating clauses was of doubtful
grammatical standing —but it simplified the delivery and even the pub-
lication of a speech in a manner no comma, parenthesis or semicolon
could match.
Words were regarded as tools of precision, to be chosen and applied
with a craftsman's care to whatever the situation required. He liked to
be exact. But if the situation required a certain vagueness, he would
deliberately choose a word of varving interpretations rather than bury
his imprecision in ponderous prose.
513
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
his emphasis was on the wTong word. But often when his audiences
were large and enthusiastic —particularly indoors, if the hall was not too
vast —an almost electric charge would transmit vitaHty back and forth
between speaker and listeners.
learned to keep a Bartlett's and similar works handy, the Senator was
the chief source of his owti best quotations. Some were in the black
notebooks he had kept since college — some were in favorite reference
books on his desk, such as Agar's The Price of Union —most were in his
head.
He would not always be certain of the exact wording or even the
author of a quotation he wanted, but he could suggest enough for his
staff or the Library of Congress to find it. Preparing his brief, effective
statement against the isolationist Bricker Amendment to the Constitu-
tion, for example, he told me, "Someone — was it Falkland? — gave the
classic definition of conservatism which went something like "When it
514
HOW TO PREPARE YOUR SPEECH
opening witticism, or take as much pride the next dav in some spon-
taneous barb he had flung, as he would on the more substantive para-
graphs in his text.
a bridge to some irrelevant and lengthy anecdote, but many an old saw
was adapted to modern politics and to a particular audience.
( although not in private ) The onlv joke which backfired was told early
.
in his Senate career. "The cab driver did such a good job rushing me to
515
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
give him a big tip and tell him to vote Democratic. Then remembered
I
irreverent but gentle. In his eight years in the Senate no speech assign-
ment him longer or more deeply than his role as Democratic
vv^orried
hmnor, for it was naturally consistent with his own personality and
private wit.
His best humor, of course, was spontaneous, and his increasing con-
fidence on the platform brought increasing numbers of spur-of-the-
moment Candor and humor, when combined, can be dangerous
gibes.
weapons politically, and at times he had to restrain his natural instincts
in this direction.
He soon knew all these closings by heart; and while the standard
closings, like the humorous openings, were almost always omitted from
his released texts in order to facilitate their continued use elsewhere, his
owm reading copy (prepared in extra-large type) would have merely a
word or a phrase to indicate the appropriate close: e.g., "Candles,"
"General Marshall," "Rising or Setting Sun."
516
HOW TO PREPARE YOUR SPEECH
own peroration without the help of these few words. But he looked
upon his text and each part of it as insurance. Should the pressures of
the moment or the fatigue of the trip benumb his brain as he stood on
his feet, he wanted a complete text in his hands which he could follow
or at least take off from. He would often deviate from his text or delete
passages previously approxed and .sometimes discard it entirely. But
particularly in earlier days, when he knew his extemporaneous remarks
were likely to be less organized, precise and grammatical than a more
carefully prepared text —he wanted the reassurance a manuscript gave
him.
Their talks fit their personalities about the way a man's golf shoes
would fit his wife's feet. A speaker must choose a ghostwriter who un-
derstands him and will work closelv with him.
517
WRITE BETTER. SPEAK BETTER
Edit!
\\'hen the draft of )'our talk is readv, the time has come to edit, edit,
edit. Check it against the f ollo^^•ing hst
1. Have I honored all requirements of the talk?
2. Have I researched the topic enough? Investigated all sources?
3. Ha\"e I taken into account the nature of the audience — its economic
level, sophistication, culture, age, sex, experience, etc.?
4. Ha\'e I rechecked to make sure the talk fits the allotted time?
5. Ha\e I "boiled down" the scope of the topic for the time allotted?
6. Ha\e I constructed the talk so it has a clear purpose and makes a
point at the end?
7. Have I enough strong ideas in the body and have I developed
them sufficiently?
POINTS TO REMEMBER
Thorough preparation lessens nervousness.
Check the requirements of the talk: what your audience is like; the time
limits; the proper clothing, etc.
Make sure you have somethine; worth saying — and listening to.
518
47
Start with
a list of points
system for picking out the really essential points and ar-
mind. You'll say exactly what you want to say in a way the
i.VLost speeches start with this plan. The speaker says, "I have
a number of points I want to make." Let's say you know the points you
want to make. Now consider the devices vou can use to present your
points more effectively.
1. List your points: Take a blank sheet of paper and list the points )0u
want to cover. Include every idea that comes to your mind. If you de-
cide later that an idea doesn't belong, you can discard it. your When
list is finished, check the three or four points that you think are the
most important.
2.Cut your list to as few points as possible: The President's State of the
Union speech illustrates the difficultv of holding interest throughout a
speech with a large number of points. The message has to cover a large
519
^vmTE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
Forget some points. You are lucky if you have only three or four
points on the first list you made up. Your listener has a certain span of
attention. Ifyou have more than four points, you'll lose his interest on
points that have no or little appeal to him. You were told to include
every idea on \'our first list, but in doing this vou probably included
points that you can now cut without any great loss to you.
Cut this type of point:
one of small importance to you;
one you don't believe has too much value;
one that calls for too much explanation;
one you consider padding, not germane to your objective;
one that calls for apologv such as "This may not be of too much
interest to you, but it is important in South America";
one that might start a controversy, unless you feel the controversy
should be started.
Cutting these points gives you more time for the important ones.
Combine minor points under the majors. After you made a list of
points, you checked three or four of them as your major points. Now
check to see how many of those you didn't check can be used as sub-
points under the majors. You may protest, "But all the points on my
list are of equal importance, and I have fifteen." Assume this is true,
but consider the listener. You want him to listen and to retain what you
say. He can't listen through a dissertation of fifteen points; he can't
remember fifteen points.
520
START WITH A LIST OF POINTS
feel he has ten points that are important. The listener may feel that
only three of them are important. An)- cutting you do wdll help you get
better attention and better retention.
Three or four points are easy to remember. This is the main reason
for asking you to cut your list of points to three or four. To demonstrate
to the students why it pays to use a small number of points, one public
speaking teacher makes a speech on these three advantages of a plan:
First, it saves time.
Second, it saves labor.
Third, it saves money.
After he has stated the three points and has spoken for a few min-
utes, he asks, "How many points did I cover?"
The listeners answer; "Three."
Then he asks, "What was the first?"
They tell him, "Save time."
He follows with, "What was the second?"
They answer, "Save labor."
He continues, "What was the third?"
They reply, "Save money."
This demonstration proves that a listener can retain a small number
of points. When you have a larger number, vou may be asking too much
of him. Your main interest should be in what listeners can remember,
not in what you want to get over.
While speakers know that the small number of points is better, too
3. Analyze each point: Make each point on your list justify itself. Ask
such questions as
What is its appeal to this group?
How much explanation does it need?
Is it worth the time I have to give it?
521
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
4. Arran<fe your points to hold interest: From the time you made up
your list of points, consciously or unconsciously you have been con-
sidering the order in which xou will present them. You have such
thoughts as "Should I present the big idea first or save it as a climax?"
My advice is, "Think of buildup." Too few speakers understand this
idea of buildup. Follow this plan, and you will have it.
One speech instructor used this similar plan to explain this formula
for buildup.
Plan for presenting points:
strong points first;
ment of your points, you may feel you need to put one of your big ideas
at the start of your speech for its shock value. Put it there, but don't use
all your better material close to the start. Save some for the time when
the listeners begin to tire of the sound of your voice. Think of buildup,
and you won't be finishing with a string of etceteras. No listener likes
the speaker who talks on after he has finished.
5. Number i/our points: Numbering the points you make is in line with
the admonition of the old hymn, "Count Your Blessings." The numbers
help the listener understand and remember, so that he may make those
blessings his.
522
START WITH A LIST OF POINTS
Tell your listener you are going to count the blessings you offer. These
can be
three benefits.
three advantages.
three savings.
three anything.
You follow that statement with:
First, this
Second, this
Third, this
Why numbers help. Numbers help both the speaker and his listener.
They set the point apart, so that it is not confused with other points.
They make the point seem more important.
They help in retention if you use a small number of points.
They tell the listener the speaker knows what he is talking about.
This last is most important, for no listener wants to take the advice
of a speaker who doesn't seem to know what he wants.
Try this experiment. In one speech workshop the instructor has a
student say this Hne aloud: "This plan has three advantages: It saves
time. It saves labor. It saves money."
Then he tells him to say this line aloud: "This plan has three ad-
vantages. First, it saves time. Second, it saves labor. Third, it saves
money."
Then he has him say the latter again, this time pausing after each
number: "First (pause), it saves time. Second (pause), it saves labor.
Third (pause), it saves money."
Try doing what these men in the session do. Note how by numbering
you tend to put more force into explaining the point. Note how the
pause helps the audience understand that you are offering them some-
thing new.
Cautions on numbers. If you tell a group you plan to talk about ten
points, it will think "We'll be here all morning." If you have a long
Most men think indistinctly, and therefore cannot speak with exact-
ness . . .
—Samuel Johnson
523
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
string of points, don't mention how many. One speech instructor ad- I
vises against the use of numbers because it is possible to forget what
your seventh or eighth point was.
In speaking vour numbers use "one, tw^o, three " or "first, second,
—
third
—" instead of the more comphcated terms such as "primarily, sec-
causes of accidents
1. inadequate knowledge
2. wTong attitudes
3. habits
4. insuflBcient skill
5. environment hazards
6. carelessness
7. failure to assume personal responsibility
He hands you the article and asks you to read it and to make a speech
on the subject to office workers at his next monthly meeting. "Use these
causes or any others, and your own ideas, of course. The speech will
help prevent some of the accidents we are having," he suggests.
You read the article. You feel the list will do. You think of some office
incidents and examples you can use to help illustrate some of the points.
Since you have read the pages ahead, you start to plan your speech with
these questions:
2. Considering your office workers, how many points can you drop?
Which can be combined with other points listed? What do you lose if
3. How can you cover the points vvith evidence and examples that
will be of interest to the group?
4. How would you arrange the points so that you held interest all
5. How would you use numbers to help the listeners retain the
points?
524
START WITH A LIST OF POINTS
Planning a speech on safety may give you more trouble than similar
planning on a subject with which you are expert. Do this type of plan-
ning on any speech \"ou plan to make, and your effort will be much
more professional.
Put the list of points you want to make through these five questions,
and you will improve any speech.
3. Following is a list of points vou might want to cover. Read it and answer
the questions that follow.
a. Damage to health
b. Loss of efficiency
c. Cost in dollars
d. Time lost from job
e. Social dislocation
f. Nostalgia for old (more quiet) days
g. Need for corrective legislation
h. Who will pay for research?
i. Patents on inventions that can cut noise
j. Prominent individuals seeking reform
k. Portrait of a "silent city"
1. The
noiseless jackhammer
m. Move the highwavs out of the cities
n. Protests
o. Research being done
p. The curse of amplification
q. Number of people suffering from noise-induced ailments
r. Noise and politics
The questions:
A. What are the most important points covered in the above list?
B. In which order would vou present those points to create the most
interest?
C. Which of the points in the list could be grouped under the xarious
main headings?
525
HOW TO INTRODUCE A SPEAKER
The speech of introduction serves the same purpose as a social
preparation. First, you must gather your facts. These will center
on three items: the subject of the speaker's talk, his qualifica-
tions to speak on that subject, and his name. Often a fourth item will
become apparent —whv the subject chosen bv the speaker is of
Give the title of the speaker's talk correctly and point out its rele-
rectly from the speaker. If you have to rely on a third party, a pro-
gram chairman for instance, try to get the information in writing
526
tion between the topic and the particular interests of the group.
speaker is to give his name or to say, "I present," and then tell the
audience his name.
Some chairmen are guilty of talking too long and making the
audience restive. Others indulge in flights of oratorical fancv in
order to impress the speaker and the audience. Still others make the
sad error of dragging in "canned jokes," sometimes not in the best
taste, or of using humor that patronizes or deprecates the speak-
at the end when you announce the speaker's name, the sense of
When you do pronounce the speaker's name at the end of the in-
527
48
How to sell
your idea
Making someone change his mind is one of the most difficult
tasks in the world, yet the public speaker must often try to
agree. Those who agree have already been persuaded. Those who are
undecided can probablv be swayed by any reasonably clear and con-
vincing presentation of the facts. The real challenge is posed by those
who disagree. You want to induce them to change their minds.
Now inducing a person to change his mind is a very delicate opera-
tion indeed. We are proud of the ideas we hold. Some ideas have been
528
HOW TO SELL YOUR IDEA
not abandon the idea but \\dll hug it to his breast more tightly than
before.
This is a universal and completely predictable emotional reaction
when you "come out slugging" at a man's idea.
He did not "come out slugging." His opener was, "I come to bury
Caesar, not to praise him." He spoke respectfully of Brutus. "Brutus is
529
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
mob looking for Brutus and his fellow assassins. If Mark Antony had
"come out slugging" at the idea which Brutus had sold to the crowd,
the lynching party would have gone after Antony instead.
In less dramatic form, that is what will happen to you if you start a
controversial talk by plunging abruptly into an attack on the opposite
point of Niew. Those who hold to the opposing view will be alienated
before you begin. They
become defensive of their cherished ideas
will
and \\'ill resist change them. Thev will simplv close their
\our eflforts to
minds and shut out your ideas as effectively as if they wore ear muffs.
So the first tip for you is "Don't come out slugging." Start out by ac-
:
Don't be a bulldozer
The next guide to genuine persuasiveness is, "Don't be a bulldozer."
Don't try to bludgeon your listeners into submission wath facts, figures,
Remember, your listener will accept your idea only if he first wants
to accept it. It is literallv true that we think what we "feel like" think-
ing. Ideas that are accompanied b>' favorable emotional responses are
readily accepted. Ideas that come wrapped in a hostile attitude can be
very easily rationafized into impotence.
If you were ever on a debating team, it's likely you were taught to
tear into opposing ideas with vigor. The game was to rip and tear the
opponents' ideas to shreds. Sarcasm was sharpened to knife-edge keen-
ness, to slash the opposing ideas.
It was great fun. In fact, it was probably very pleasing to those who
already agreed with you. That's where the applause came from that
made you so proud.
But the applause was misleading because such debater's tactics
don't persuade those who are in disagreement with you. Sometimes one
may win an argument because the other person simply
appear to
"clams up" rather than offering open resistance by arguing. The re-
sistance simplv goes underground and becomes resentment. No ideas
are changed by this process.
There is a saying that, "A man convinced against his will is of the
530
HOW TO SELL YOUR IDEA
Don't be a bulldozer!
Emerson told a story that illustrates this principle. A husky boy was
trying to get a large calf into the barn. He pushed with all his might.
He whipped the calf repeatedly, swore vigorously, and tried to force
cerely interested in his welfare, and that you have something of value
to offer to him. Onlv then will he be willing to be led toward a changed
idea. Not until you reach this point may you safely start to urge the ac-
tion or conviction that you are seeking to induce.
give a talk in favor of building a new high school. You expect ac-
ceptance from parents who have children in school. The principal
opposition is expected from taxpayers who don't ha\e children in
school. Some may be childless. Some have grown children. Some send
their children to private or parochial schools.
531
SELL YOUR IDEA WITH STORIES
Every good speaker should have a basketful of point-proving
stories that can be pulled out and used to make his audience open
up and buy his idea with gusto.
Since your mere presence on the dais has put you on the hne as
wanting to be a good speaker, one your audiences will clamor to
listen to again, you have a duty to learn to use stories and particu-
larly humorous ones.
Here are some realistic facts about telling a good story:
We
know humor can't be defined accurately. Granted, but neither
can many other things we live very clo.se to like love or hate. Our —
styles of humor may differ from one another but the fact still re-
as well as some other people you know, you can do it well enough
to make storytelling a vital part of your speech arsenal. If someone
else tells stories better, it's probably because he's had more prac-
tice. You can get practice, too.
When everything else has failed to win the agreement of the
audience, the good story will! Manv times it seems to be the onlij
technique that will allow a listener to drop his prejudices and agree
with you, the speaker.
Use these guideposts:
Tell stories you knoiv and are completely sure of.
Whatever story you tell, it must tie in with your speech. If not,
Beware of the old, old, old stories everyone has heard before.
Nothing is more deadly.
Never, never lead into a story with, "That reminds me of a
story . .
."
532
HOW TO SELL YOUR IDEA
All of us are in agreement about one side of the scale. Rising taxes
have been painful for everyone. We are as close as brothers when we
are worrying about high taxes.
We are in considerable agreement about the other side of the scale,
too. All of us want the young people of our communitv to have good
educations. To some of us this seems so urgent and so important that it
tips the scale e\ en though there is a heaxy tax weight on the other side.
To others, it isn't (juite heavy enough to hold its own and the hea\y tax
load tips the scale.
Our challenge is to build up the weight of impro\'ed education to the
point where it will outweigh heavv taxes in more peoples minds. Let's
plan a brief talk to accomplish this.
533
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
We know too that if taxes get too high, they discourage new people
and new industry from moving in. This can hurt a community. All of us
are against anything which will hurt our town.
On the other hand, we share enthusiasm for projects which we can
feel will help make our community a better place to live. Our problem
is to decide whether building a new high school will do more to improve
On the other side, let's put the value to the community of offering
completely modern educational opportunities to our young people. This
will be more diflBcult to weigh because each of us views it from a slightly
different vantage point.
Some of us have children who will go to that new school — or to the
old one. Perhaps we are too close to be objective. We see the crowded
classrooms, the inadequate laboratories, the overcrowded gymnasium,
and the hazards. It would be good if all of us as citizens could tour
fire
534
HOW TO SELL YOUR IDEA
Note that we have tried to aim the talk at those who disagree. We
acknowledged the legitimaey of their point of view and found as much
meeting ground as possible. Finally, we held out benefits to them and
attempted to lead them gradually toward a favorable attitude.
Person-to-person persuasion
you can start to build up the values to him of your idea. If you pause
occasionally and let him get a word
you can accurately judge both
in,
his intellectual and emotional responses. If you find \ou have stepped
on an emotional corn, you will do well to change the subject and make
a fresh start some other time when the receptivity is better.
BE PATIENT
Often, persuasion does not come at the first attempt — or the second or
third. Sometimes an idea has to be mulled over, examined critically,
535
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
Don't be a bulldozer.
Don't push — lead.
troversial idea. (2) Don't be a verbal bulldozer. (3) Don't push lead. —
(4) Curb your rebuttal instinct. Read the speech on pages 533-534 and
tell how the speaker applies these four admonitions.
536
49
Use visuals to
prove your point
No matter how eloquent a speaker you become, there are
watchers what they wanted to say. The picture was being used to pre-
sent an idea vividly.
It's a long step from the prehistoric cave dwellers to today's speaker,
but the rule that the best way to get across a point is with a picture still
remains unchanged.
And no better way wall everbe found! The picture communicates an
idea more quickly, clearlv, and vividly than any other means of com-
munication. The picture on the cave wall, the visual presentation in the
537
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
speech — both stick the idea deep in the Ustener's mind. And that, after
Lights
The speaker must never be in the dark. Not even when slides and films
are being shown? Never! The visual presentation supports what the
speaker is attempting to develop or prove. He must always be the most
important object in the room. The visual must always work for him. It
538
USE VISUALS TO PROX'E YOUR POINT
I have here a chart of the plant (pause) you probably can't see
. . .
How could a chart no one can see help anyone understand the prob-
lem?A visual your audience can't see is a waste of time.
How can vou tell that everyone will be able to see a visual? Easy!
Go to the back of the hall before the speech and look. If you can see
everything on the visual, it fulfills the requirements.
How to stand
The right-handed speaker usually stands to the left of the visual and
directs the attention of the audience to his material. If you use a
pointer, you may stand on either side. Don't, however, stand in front of
the diagram or picture you want your audience to see. Think about this
before you set up your material; place your diagram where it will be
most visible and where you work easily. Always remember the impor-
tance of integrating the visual to support what you have to say. If you
appear awkward, or the visual is cumbersome, its effectiveness will be
greatly reduced.
Many speakers fail to use their good \isuals fully. Always pull the
eye of the viewer down to your chart or visual; point out specifically
with your pointer what you want him to note carefully. Don't simply
wave in the general direction of the visual and expect the viewer to
How to speak
Remember, your audience is the listener, not that inanimate object, the
visual. Yet, in nine of ten speeches vou listen to, the speaker will spend
most of his time addressing the visual aid! Speak to the audience. When
you turn to the visual, do so to draw the audience's attention to a par-
539
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
ticular point that the diagram ampHfies or makes more clear. The \asual
is a help; never let it take you from your listeners.
Percy Bysshe Shelley, one of the great poets of the EngHsh language,
referred to life as being "like a dome of many-colored glass." He was
vividly describing the multicolored, varied nature of our evervday
existence, and the effect that color has upon all of us. Look at a pic-
ture, an ad in a magazine, a photograph taken by a friend on a vaca-
tion, a new car: all are more exciting by their use of color. Color plays
an important role every day in motivating us to accept, and sometimes
to reject, ideas. The important fact is that it forces us to respond. The
speaker is losing out if he does not take advantage of this vital force.
How to draw
Ever looked at a Japanese print? It's delicate and fine-lined, suggests
softness and fragility. These are not the qualities the speaker wants to
get across to his fact-hungry and critical audience. He wants to impress
his listeners with the strength of his thinking. Strong diagrams and
charts can help put this feeling across.
Make the pictures and lines of your visuals definite, broad, and clear.
Avoid thinness and delicacy; it can easily be confused with artiness,
wilHngness to compromise, and unwillingness to hold to a position.
Simply stated visuals can help convince your listeners that you have
carefully thought out your material and that they will be safe to take
what you say as fact.
540
USE VISUALS TO PROVE YOUR POINT
Be sure your audience can see everything you point out on the ob-
jectyou hold. If they can't, you're going to have to enlarge that part
by drawing a picture.
Point to the part of the object you want the audience to concentrate
on. Don't just wave it in front of them. Using a physical object to
support your speech is an excellent way to make your audience fol-
541
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
millions
of U.S. POPULATION GROWTH
people:
VKI
yean 1790
USE VISUALS TO PRO\'E YOUR POINT
When you use a line graph, keep the following suggestions in mind:
Always put a heading over the graph which spells out clearly what
it is supposed to tell the audience.
Be sure to label both legs of your graph, and be sure the labels are
visible to your viewers.
Label both legs of your graph horizontally; remember that your
audience cannot pick up your graph and turn it around (as they
would a page ) for easy viewing.
Draw your lines definitely so the last man in the last row can see
easily. Nothing could be more useless than a visual that is not visible.
If there are important points in your graph, mark them with ar-
rows to pinpoint the attention of \'Our viewers. Make it easy for them
Use color; it is one of the best ways to attract and hold attention.
United
Kingdom Japan
Norway
33,133 34,633
United
30,593
States 30,000
24,560
mi
15,346
m
m
1968 1969 1968 1969 1968 1969
WRITE BETTER. SPEAK BETTER
light the difference. This follows the basic rule of \isuals; the quicker
The pictograph is entering like a breath of fresh air into more and
more visual presentations. B\- its use, thousands of grateful listeners
are able instantly to receive and understand facts that would be dull as
dust if presented in the usual form of statistical tables. An audience
that is relaxed and happy is easy to talk to and easier to convince.
The pictograph serves the goal stated by a famous knight, scholar,
teacher, and soldier of the sixteenth century — Sir Philip Sidney. Out-
544
USE VISUALS TO PROVE YOUR POINT
lining the best way to teach or persuade someone, he said: "He cometh
unto you with a tale which lioldeth children from play, and old men
from the chimney corner."
In other words, he was saying, "Make what \'Ou have to say easy to
understand and pleasant to learn, and people wall remember it." The
pictograph does this unusually well.
The pictograph is a symbolic presentation of the object or objects be-
ing described. You have probabK' seen the visual of a coin divided into
parts to show how go\'ernment spending is allocated to different de-
partments. Or the use of silhouette soldiers to show the armed forces of
a country. Or a factory to show an industry. The pictograph is the most
effective of visuals because it visuallv translates the idea for the viewer.
The pictograph gives an immediate visual comparison of the idea be-
ing presented. No translation of numbers, tables, graphs is needed; the
audience can see and understand almost as soon as the visual is re-
terest and stimulate an audience. The flannel board has proved its com-
munication value every time been used, and the novelty of the
it's
board will enhance your speaking even more. Chances are that your
545
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
listeners have never seen a flannel board used and as a visual aid tech-
nique bound to excite them.
it's
You lay out vour visuals on illustration paper, drawing the picto-
graphs, diagrams, charts, statistics, etc., on whatever color background
you prefer. When your \isuals are finished, you paste pieces of sandpa-
per on the back (use the heaviest gauge sandpaper you can find, and
paste in the corners )
As you give your speech, all you need do to exhibit your information
is to press these visuals onto the flannel board. The roughness of the
sandpaper will make them hold to the flannel. They'll stay there until
you pick them off.
The flannel board allows you to develop and build an idea in front of
your audience by laying it out as you talk. Listeners will never fail to
successful speaking.
CHARTS
Large white charts, drawn either on heavy illustration paper or on a
common white pad, can be very helpful in making your idea clear to
the audience. If your diagram is complicated you will probably want
to prepare it completely before the speech. However, if the diagram is
simple, it's often a good idea to develop it as you proceed. This tech-
546
USE VISUALS TO PROVE YOUR POINT
foolhardy to try to break it now. Lay your material out in this familiar
pattern and you will help your listener and viewer follow your material
easily and rapidly. As with all other visual devices, use color and vari-
ety to stimulate interest. The one big weakness in charts is that every-
one has seen them used many, many times before —and frequently used
poorly. Nevertheless, well-drawn, simple, and original charts can work
very hard for you in supporting your speech.
BLACKBOARD
The blackboard is too often regarded as a \asual device for use only in
the classroom. The very reason it has such wdde use in teaching is be-
cause it is one of the best ways of outlining and dramatizing a thought.
You can see that few mediums have the flexibility of the blackboard:
the speaker can erase and present a new idea on the same surface time
after time.
ished with a diagram on the board, erase it and give the audience noth-
ing to look at but you! That's the way it should be.
547
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
stood her ten paces away, and shot cigarettes from her mouth with
a revolver. Usually he was elected.
—Albert Benjamin in the American Magazine
Today, many new machines have been developed to make the pres-
entation of visual ideas easier and evenmore dramatic than was possi-
ble a few years ago. These machines can be divided roughly into three
types: motion picture projectors; slide and strip projectors; and over-
head projectors. Let's examine the strengths and weaknesses of each.
MOTION PICTURES
Here is an excellent way to present ideas in a very finished form. This
type of presentation is made strong by the highly flexible flow of ideas;
by the ability of the camera to move freely and easily from scene to
scene; by the abihty to provide a running audio track with the picture.
Since we have all been brought up in the age of the "movies" and asso-
ciate the movies with fun, they have a built-in appeal for all audiences.
Motion pictures can add vitality to your speech, but they have their
limitations which you must learn to recognize:
Motion pictures demand a completely darkened room and a dark-
ened room carries with it loss of attention and not infrequently sleep.
When the lights go out, the speaker loses his identity and with it goes
his control. If you use movies, try doing the commentary yourself and
thereby hold vour listeners' attention.
Be sure the machine you use is in good working order. The visual
device that won't operate, the projector that "worked just this after-
noon" annoy audiences mightily; they don't expect Cinemascope, but
they do expect something that works.
Use the film to support your speech; don't let the picture become
the speech. A good method is to open your presentation orally and
then use the movie to support the points you want to emphasize.
Then by summarizing the purpose of the presentation and tell-
close
ing your listeners exactly what action you want from them. In other
words, make the film a tool you be the speaker, not the machine.
548
USE VISUALS TO PRO^'E YOUR POE^^•
Remember, your audience has probably seen its fill of "home mov-
Be sure the film is worth showing. Think of the poor viewer.
ies."
More and more people have taken to collecting pictures of their trips,
etc., as a record of their pleasant familv life. As a result, dozens of ex-
cellent slide projectors are on the market today. Speakers have been
quick to find that these projectors are just the device to hammer home
an idea in an entertaining way and with lasting effect. The strip projec-
tor, which is now also being used widely, is simply a series of sHdes
fastened together in a strip form on film.
Don't overlook the slide and strip film projector when you plan your
next speech. And when you use it, keep these ideas in mind:
As with the film projector, the slide projector must be used in a
dark room; don't let it take over. Remember you are the speaker, not
the machine.
New slide and strip projectors have a long cord attachment which
allows the speaker to change his own slide frames. Use it! It elimi-
nates that tired old instruction to the much mahgned machine opera-
tor, "May we have the next slide, please."
Severalnew slide projectors are available with sound attachments
that play a record in coordination with the slides or film strips. We
advise against them. If vou replace the speaker wdth a mechanical de-
vice, you might just as well stay at home and let the audience listen
to a recording.
OVERHEAD PROJECTORS
Here is an excellent device (used unfortunately too little) which will
add a professional touch to any speaker's presentation. Some of you
may have seen these projectors used in bowling allevs; they are the
machines that project the bowling score onto overhead screens.
Here's how the business speaker can use the overhead projector. Vis-
uals are prepared on transparent sheets of acetate varying in size from
549
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
3" X 3" to 8" X 8". The acetate is placed on a polished glass surface of
the projector through which a strong light shines. The light projects
through the acetate, picking up the illustration the speaker has made;
it passes up through an optical lens and thrown forward onto a
is
Visual projectors can make any speech better. Look up your nearest
visual aid distributor and ask him to show you what is available for
you as a speaker.
Chalk. If you use a blackboard (you should try it), don't forget color.
Try definite colors (red, yellow, green, blue) as well as white, since
these colors will be most visible and will add interest and clarity to the
ideas you present.
550
USE VISUALS TO PROVE YOUR POINT
551
50
Preparing yourself
to speak
Once the speech itself has been organized and written, the
time has come to get ready for the big moment. Here Dorothy
552
PREPARING YOURSELF TO SPEAK
looseleaf notebook with some file cards to match, and a punch. Punch
the cards the long way for insertion in the book, so that they can be
flipped up, like a wall calendar.
Your talk by now is on paper. Go over it. Strike out such small words
as "the," "and," "but," "for," "by," "with," "at," and "in." Also drop self-
evident verbs, and abbreviate other words —but be sure that when the
time comes you will recognize instantly what the abbreviations mean.
Next, transcribe this shortcut version of your talk onto your cards.
Look at the sample on the next page. Notice that it is printed with a
felt tip pen. Each letter is about a half inch high, so that an entire sen-
tence can be scooped up in a single peripheral glance. Print is easier to
In using cue cards, remember to: (a) number each card; (b) number
each sentence and start each at left margin; (c) leave plenty of white
space between sentences.
Read the first sentence of the unabridged paragraph in the following
sample three times aloud. Then turn the page and go to cue-card ab-
breviation No. 1. You will find that the cues enable you to recreate the
Full text:
No one can say that morale is high in America today. The President,
in his State of the Union Message in January, spoke of "a certain rest-
553
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
not at your desk —and don't be satisfied until the speech seems almost
to come by itself.
554
HOW TO HANDLE DISTRACTIONS
One important aspect of your preparation for a speech is know-
ing what to do if an unexpected disturbance should arise. Here
are four points that will help you keep control of the situation
despite distractions in the hall.
1. Recognition of counterattraction.s. Sometimes there are dis-
turbing noises or movements which compete for attention within
the room. Someone is uncomfortable and gets up to raise or lower
a window or to adjust the air conditioning. Someone else arrives
late, bangs open a door, and moves down front to an available seat.
If vou can ignore the counterattraction and still hold the audience,
do so. If the disturbance seriously interferes with communication,
pause and wait until the disruption has stopped and the audience
is again attentive.
2. Recognition of outside disturbances. Sometimes there are out-
side interruptions, such as fire sirens, clanking machinery, low-ilying
ca.ses common sense suggests that vou stop your speech and summon
competent medical aid. If circumstances permit you to resume, it
555
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
hearsing them — aloud, and on his feet. Simplv looking over what you
plan to sav does not substitute for saying it, any more than looking over
a swimming pool substitutes for a swim.
I cannot say too often Rehearse as
: if you were on the platform with
an audience before \ou. On your feet. Aloud.
Now you Use that tape recorder
are on the last lap of familiarization.
again. Do you sound Warm? Knowl-
attractive? \ital? Self-confident?
edgeable? Informed? Vibrant? Sincere? Relaxed? Amusing? Clever?
Check your ending. Do \ou strengthen it by pausing for effect? Is it
strongly deUvered?
Or do you sound dull? Tired? Cold? Uncertain? Monotonous? Af-
fected? Tense? Confused? Perhaps even a little bit stupid? Do you con-
clude weakly and more than once?
Practice and check, practice and check, until you feel that you are
the kind of speaker you would like to hear if you were in the audience.
D- ( for do it ) day
You have arrixcd at D-day. Last-minute preparations are in order.
First, the matter of dress. Remember —wear nothing that will distract
your Hstencrs from what you are saving. (One of the worst enemies a
woman speaker can ha\e is dangling, dancing earrings or a hat that
hides half her face so people wonder what she looks like from the
nose up.
If you have time, go through one final tape recorder session. If there
is not enough time for that before you have to leave for your talk, at
least use the recorder for a last-minute check on the beginning and end
of \'our speech.
On the spot
times had the lectern and microphone moved from the stage to the floor.
556
PREPARING YOURSELF TO SPEAK
the balcony rim illuminated the tablecloth, the silver, the crystal, and
the speakers' hands. Yet every face was left in shadow. Nobody had
checked to see ifwould illuminate the speakers' faces.
the hghts
In Texas, before a concert, I found there was no spotlight in the hall.
"We keep our eyes closed," said the chairwoman haughtily; "singers are
to be listened to, not looked at." My accompanist was Josef Blatt, later
minated the display sign in front of a funeral home, and attached them
to the balcony rail. After the concert, the chairwoman agreed that the
spotlights had added to the evening. "I had no idea," she said, "how
much it adds to the enjoyment of a concert to be able to watch the ex-
pression on the singer's face. I hate to think of what we have been miss-
ing all these years!"
THE LECTERN
Make sure the lectern is the right height for you. Carlos Romulo, For-
eign Minister of the Philippines, is an outstanding speaker but unusu-
ally short
— just a little over five feet tall. To be seen, he alwavs asks to
557
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
thoughtfully, "I guess you might say that it's rather like being a dime
among nickels."
Back to the lectern: It is important to check the light. Often it lights
up not only your notes but also your Adam's apple or double chins.
If you would rather have attention focused on your face than your
Adam's apple, clip or Scotch-tape a sheet of paper or a napkin over the
light to soften and diffuse it.
the microphone is wrong for you, don't hesitate to adjust it until you
are comfortable.
The closer you are to the mike, the more intimate the sound. The
more forcefully you project, the farther away from it you should be. I
prefer the most conversational sound possible, and keep the micro-
phone about six inches away, at chin height. Now and then I come
closer for emotional effect.
You mav have to ask for a gooseneck extension to bring the micro-
phone closer.
Sometimes the sound "p" comes from the mike with a loud pop. If so,
THANKS, FRED!
If there is a sound engineer — Fred, for instance— make a point of meet-
ing him and learning his name. It can forestall crises and help you make
the mike your friend. Ask him to test the mike with you and to adjust it
AVhen King Charles II was asked why he read his speeches before
558
PREPARING YOURSELF TO SPEAK
SO the tone is warm and the volume does not blast. If you are a woman,
you may want him knob so there's less treble
to turn the tone control
and more bass. Some added bass flatters a woman's voice; an overdose
of treble results in a pinched, metallic sound. Get the right sound mix
for you.
Without knowing Fred's name, in a minor crisis you could be a voice
crying in the wilderness. If, despite arrangements, vou cannot be heard
by the audience, simply call, "Fred, can vou please turn up the volume?
I don't think they can hear me." You are apt to get prompt action. Fred,
tem. Nothing defeats a speaker more than a room that is too hot.
Post time
Just before speaking and while you are waiting to go on, remember:
Don't drink anything alcoholic — or, if you must, limit your intake to
one drink. Pilots would be allowed to drink before flights if alcohol did
not lessen their ability to have complete control of themselves and the
plane. Competence cannot be preserved in alcohol. It will not make \ou
a better speaker; it will onh- make you think you are better.
Be moderate in your eating. There is more than meets the palate to
the old saw that a full belly makes a sluggish mind.
Study the audience while others are speaking. Do they respond
quickly? Slowly? NegativeK ? Do thev laugh easily? Is their reaction
different from what you had expected? If so, you may wish to amend
some statement you had intended to make; modifx' an argument; add a
joke, or omit one. (Unless you are fully confident of your mastery of
the situation, though, do not make a la.st-minutc change in the basic
559
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
cards insures you against ever becoming confused in this way. Dog-ear
the cards for quick flipping.
Set a small key-chain timer, attached to the ring of your notebook,
for fi\'e minutes less than the length of your talk plus the estimated
time of the chairman's introduction of you.
However thoroughly you have prepared yourself, even if you are an old
speaking hand the chances are that adrenalin is now pouring into your
blood stream. Don't worry about a slight case of nerves; it only shows
that you are a race horse rather than a truck horse. Below are prescrip-
tions to combat butterflies. Memorize the steps and follow them while
you are waiting to go on:
1. Sit in Executive Posture. Press against the chair with your lower
back, directing your tension into your \ital center. Keep your upper ab-
dominal muscles taut. This leaves the butterflies no place to flutter
around in.
560
PREPARING YOURSELF TO SPEAK
( This should also be true of )'our concluding remarks. Say the last two
or three sentences right into their eyes — no looking do\vn, here.)
Every speaker has his own
Winston Churchill over-
butterfly net.
came his early fear of audiences by imagining that each of them was
sitting there naked. Franklin D. Roosevelt is said to have pretended
I hope you won't have to go that far. Your audience is not a jury that
has alread\' found you guilty and is about to decide on your sentence.
They want to like you. All you have to do is make it easy for them.
REMEMBER:
Use cue cards. Don't memorize —famiUarize.
Rehearse aloud, on vour feet, at least six times, editing after each play-
back. Make your tape recorder your editor.
Check the phvsical arrangements on the spot the lectern —the mi-
crophone —the sound engineer.
Reinforce vour confidence while waiting to speak. Banish those butter-
flies once and for all.
America is the most prosperous nation in the history of the world. This
affluence, however, has not brought happiness. Rather, Americans are
beset bv manv problems: racial tensions and disorders; poverty amid
plenty; a faltering economy; decaying cities; pollution of air, water, and
soil; a drug problem. We have gone from one war into another; our peo-
561
EIGHT RULES FOR PRESENTING
AND ACCEPTING AWARDS
"It has been proved that the deepest yearning of the human heart
is for recognition — for honor!"
this simply.
3. Tell how much the award is deserved and how cordially the
562
But this must not tempt you to make the mistake of exaggerating.
At a time such as this, it is easy to exaggerate someone's virtues far
beyond their real measure. If the award is deserved, we must say so,
563
51
What makes a
good speaker?
You've learned a lot about preparing your speech— how to
pare yourself, too. But now that you're on the podium, here
564
WHAT MAKES A GOOD SPEAKER
your talking become mechanical. If you let your attention wander, your
manner will become absentminded and you will not communicate.
Think what you are saying while you are saying it. Think it hard.
Then the audience will know that you mean what you say and will
listen to you.
A good speaker is earnest. He doesn't talk for talk's sake, to show off
his clothes, or his smile, or his diction, or his \ oice. He doesn't turn on
the charm when he stands up only to switch it off as he sits down.
A good speaker has a sense of responsibility to his listeners. He real-
565
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
To the beginning speaker: Be yourself. Say what you think, not what
some columnist or newscaster thinks.
Study other speakers, but don't ape them.
Recognize and admire the fine qualities of experienced speakers. But
don't feel that these are necessarily the qualities vou must have. You
must develop your own potentialities, work out your owni style, dis-
After each performance, analvze it. Ask trusted friends about it. Try
to form some objecti\'e estimate of its worth.
Beginners' faults
Here are several of the more common beginners' faults. If you have
some, try to eliminate them.
Describe what you see out of a window. Talk of some news event or on
any topic that lends itself to a short extemporaneous speech.
The apologetic opening, the apologetic tone. Only the best speakers
can afford to apologize, and they do it only when a busy schedule hasn't
them enough time to prepare.
left
566
WHAT MAKES A GOOD SPEAKER
Being a copycat. Don't take vour speech from, or copv the style of,
Build vour own talks. If a magazine article interests you, read other
articles on the same subject, take notes, add your own ideas and ob-
servations. Then prepare your speech in your own words.
is communication to others.
TO CORRECT: Talk to the person in the last row first; then talk to the
persons closer to you.
,"
talk on this for hours," "I haven't time to discuss this fully, but . . .
"I'll have to leave this for another time," "I hope I'm not boring you with
this, but .
."
.
Those phrases are useless and irritating. Prepare vour talk well so
that you won't be tempted to fall back on them.
567
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
1. Before I begin I'd like to point out that this is a controversial sub-
ject—whether the use of private automobiles should be limited or
banned. It is now known that the automobile is costly and wasteful of
natural resources. The government recognizes the need for mass transit
and is
facilities spending monev to develop them. But some feel the
government isn't doing enough. There's no getting around the fact that
roads are clogged, there is a lot of pollution, and matters are getting
worse. Therefore, people who are against the automobile sav that some-
thing must be done and soon.
threats and social dislocation due to the proliferation of cars and high-
ways and the multitude of problems they create.
568
52
The secret of
good delivery
In this classic exploration of the elements that contribute to
Would vou believe it? There are four ways, and only four
ways, in which we have contact with the world. We are evaluated and
classified by these four contacts: what we do, how we look, what we
say, and how we say it. This chapter will deal with the last of these
how we sav^ it.
project their tones into the upper sinuses, how to "breathe diaphrag-
worked on the far more important objectives of freeing them from their
inhibitions and general reluctance to let themselves go, I would achieve
quick and lasting results that were truly amazing. I thank God I had
the sense to do this.
569
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
In my course there are several sessions that have as their purpose the
freeing of tightly bound and I got down on my knees, lit-
tense adults.
erally, to implore my class members
come out of their shells and find
to
out for themselves that the world would treat them with cordialit\' and
warmth when thev would do so. It took some doing, I admit, but it
was worth it. As Marshal Foch, who led the Allied forces to victory in
World War I, said of the art of war, "It is simple enough in its concep-
tion, but unfortunately complicated in its execution."
When you were a child, sav, four vears old, you probably could have
mounted a platform and talked naturally to an audience. But when you
are twenty-and-four, or forty-and-four, what happens when you mount
a platform and start to speak? Do you retain that unconscious natural-
ness that vou possessed at four? You may, but it is dollars to doughnuts
that you will become stiff and stilted and mechanical, and draw back
into your shell like a snapping turtle.
cover to their amazement that, though they may have acted like fools,
they didn't feel bad when they were doing it. The class too is amazed
at the dramatic ability some of the class members display. My point is
that once you let your hair down before a group you are not likely to
570
THE SECRET OF GOOD DELIVERY
who are not afraid to express themselves, not afraid to use the unique,
indi\idual, imaginative way of saying what the\' have to say to the
audience.
Shortly after the close of the First World War, I met two brothers in
London, Sir Ross and Sir Keith Smith. They had just made the first air-
the flavor with which they are delivered. It is not so much just what
you sav as how you say it.
Brulloff, the great Russian painter, once corrected a pupil's study.
The pupil looked in amazement at the altered drawing, exclaiming:
"Why, vou have touched it only a tiny bit, but it is quite another thing."
Brulloff replied, "Art begins where the tiny bit begins." That is as true
of speaking as it is of painting and of Rubinstein's playing.
The same thing holds true when one is touching words. There is an
571
WHEN YOU'RE ON RADIO OR TV
Talking on the radio or on television presents special problems.
Your audience cannot see you in person, and yet you want them
to think of you as a pleasant, warm, and cordial person. You can-
not see your audience, can get no immediate response from them.
You have in front of you only a mechanical instrument, the micro-
phone —and, on television of course, the formidable camera.
Sit at the table, lean your elbows on it, and talk as if these lis-
Talk to, talk with these persons, not at them. Keep the tone of
active, spirited conversation. Let one sentence be a reply to a ques-
tion. Let the next be an idea that has just popped into your head.
you've rehearsed your lines. Give your audience the illusion that
what you are saying you are saying for the first time.
Begin with a strong, attention-getting sentence, for your listener
can turn you off if you don't interest him. Restate points at inter-
However, let the one or two imaginarv persons you are talking to
be representatives of the group most hkely to be Hstening at that
hour of the day, that day of the week. Ask yourself: Who is most
likely to be listening now? A busy housewife, a relaxing office-worker,
or someone idling through the Sundav newspaper?
The studio announcer will tell you the best distance to keep the
microphone from your head or mouth, whether eight inches or a
foot or two. Whatever the distance, keep it. Don't weave from side
572
to side, or back and forth. When you are going to use louder vol-
ume at some point, move back a bit. When you are going to talk
quietly in some section, move slightly closer to the "mike."
Aim vour voice not directly at the center of the "mike," but
slightly to one side. Breathe quietly. Try not to explode b, d, g, p,
t, k, too much. Talk at a rate somewhat faster than \ou would be-
fore a "live" audience, between 140 and 180 words per minute,
preferablv at 150 words per minute. Practice this rate before you
reach the studio.
Avoid emphasizing words by saying them more loudly. Instead,
emphasize by pitch changes, pauses, and phrasing.
Though vou are reading vour talk, know the material well
enough so that you can keep your eyes off the page at least a
third of the time. Do not hold the script between your mouth and
the microphone, and move the pages quietly to one side as you
finish with them.
Prepare enough material to fill vour time allotment, allowing
150 words or from fourteen to sixteen lines of typscript a minute.
Prepare a little extra so you won't run short. Mark off on the
script units of three, four, or five minutes, whichever is more
suitable for the total length of the speech. Bracket material which
can be cut in case you see that you are going to run overtime. Be
prepared to cut heavily on the next-to-last page, so that you can
give full time to the concluding section.
On television, face the camera that is being used at the mo-
ment (indicated by a light or otherwise). Focus on an imaginary
person there and talk to him. As in the case of radio, you will be
better received if you think of talking to individuals rather than to
a mass audience. Don't let your gaze become unfocused, for then
you will seem to be talking past or through the audience.
Make any gestures purposeful. Avoid elaborate gestures, and
quick, sudden movements.
Your rate should be the normal speaking one of about 125 words
per minute. You need not worry about talking to the microphone
for this will be overhead, or hung about your neck, or concealed.
573
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
old saying in the English Parliament that e\ erything depends upon the
manner which one speaks and not upon the matter. QuintiHan said
in
it long ago, when England was one of the outlying colonies of Rome.
"All Fords are cxactK- alike," their maker used to say, but no two men
are just alike. Exery new life is a new thing under the sun; there has
ne\er been anything just like it before, and ne\er will be again. A
voun^r man ou2;ht to fret that idea about liimself: he should look for the
single spark of indi\idualit\- that makes him different from other folks,
and de\elop that for all he is worth. Society and schools may try to
iron it out of him; their tendency is to put us all in the same mold, but
I sa\', don t let that spark be lost; it's your only real claim to importance.
All that is doubly true of effective speaking. There is no other human
being in the world Hundreds of millions of people have two
like you.
eyes and a nose and a mouth, but none of them looks precisely like you;
and none of them has exactl)' your traits and methods and cast of mind.
Few of them will talk and express themselves just as you do when you
are speaking natinallw In other words, you ha\e an individuality. As a
speaker, it is your most precious possession. Cling to it. Cherish it. De-
\elop it. It is the spark that will put force and sincerity into your speak-
ing. It is your only real claim to importance. I beg you, do not attempt
to force yourself into a mold and thereby lose your distinctiveness.
574
THE SECRET OF GOOD DELIVERY
appear natural, he has to use much more energy in talking to forty people
than he does in talking to one, just as a statue on top of a building has
to be of heroic size in order to make it appear of lifelike proportions to
an obserxer on the ground.
At the close of one of Mark Twain's lectures in a Ne\'ada mining
camp, an old prospector approached him and inquired, "Be them your
natural tones of eloquence?
That is what the audience wants: "your natural tones of eloquence,"
enlarged a bit.
WTong? Wake up! Be human." Then mentallv pick out a person in the
audience, someone in the back or the least attentive person you can
find, and talk to this person. Forget there is anyone else present at all.
575
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
Converse with this person. Imagine that he has asked you a question
and that you are answering it, and that you are the only one who can
answer it. If he were to stand up and talk to you, and you were to talk
back to him, that process would immediately and inevitably make your
speaking more conversational, more natural, more direct. So, imagine
that is precisely what is taking place.
You may go so far as actualK' to ask questions and answer them. For
example, in the midst of vour talk, you may say, "And you ask what
proof have I for this assertion? I have adequate proof and here it
is.. .
." Then proceed to answer the question. That sort of thing can be
^Vhen he speaks,
THE SECRET OF GOOD DELIVERY
sure that few people who heard him ever thought of him as a "pubhc
speaker" at all.
If you speak in public so that people hearing you will suspect that you
have had training in public speaking, you will not be a credit to your
instructor, especially an instructor in one of my courses. He desires you
to speak with such intensified naturalness that your audience will never
dream that you have been "formally" trained. A good window does not
call attention to itself. It merely lets in the Hght. A good speaker is like
that. He is so disarmingly natural that his hearers never notice his man-
ner of speaking: they are conscious only of his matter.
surface. The bars are down. The heat of his emotions has burned all
"I shall never forget," said Dean Brown in his Lectures on Preaching
before the Yale Divinity School, "the description given by a friend of
mine of a church service which he once attended in the city of London.
The preacher was George MacDonald; he read for the Scripture lesson
that morning the eleventh chapter of Hebrews. When the time came
for the sermon, he said, 'You have all heard about these men of faith.
I shall not try to tell you what faith is. There are theological professors
who could do that much better than I could do it. I am here to help you
as to beget faith in the minds and hearts of all his hearers. His heart was
in his icork, and his delivery was effective because it rested ujwn the
getiuine beauty of his own inner life."
"His heart was in his work." That is the secret. Yet I know that advice
like this is not popular. It seems vague. It sounds indefinite. The average
person wants foolproof rules, something definite, something he can put
his hands on, rules as precise as the directions for operating a car.
That is what he wants; that is what I would like to give him. It would
be easy for him and it would be easy for me. There are such rules, and
577
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
there is only one littlewrong with them: They just don't work.
thing
They take all the naturalness and spontaneity and life and juice out of a
man's speaking. I know. In my vounger days I wasted a great deal of
energy trying them. They won't appear in these pages for, as Josh Bil-
lings observed in one of his lighter moments, "There ain't no use in
knowin' so many things that ain't so."
578
PART FOUR
Learn to
use
your voice
WHAT YOU WILL FIND IN
Part four
53. Beware of these speech blemishes 581
Beware of these
speech blemishes
Nothing expresses your personality as surely as your voice,
speech blemishes. Learn what they are and how you can
guard against and correct them.
as your face ugly; being aloof, stiff, and tense; forcing your voice; talk-
ing without moving vour lips.
But the best reporter of speech is the tape recorder. Many small, light-
you have a mirror in your home, you should have a tape recorder too.
581
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
at the same time. Meanwhile, do get the tape recorder. It will enable
you, in privacy, to hear exactly how you sound. You can learn your
defects and shortcomings, and check the results of the easily followed
suggestions in this section.
In business, a tape recorder for your speech is an indispensable aid to
success. You can use it to review your ideas aloud, to edit and practice
speeches and presentations, to rehearse interviews, to check your speech
and conversation habits in action by recording your voice when you
talk on the telephone.
If you have no recorder, you can learn a little something about your
voice through either of two very simple procedures
1. Say something with voiu" nose almost against the middle of a large,
half-opened magazine. You will hear a considerably magnified sound.
Face a corner of a room, as close as you can sit or stand to where
2.
the walls meet. Cup your hands lightly over vour ears, and speak in
your usual fashion. The sound will bounce back, amplified. And you
may be surprised at what you hear!
What are the speech blemishes you should guard against? How can
you recognize them?
through your nose, you twang. Clasp vour nose between thumb and
forefinger, so as to close your nostrils. Then say: "She sang seventeen
songs and swooned." Your fingers will pick up the vibration caused in
your nose by "m," "n," and "ng." These are the only three legitimate
nasal sounds in our language.
For contrast, hold your nostrils the same way and say, "Woe, oh woe,
oh woe, oh woe!" The sound should come entirely from your mouth. If
you buzz, even on those "o" vowels, you are a nose talker. In the theater,
the actor who wants to play a complaining and disagreeable character
is apt to adopt a nasal speech pattern.
You cannot be lovable at first listen if you talk through vour nose.
You will be whining, lifeless, and negative. Yet your voice has to come
out through your nose if your mouth does not open enough when you
talk. Look into your mirror, and say, "Hi, you handsome, wonderful,
582
BEWARE OF THESE SPEECH BLEMISHES
If, instead, your teeth are fitted together like two rows of corn on a
cob, or if, even worse, vour lips are virtually closed, like those of a
ventriloquist, you almost certainly speak nasally.
Nasalitv mars a woman's image even more than a man's. Have you
ever heard a woman whose nasal twang was alluring? Of course not!
If you want to be as persuasive as advertising tycoon Mary Wells, or
as seductive as Brigitte Bardot, bring your resonance not from your nose
but from your chest.
The tight, clenched jaw was once considered the "society" way of
talking. "Don't move a muscle; don't let animation show in your face;
avoid laughter — it makes wrinkles." We ought to be all for those laugh
lines. If you lack them, perhaps you don't laugh enough; and in our
problem-laden world, we need all the laughter we can get.
do, perhaps because of the million irritants which sting them each day.
If you are a wife with a strident Noice, your husband's teeth are set on
edge every time vou speak. Stridency and shrillness are e\en more dis-
agreeable than nasality. There has been only one politician the — late
Mayor Fiorello LaGuardia of New York —who won and kept the aflFec-
583
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
look taut? Do the veins and cords stand out like ropes? Are the muscles
around your chin tight to the e\'e and the touch? If they are, you prob-
ably sound as strident as a seagull.
Try talking with a ribbon tied snugly around your neck. If you strain
or force your voice, you will feel the ribbon choking you as you ap-
proach the end of each sentence.
For antistridency tips, see pages 607-611.
to project.
Whispering is for telling secrets and making love. What is a whisper?
It is the ghost of a sound —one from which most of the tone and reso-
nance are missing. A breeze whispers until it has something to vibrate
against. As soon as it runs into a leaf it rustles.
To recognize whisper talk, first put a finger against your Adam's apple
and say "Zzzzzzz." You will feel a vibration; "Zzzzzzz" cannot be said
in a true whisper. It is a voiced tone. Now say "Sssssss." Your larynx
does not vibrate. "Sssssss" is the unvoiced, whispered counterpart of
"Zzzzzzz."
Next, your finger still on your larynx, make some such remark in your
normal voice as "I wonder whether I'll feel a vibration." If the telltale
buzz is missing, you are a whisper speaker.
Do not confuse whisper speaking with soft but supported speaking.
Your voice needs support even at its lowest volume. You should have
at your command projection ranging from the very quiet to the very
strong with infinite gradations of volume in between.
If you whisper for effect, as Marilyn Monroe did, and still manage to
make yourself heard, you are not really whispering at all
— you are stage
whispering, an entirely different thing. The stage whisper is supported
by almost as much air pressure as a declamation. In the theater, it can
be heard from the nearest seat in the orchestra to the farthest row in the
balcony. In his army days General James M. Gavin was known for his
low voice, but no one had trouble understanding him because he too
was a stage whisperer.
584
BEWARE OF THESE SPEECH BLEMISHES
talks when he is out socially with his wife; yet he makes himself heard
at board meetings. It seems likely that he is trying, perhaps subcon-
sciously, to tell his wife that she should moderate both the volume and
the quantity of her conversation. If so, she has yet to get the message
which shows that whisper talking is no way to drive home a point.
Women mav think that inaudibility demonstrates their feminine del-
icacy. Actually, they are substituting a meretricious femininity for the
real thing.
A not too distant relative of the whisper speaker is the fader. His
voice comes and goes as if he were a crystal radio in a thunderstorm.
if you are chronically hoarse, though )0u haven't a cold, don't smoke.
585
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
and are told by the doctor that tiicre is nothing organically wrong with
your throat —
then you are not using your breath properly to support
your voice. The result is likely to be a fuzzy, fogg\', grating sound that
irritates the listener's throat as well as your own.
If you need projection practice see pages 602-603.
It's easy to be manlv and still make vour meaning plain, whether in
accents of Mt. Ida, Cathay or Boston, of Des Moines or of the deep-
est South
. . . Just take that towel out of vour mouth.
they have to listen to that endless drip, drip, drip, tick, tick, tick? Even
586
BEWARE OF THESE SPEECH BLEMISHES
the hundred eyes of Argos, the monster of Greek legend, could not ha\'e
stayed open. No variety of pitch. No color. Drab.
To check vour voice for monotony, listen to yourself as you read aloud
from a newspaper. Do \ ou vary the pitch, the pacing, the emphasis ac-
cording to the sense? Is there life, color, melody in your voice? Or does
every sentence sound wooden — like the one before? Do they all end on
the same note?
A tape recorder provides an accurate voice picture. Read into it and
listen to the playback, pretending you are listening to someone on the
radio. Decide whether you really enjoy hearing him speak.
crisis could have arisen before he finished briefing the country on the
current one.
If you talk too fast, you will not be understood — and you may leave
your listeners breathless. If vou talk too slowly, they will stop listening.
Acceptable speaking rates vary between 120 and 160 words a minute.
We read aloud a little faster than we talk. The rate should never be
constant, because thought and emotion should alter pacing. Pauses for
effect and changes of speed provide needed variety.
Read the following quotation aloud. ( It is from a speech b\- the late
587
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
If you did not reach the phrase "Lincoln can nevermore arise" in the
sixty-second period, you were reading too slowly. If you got into the
second paragraph, you were beginning to rat-a-tat-tat. The faster you
go, too, the more surely you will chop-talk, losing smoothness and flow,
sounding like the Morse Code tapped out on a telegraph key or a 33 V3
r.p.m. record played back at a 78 r.p.m. speed.
If, on the other hand, you spoke at less than 110 words a minute, your
best bet is to hire out as a baby sitter. You can count on putting your
listeners to sleep.
Do you know people who say, "You know, you know," until you bite
your lips to keep from screaming? Or, "That is"? Or, "He says, I says"?
There are dozens of kinds of speech tics. One writer monitored a Hu-
bert Humphrey TV interview for a magazine article, and counted
thirty-one "I b'Heve's" in forty minutes. That's a lot of b'lieving.
Meaningless grunts like "uh" and "ur" can recur as remorselessly as a
tic. Bear in mind the warning of the elder Oliver Wendell Holmes:
588
BEWARE OF THESE SPEECH BLEMISHES
ing manner prompted one old codger to walk away from a campaign
speech he was delivering. "I won't hear him," the exasperated lis-
tener explained, "for I don't like a man who makes me believe him
in spite of myself."
If you have a tape recorder, let it run while vou are talking on the
telephone. The playback will reveal whether vou are a padder. Once
you become aware of these tics, you will notice them in yourself and
others. You will realize how irritating and unattractive they are. — —
Have you a speech mustache?
589
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
will do xery well. Where was the tip of your tongue as you spoke? If it
touched your teeth or gum ridges on those "s's" you were lithping,
whether or not xour ear caught the "th."
The sibilant "s" often occurs because of a gap between two front
teeth, either upper or lower. It is like the whisthng sound of a teakettle
announcing that the water has come to a boil, but it brings irritation
instead of pleasure to the listener. Take that kettle off the stove!
A woman asked the butcher for kidleys. After she had repeated the
word several times, he exclaimed, "Oh, you mean kidneys!" To which
she rejoined indignantly: "I said kidleys, diddle I?"
Some New Yorkers turn the soft "ng" in "Long Island" to a hard
one: "Long Guy-land." Below the Mason-Dixon line, quite the other
way, the final "g" may vanish altogether: "Fussin', feudin', fightin'."
The Kennedy brothers, Boston bom and Harvard bred, added the
unwelcome "r" to words ending in vowels ("idear," "lawr," "Indianer,"
"sawr") and dropped the "r" if it was really there ("paypah" for
"paper"). For tips on cleaning up consonants, see page 611.
590
BEWARE OF THESE SPEECH BLEMISHES
The vowels give your speech sheen and richness. Consonants are the
pizzicato piccolo; vowels, the 'cello notes. Reader, bow that 'cello!
On paper, there are only five true vowels a, e, i, o, and u. "Y" some-
times stands in for "i." Orally, however, these turn into several times as
many distinguishable sounds.
These sounds vary from region to region. In New York City, the
sentences "I brought coffee to the office for the boss" is likely to come
out, "Awee braw-wt caw-wffee to the aw-w-ffice for the baw-wss." In
Texas, "vou" becomes "yee-ew"; "word," "ward"; "red hair," "ray-ud
high-ah" —an example of a vowel that has become a diphthong.
Also, one vowel may turn into a quite different one. Some southerners
say what registers on ears as "Thin he lint me the pin" when they mean
"Then he lent me the pen."
In a diphthong, one vowel sound leads into another, with the stress
on the first and just a dash of the second added, like the dash of ver-
mouth in a martini. A pure vowel is iced gin, with no vermouth at all.
When Senator Eugene McCarthy ran for the U.S. Democratic Presi-
dential nomination in 1968, the camera usually focused on his head and
shoulders, showing an expression as tranquil as a saint's. Occasionally
however, the shot took in his whole body, and you would see his hands
591
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
in constant action, worrxincr his ring. The xiewer's attention was drawai
to that gesture and distracted from his message.
A leading businessman arranges for his secretary to be in the audience
whenever he gives a talk. If he gestures too much, she signals him by
putting a pencil behind her ear. You may not be fortunate enough to
have a signaling secretary, but if you watch yourself you can quickly
tell whether attention thieves are robbing \ou of impact when you talk.
Eye-eye-eye!
POINTS TO REMEMBER
Use a tape recorder to identify your speech problems.
If your nose buzzes whenever you talk, you sound nasal.
If your neck grows taut when you speak, you are probably strident.
592
54
How to improve
your voice
In this series of easy exercises, Dorothy Sarnoff shows you
your voice and control your pitch, and how to relieve ten-
had paid more attention to his picture studies of the muscle systems
which cooperate for breathing, I might not have come within an ace of
losing my voice altogether.
My remember
early teachers kept repeating: "Dorothy, you've got to
there body beneath the tone." But I did not understand well enough
is a
what they were saying.
The result was catastrophe. When preparing for my first professional
engagement, 1 continued practicing despite a heavy cold and without —
proper breath support. The cold turned into larvngitis, and before the
end of my first week with the St. Louis Municipal Opera Company, I
lost my voice completely. I was rushed to the Philadelphia office of a
noted throat specialist, who focused his narrow light on my vocal cords
while asking me to say, "Ahhh." I could not. He shook his head. "Your
cords have hemorrhaged, and you have huge nodes besides, young
lady," he said. "We will have to operate. You may never sing again."
I managed to persuade him ( writing out the words ) to let me see if
absolute silence would do the job. At the end of three weeks, the cords
had improved so that he canceled the operation. For another three and
593
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
and a half months I did not utter one sound, communicating by writing
on a pad. At the end of that time, to the doctor's frank astonishment,
my vocal cords were again in mint condition. Several weeks later I was
a finalist in the Metropolitan Opera auditions, and my singing career at
last was under way.
From then on, you can be sure I gave my voice the breath support
and projection all voices require. And though I have sung in hundreds
of smoke-filled supper clubs, I have never had laryngitis since.
required. If all the people on earth were to say the same sentence at
the same time, the total energy created by their breaths would be too
trifling to run a six-cylinder automobile across a street intersection.
When not talking, asleep or awake we breathe through the nose.
When talking, we breathe through the mouth. When we are not talk-
ing, the abdomen area balloons out, unchecked. In speech, it should be
kept tucked in, contracted, ready like a spring to give support.
DON'T BE A BLOWHARD
Proper breath control is not a matter of how much air you take in, but
of how you support it on the way out. A sip of air is all you need to
speak a long phrase or sentence —and, unlike a deep inhalation, it will
not make you tense. Singers have no time during their long musical
phrases to pause for a deep breath. They take repeated "catch" breaths
through the mouth as they sing. These sips are quick and delicate as a
sudden, silent intake of surprise.
594
HOW TO IMPROVE YOUR VOICE
A single exhalation will carry you through eight or more lines of any
jingle that comes to mind. Try this one:
If you are truly interested in improving yours, you too should under-
stand the principles behind breathing^, resonating, and articulating —
the three systems that make up speech.
So bear ^^dth me, before we begin corrective measures for specific
speech blemishes, while I summarize for you:
When \ou refer to someone's conversation as a lot of hot air, you prob-
ably have in mind the burden of the remarks rather than the quality of
the voice. Yet it is true that voice is simplv air —resonated, amplified,
shifted in pitch, and finally shaped into the sounds we call words. An
extraordinary number of organs and muscles are involved.
595
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
You could not utter an intelligible word mthout the active or passive
cooperation of your diaphragm, chest muscles, lungs, wdndpipe, voice
box, throat, nasal passages, sinuses, mouth, and jaw.
Your diaphragm sets the whole operation in motion. It is an almost
horizontal muscle, a little lower behind than before, that lies under your
lungs like a bedboard under a mattress, separating your chest cavity
from that of your abdomen. You have hiccups because your diaphragm
has gone into spasmodic contractions. You cannot see it; you cannot
even feel it; but it is working away morning, noon, and night, like the
596
HOW TO IMPROVE YOUR VOICE
moving air. This vibration is what registers on your ear as sound. The
faster your vocal cords vibrate, the higher is the pitch of your voice.
When a boy's voice changes at about the age of fifteen, the reason is
that his vocal cords have lengthened, dropping his register a full octave.
A girl's vocal cords lengthen at the same age, but so slightly that the
drop in her register is all but imperceptible. Mr. Jones's voice is deeper
than Mrs. Jones's because his vocal cords are about a third longer
six-tenths of an inch as compared with less than four-and-a-half -tenths
of an inch. The longer the cords, the slower the vibration and, therefore,
the lower the tone.
The range of your voice is probably less than two octaves. A profes-
sional singer must be able to span a full two octaves, and many achieve
three. There is a case on record of a singer with the incredible span of
five octaves.
RESONANCE BEGINS
Before the air even leaves your windpipe, it has begvm to resonate,
using your chest as a sounding board. Resonance is a reverberation that
follows the principal tone in a series of almost instant echoes. It can
occur only in an enclosed space. The vibrations of violin strings, for
instance, reverberate in the violin box, gaining richness and fullness
with each bounce. The amplifiers of your hi-fi set work the same way.
After the vibrations of your voice box determine the pitch, resonance
determines the quality of the tone. If your primary resonance is in your
nose, you will twang. If you resonate from the chest, you will command
more respectful attention.
On its way to utterance, the current of air that carries the sound of
597
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
your voice passes through a whole series of ampHfiers: the throat, the
nose, the sinus cavities. Among them, they raise the level of audibility
by as much as tv\'enty times.
ARTICULATION
On its upward passage the current of air has become sound. It has ac-
quired pitch from your vocal cords, and tone from your resonators. Its
audibility has been multiplied manvfold. Its qualitv as sound has been
determined. The sound mav be as pure as a church bell, or as ear-
sounds are there, or are at least foreshadowed, but your mouth still has
to shape them and add the consonants and the punctuation.
What a lively time it has doing that! Everything in and around your
mouth that can move goes into action. Whatever cannot move back-
stops the rest. Your tongue, lips, teeth, cheeks, palate —even the uvula
that hangs like a tiny fleshy tongue above the entrance to your throat
all go after that current of air like a pack of hounds after a rabbit.
They tear it to pieces — and then put it together again. They chop, butt,
slice, add, modify, enlarge, narrow, lengthen. Your tongue darts, fur-
rows, spreads, curls, pushes, pulls. Your lips wriggle, squeeze, pout,
stretch, relax.
Consider for a moment the versatility of your tongue. Say "ah," and
it lies limp as a pancake. Say "a" as in cat, and it humps its back. Say
"oh," and it furrows. Say "oo," and it furrows even more. All the while
it is jumping up, down, and around like a madman. For a "t," its tip
touches the upper gum ridge with feathery lightness; for a trilled "r,"
its side touches your side teeth, while its tip rustles like a flag in a
breeze. For some sounds, such as "ee," your tongue widens; for others,
such as "ss," it narrows and retreats. And all this is just the forepart,
which you can see easily with the help of your mirror. If you want to
know what happens farther back, I believe the American Telephone
and Telegraph Company has a film that can show you all you want to
know. Call their public relations department.
Your lips are almost as lively. Say "p" (the sound, not the letter), and
they pop. Say "mmm"; they automatically press together, so that the
sound comes out your nose. Say "f" or "v," and your upper teeth almost
bite your lower lip.
598
HOW TO IMPROVE YOUR VOICE
puts the muscles of vour vital center in the best possible position to pro-
vide the steady exhalation of air that you need to support an attractive
voice. So from now on vou are to hold your head a little higher and
your back a little straighter. That is Executive Posture. It will help
your soul as well as vour voice. "Grief," Shakespeare said, "is proud,
and makes his owner stoop." If vou refuse to stoop, vou will be one up
on grief.
Place your feet squarelv on the floor. Never cross your legs.
To help the bellows of your abdomen, touch the back of your chair
599
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
with your lower (but not your upper) spine, almost pushing against
it. Feel that vital center tighten! No more flab!
When a sizable voice thrust is needed, some people modify the last
rule. I once knew a choir leader who made all his singers sit on the
forward side of a tape which marked off the eight front inches of the
chair. He said that sitting on the chair edge while maintaining the "L"
position helped them to cannonade the audience with their voices; if
he let them sit back, they might relax so much that the cannon would
turn into a popgun.
The rules of posture, hke the rules for proper breathing that follow,
can sometimes be broken without penalty — if you master the rules first.
Having heard that Maria Jeritza sang the aria from Tosca King flat on
her stomach, I decided to sing the aria from Pagliacci lying flat on my
back. It worked —but onlv because I had learned how to use my sup-
port muscles. In a lying posture, these muscles had to work many times
as hard.
So sometimes one can get away with breaking a rule. But the moral
remains: never break a rule unless you have mastered it. If you do
break it, try to break it with style.
of your spine touching the back of the chair, the hand palm of your
pressing flat on the area about three inches above your navel and at
the bottom of your rib cage. Now stand up. Sit down. Go through the
same performance again. And again. And again. Each time, you will
feel the muscles under your hand tighten. Doctors call the vital center
600
HOW TO IMPROVE YOUR VOICE
1. Put your palms against a wall, standing one leg in advance of the
other as if you were fencing, and try to push the wall down on a slow
2. Clench one hand into a fist. Pretend it is a balloon, and try to blow
it up on a single slow thin thread of exhalation. Keep the other hand
pressed against your upper abdominal muscles, spanning the area where
the rib cage separates. Feel them harden and contract as you blow,
pulling in toward your back, flattening out your middle.
look younger, more alert, more positive, more slender. If you are a
man, this posture can let you wear your belt two inches tighter.
4. Pretend to push a grand piano — to pull a full bucket from a well
— to haul up an anchor —to return a tennis serve backhand — to throw
a knockout punch. Exhale slowly and steadily with each action, and
notice once more the effect on your girdle of breath support.
601
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
602
HOW TO IMPROVE YOUR VOICE
Once more, monitor the bottom of your rib cage with your other
hand, and feel the contraction there.- This is how your vital center
should feel when you speak on the telephone or to someone less than
ten feet away.
Next, hold your finger at a distance of about eighteen inches, and
aim the same delicate stream of air at it. You will find the muscle ten-
sion going lower and the support deepening, as it would if you were
speaking to someone fifteen or more feet away.
The farther off vour finger is, the deeper the support must go to pro-
ject your breath. To make the candle flicker at arm's length, you use
muscles in your groin, your thigh, your buttocks, behind your knees,
perhaps even at the back of your calves. They are all backing up your
diaphragm to provide that extra projection.
4. Big bass drum. Locate your dynamic center once more by cough-
ing or laughing, with your hand at the lower edge of your rib cage.
Now start to count aloud, preceding each number by a light grunt:
"Uh-one! Uh-tivo! Uh-three!" Emphasize the numbers, not the grunts.
Don't separate the "uh" from the "one"; connect them. With no break
in your breath, dig into each number, trying to boom like a big bass
drum struck b\- a drumstick. You will find your breath support seems to
EXTRA DIVIDENDS
When you are out for a walk, see how far you can go on a single slow
exhalation. A third of a block? A half? I once recommended this to an
Irish nun, who practiced it until she could walk a whole short cit)'
603
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
ing inter\iew. It can do much more than that. It can hold down panic
and e\'en reduce pain. Pregnant women practice it to help them in nat-
ural childbirth.
A beautiful Swedish woman, whom I had long admired for her radi-
ant complexion and unfailing energy, one day confided the secret of
her glow to me. "I take a catch-breath," she said, "and pop into a tub
of icy water. Then I count aloud at least to sixty on a single exhalation,
take another catch-breath, and repeat. That is enough. I jump out, and
miraculously I am not shi\ering but tingling and in\agorated."
I have tried it —and it is a better pickup than a martini. ( But this is
Your voice can tell the best or the worst of lies about vou. It can say
i
"vigorous" when you are tired. It can say "young" when you are over
seventy. But watch out if it says "fatigued" when you are rested;
"weak" when you are strong; "frustrated" when you are fulfilled; "old"
and vigor, first follow the hints for breathing on the previous pages.
Next, do the following —with energy and thrust:
Say each of the verbs below twice — quietly for the lower-case ver-
sion in the left-hand column, and emphaticallv for the capitalized ver-
sion at the right. The lower-case words should be spoken as if to some-
604
HOW TO IMPROVE YOUR VOICE
about twenty-five feet. Pretend all the while that you are on a balcony
projecting doivn to the other end of the room. This will help you to
resist the temptation to raise your pitch. Each time you say a word,
stay two beats on the vowel of the accented syllable: ru-un, pu-ush.
run
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
Breathe this way seven or eight times, swallow, and repeat the process
Then rest, and
ten times over. start again an hour later, if necessary.
If there is really something the matter with your throat, though, you
don't need a speech teacher —you need a throat specialist. If you have
acute laryngitis, he will tell you to stop talking. And Dr. Max Som, a
distinguished throat specialist, advises: "For laryngitis it is not enough
just to stop talking. You should not whisper either." Whispering with-
out breath support —and that is the usual kind — can onlv add to your
voice strain.
He adds one more thing: Whatever the temptation, don't smoke.
606
HOW TO IMPROVE YOUR VOICE
The energy \'0u put under your voice will put energy into you.
Don't yield to the contagion of loud voices at social gatherings, dis-
How many Americans talk through their noses? The census does not
ask that question; but if they were to organize a third party, I suspect
they could cast enough votes to throw the next Presidential election
into the House of Representatives.
And if all the strident speakers in the countr\ joined up too, their
candidate would probably win the election.
To correct both nasality and stridencv, and to arrive at the \elvet
that way, instead of being shunted into the passageway that makes it
607
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
By followdng these suggestions, you can relax the entire head and
neck and feel better all over.
1. The plopper
Let your head dangle forward and hang there, eyes closed, for six
slow counts.
Again counting slowh- to six, raise vour head from its drooping posi-
tion until your eyes, gradually opening, see the ceiling. You should feel
With your head again dangling, let your jaw hang loose, as if it were
about to fall off. Roll your head slowly to one side; then back and up;
then to the other side; then forward again.
To know how far your jaw can relax, first put your fingertips in front
of your ears, at the spot where your lower and upper jaw are hinged
together. With \'our mouth closed, the place is a slight bump. As you
drop your jaw, the bump will go away and be replaced by a cavity.
Watch yourself in the mirror. Once properly relaxed, your lower jaw
will drop behind the upper one. Don't worry about that row of double
chins; they will disappear when these maneuvers are over.
Place your index finger against your chin and manipulate your lower
jaw until it stops fighting you and swings free. It should become even-
tually as loose as Charley McCarthy's. You will feel like a ventrilo-
quist's dumni)' — and you will enjoy it. ( Before, with jaws clenched and
lips drawn, you were more like the ventriloquist.
3. Slower downer
Drop your jaw and let your tongue hang limply over your lower teeth
and lip. Breathe more and more sleepily, as if you were beginning to
4. The groaner
Tuck your tongue between \'our lower lip and vour teeth, relaxed
and tliick. Now groan "Aaaaah," dragging out the sound and directing
608
HOW TO IMPROVE YOUR VOICE
it at the point where your tongue and lip meet. You will have the sen-
sation that the "Aaaaah" is actually outside your —
mouth which is ex-
actly where it should be.
TONGUE TALK
If I ask you to let your head sag on your neck, you will have no trouble
doing it. But can you relax your tongue? Go over to the mirror and
check: can you let it go limp, completelv without tension, resting
sleepilv in the nest of the floor of the mouth? Most people cannot. It
will probably hump up, it will furrow, it will pull back, it will stretch
la," as if you were a droohng baby. Your tension will soon drool away.
THE THROAT
Yawning is a number one relaxer. Can you yawn at will? Here is a
way to:
1. With eyes gently closed, bring your lips together lightly.
609
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
the same time, put your other hand flat on your chest, right under your
collarbone, and feel the vibrations there. There is no nasality now —no
clenched jaw — no tight flat mouth.
THE MOUTH
Make a "V for Victory" frame of the index and center fingers of one
hand, putting the tops of the fingers lightly at the corners of your
mouth. The cleft or point of your chin should be directly above the
bottom of the "V." If, as you speak, \our mouth moves out to wdden the
top of the "V," you are undoubtedlv a nasal talker.
Say "Baa baa, black sheep, have you any wool? Yes, sir, yes, sir, three
bags One for the master, and one for the dame, and one for
full. the lit-
tle boy who lives down the lane." Watch yourself in the mirror.
1. Knuckle down
Put the knuckle of your index or middle finger between your teeth
and try to read, aloud, the Lord's Prayer, the Gettysburg Address, or
any other familiar passage. The sound will be almost unintelligible.
Then remove the knuckle and repeat the same words, still opening
your mouth widely to let the sound pass through unimpeded.
2. Megaphone
Use your lips as if they were a megaphone. "W" makes a wonderful
megaphone, blowing away nasality and mumbling like a sea wind
blowing away a fog. Here are some sentences to practice on:
To remove the sound from your nose when you talk, memorize one of
610
HOW TO IMPROVE YOUR VOICE
these sentences and repeat it aloud until you can zip through it the way
in vour schooldays vou zipped through "Peter Piper picked a peck of
pickled peppers."
MUMBLERS
The above alliterative sentences also help mumblers. The "w's" bring
your lips alive. Men's lips tend, with no apparent reason, to be lazier
than women's. Notice on your tele\ision set how often men speak with
a literal "stiff upper lip." (And how do you suppose that phrase ever
came to mean not letting events get you down?) They often look as if
thev had just shaved off their mustaches, and their upper lips had not
due. Don't chop! Glide from one svllable into the next. Make full use
of your vital center on the accented syllable. Give the accented sylla-
bles extra physical impetus
administration
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
not the office bo\\ In tliree sessions he lowered his pitch to an attractive
level and left pinched, nasal resonance behind.
A high-pitched voice is a serious handicap for a businessman not only
because it irritates but because it lacks authority. In a woman it sounds
like chalk squeaking on a blackboard.
An airline asked me to help one of its Spanish-speaking stewardesses,
a candidate in a beauty contest. Beauty of form and figure was not the
only criterion in the competition; the contestants were judged also ac-
cording to their speech, and this poor girl whisper-talked and whined.
She also inflected upward at the end of every sentence like a cat dis-
cussing its love affairs on a back fence. A few lessons brought her pitch
down four tones, and gave her the velvet chest-tone that her lovely fig-
ure deserved. She was one of the runners-up in the contest not just be-
cause of her classic CastiHan beauty, but because of her voice. My
tapesshow that only five of the eighty-seven contestants had voices to
match tlieir looks.
Think of how a cow moos; contrast the sound with the bleat of a billy
goat. The moo is low, the bleat is high. I do not ask you to sound like
a cow, but for contented listeners it is better to have the pitch of a cow
than a goat.
How do we lower the voice? Low pitch and low resonance usually
go hand in hand.
BE A LOW PITCHER
To find out how low your potential pitch may be, put your hand flat on
your chest right under the collarbone and groan or say "Aaaaah," as if
for a doctor. Now, as if you were going down cellar steps one at a time,
go down the steps of your available pitches till you hit bottom. Be
aware of the vibrations in your chest as your voice descends.
Next, with your hand still on your chest, say "Z don't think it is going
to snow." Again, go down step by step, lowering the pitch each time till
612
HOW TO IMPROVE YOUR VOICE
To help make this low pitch part of your regular vocal equipment:
1. Be a floor talker
Sitting in a chair, place your feet squarely on the floor, twelve inches
book between your heels. Bend over from your waist to-
apart. Set a
ward the book, vour head dangling, vour arms hanging loose. Your
fingers should be Hke limp tassels touching the floor. Relax completely.
Now begin reading, using your girdle of breath support. Your speech
will automatically resonate in your chest. Your pitch will be lower. Lis-
ten carefulK' to this sound — it is the one you want. Tlien straighten up,
trying to retain the voice quality you had in the dangling position. You
are not supposed to read for interpretation but purely for voice quality.
Standing chest up, stomach in, describe full rich vocal circles on
with unbroken supported sound, while you make circles with your hand
for your eye to see. As each sound hits the bottom of its circle, give it re-
newed energy by pulling in your vital center. You should remind your-
self of a broken record when the needle gets stuck in the groove. The
center. Dig do\vTi, down, down as though you were dredging for a new
low in voice range. Scoop up your voice from the bottom of the bay
haul the bucket up from the bottom of the well.
It is also a good idea to read aloud, with your hand on your chest to
remind you to use chest resonance. Never let up at the
yourself inflect
end of a sentence. It tends to make your overall speech sound higher
and gives you the tentative sound of uncertainty instead of the positive
613
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
POINTS TO REMEMBER
Proper breath support is the foundation of a good voice.
The way you exhale is what counts.
Project your voice, don't shout.
Don't let your \'oice sound older than you are.
Use some of the "relaxers" in this chapter every day to relieve daily
tensions. Use them to relax your head — jaw—throat— neck.
Make your lips lively, not lazy.
Be a low pitcher.
Be a smooth talker.
614
55
Your child
talks like you
Learning to speak properly is one of the greatest steps in a
gans — tongue, teeth, lips, gums, larynx, and others. His speech wnW also
be influenced simply by his innate tempo for maturing.
You will know that he has a good working voice if with it he can
easilv cairy on the business of normal daily living, if he can easilybe
heard and his voice is usually free of either huskiness or shrillness, if he
does not speak through his nose.
To make himself heard Johnny must have carrying power, which
means he must make good use of volume. Remember that volume in a
human voice is very similar to volume in your radio. Turn your radio's
volume up or down and you get more or less sound. So, too, should
Johnny learn to give more emphasis to important ideas than to unim-
portant ones. His voice should be flexible enough to express the differ-
ences he has learned to sense.
615
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
In the beginning you are the child's world; so it is you who must fash-
ion the child's speech.
You fashion it by what you do and by what you don't do, and by
what you are.
Johnny will speak earher and better —better all his life — if vou will
do certain things.
1 Stimulate him to talk from the very beginning of his life. ( But only
when he is in the mood for such stimulation!
serve their old purpose. Give him what he wants only after he has asked
for it — no matter how clumsy the asking may be. And don't anticipate
616
YOUR CHILD TALKS LIKE YOU
his wishes. If he gets what he wants without asking, he may not bother
to ask.
3. Fill his world with meaning. To do this, give him many opportu-
nities to see the connection betAveen a thing or an experience and the
word for that thing or that experience.
4. Fill his world with interest, excitement, vitaHty. Make his environ-
ment an alive one by talking to him from his very first days. Sounds and
words are a form of play, one of the most exciting games of childhood.
As soon as your child can appreciate this fact he will readily enter into
the spirit of sound plav to which vou ha\e introduced him.
6. You must let Johnny know that you love him. His good speech
thrives on this expression of your love. Mothers start influencing the
child's speech from the day he or she is born. Mother's arms, the tone
of her voice, the aura of warmth that she creates these affect the way —
the child breathes and eats. They also affect the way he makes sounds
and learns to speak.
stance, each of whom gets only half of his mother's attention, are prac-
tically always late in speaking. And once they begin, they talk imper-
fectly for a long time.
For the opposite reason, the only child is very frequently precocious
in speech development —he receives love and attention to his heart's
and his speech's content. He not only enjoys more of his mother's un-
divided attention when he is an infant, but he is spared having this at-
617
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
child in every phase of his development. But nowhere will the effects
be as great and as apparent as in the child's speech.
Speech thri\ es when the child feels loved.
The first approach to your child's future speech, then, is via your
owai present speech.
Be honest with yourself —does the flatness of your voice reflect a list-
less attitude toward Hfe? Is the shrillness caused by taut nerves? Does
the huskiness or nasalitv filter out the vitaHty of vour words? Or is
your voice saccharine sweet, so that what you say is drowned in a pro-
fusion of syrupy nothings?
Shrillness, for instance, is a major vocal indiscretion of American
mothers. Shrill voices grow out of taut nerves, and shrill-voiced women
are likely to give their children nervous speech patterns reflecting ner-
vous personahties.
Other women whine and, without meaning to, always seem to be
complaining. One son of such a mother, four-year-old Tommy, said,
618
YOUR CHILD TALKS LIKE YOU
down in the mouth." Down is exactK' where your speech goes when
you are not up to par.
Remember that Johnny's emotions as well as his speech are affected
by the speech and voices around him.
"All right," you say. "I admit it. My diction is dreadful, my \oice ter-
rible. I never thought much about these things. It is too late to start
now. Certainly too late to have any effect on my child."
tempt to impro\'e your diction. You can attempt to give color to a flat
voice, to tone down a shrill one. Nor from the point of view of Johnny's
speech is this a waste of time, for vou can destroy his chance for good
speech by speaking badlv. Remember, he will reproduce your vocal de-
fects as surelv as your vocal virtues.
Dr. Robert Harrington, head of the Department of Speech Therapy
at Los Angeles Orthopedic Hospital, finds that 80 percent of all speech
defects are wholly unrelated to any organic causes. What this means is
that most speech defects are the result of imitation, pure and not so
An African chieftain flew to London for a visit and was met at the
airport by newsmen. "Good morning, Chief," one said. "Did you
have a comfortable flight?"
"Tell me. Chief," inquired the baffled reporter, "where did you
learn to speak such flawless English?"
After the now standard honk, oink, screech, whistle and z-z-z-z,
the chief said, "Short-wave radio." — Terry Harman
619
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
simple. And because these defects are the result of imitation, they can
be remedied by the simple expedient of pro\'iding good models.
This power of imitation is very strong. It is so strong that, though
only one-fifth of all speech defects have organic causes, the total
number of people handicapped by speech defects is greater than the
number of deaf, blind, crippled, and feebleminded put together.
"raid," for instance), and substandard usages — in fact, the whole rep-
ertoire of distorted sounds. If a hissing smars the pleasantness of your
speech in the same way that a hissing radiator destroys the calm of a
room, then your child is likely to hiss his .s's, too. And if you talk baby
talk to him, he is almost certain to baby-talk back. You should never
reproduce the baby's words with their inaccuracies and distortions. To
do so only reinforces the baby's errors and prolongs them. Baby talk
serves one pui-pose only —and that a bad one— it tongue-ties Johnny to
your apron strings.
in him a play attitude toward language and also make him feel that
620
YOUR CHILD TALKS LIKE YOU
tate pleasant voices without even being aware that you are doing so.
In large measure the speech your child develops during his first five
years is the speech he will use as an adult. It is, at least, the bedrock of
that speech. Whatever superstructure is erected upon the bedrock will
be the more sturdy if the bedrock itself is firm.
So subtle is this process of imitation that your child will subtly reflect
the changing moods that your voice conveys. He will, of course, reflect
stances can be quite simple. When, for example, Mrs. Lewis yelled at
three-year-old Arnold he yelled back at her, reproducing her angry
tone exactly. Hearing her own voice echoed through her child's \'oice,
Mrs. Lewis decided to change her tune. One day, when Arnold moved
uncomfortably close to a hot plate, she restrained her instinctive, angry,
"Arnold, get away. You'll burn yourself." Instead, she removed him
bodily, while saying very calmly, "We don't go near a hot plate." On
similar occasions later she always controlled herself, always kept her
voice calm. The day came when Arnold surprised his mother by mim-
icking her new tone. He was about to look for a ball that had rolled un-
der a radiator. But he stopped short suddenly. "We don't go near hot
radiators," he said in the same calm tone his mother had used in con-
nection with the hot plate. The point had struck home. And so had the
tone of voice.
But Johnny may find talking like you, his parents, more difficult than
will your girl baby. It is easier for infant girls than for bo\'s to mimic
621
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
It is easy to see why this is so. Because speech is so imitative the child
suits his language to the occasion and tends to speak hke the person
with whom he is talking. This habit is so fixed that by the time he is
A child whose parents are skilled in the use of language, have large
vocabularies, and talk in well-constructed sentences usually follows
suit. All else being equal, he speaks his
first word earlier than the child
622
YOUR CHILD TALKS LIKE YOU
only asks questions earlier but he asks (juestions that are more probing.
He has still another advantage — his larger vocabulary has more
varied parts of speech. The first part of speech all children acquire is
the noun. He adds other parts sooner than other children, who seem to
cling to nouns and use a larger percentage of them throughout their
childhood.
How important it is for Johnnv to get a firm grip on vocabulary from
the beginning cannot be stressed too strongly. But remember that
understanding comes before words, so be patient with him in his strug-
gle to find the right word. Watch. Wait. And above all listen carefully.
This confidence will help him in playing with other children and in
making sense in his dealing with adults. And when finally he takes his
using them will have a great deal to do with the kind of adjustment he
makes. Words properlv understood and easilv used will help him to do
better work in school and to be a happier child. "Give me the right
word," wrote Joseph Conrad, "and I will move the world."
Give Johnny the right word and he not only will move his little world
but will eventuallv move into the big world with greater poise, with
greater peace of mind, for everybody knows that the man or woman
who uses the exact word the occasion demands is in an advantageous
position. Words are part of the strategy of living, part of the equipment
we must give Johnny.
But suppose you are not satisfied with your own \'ocabulary. Suppose
these remarks have aroused a few fears whether, in this respect, you
are able to do what's best for Johnny. Put these fears to rest. You don't
have to be a walking dictionary to gi\'e Johnny a firm grasp of words.
You do, however, have to be interested in words. And you do have to use
words correctly, even though your vocabulary ma\ not be a large one.
623
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
Make situations and take advantage of situations that will help him
learn the meanings of words. If at any time you told him to keep away
from the radiator because it was hot, he may have gotten it into his head
that the word "hot" means anything to be avoided. One day you may
find him sitting on a chair a stretcher of which has worked itself loose.
When you tell him to get off the chair, he may say "hot." Touch the
loose stretcher and say "loose." Repeat the word several times, each
time touching the loose stretcher. Then touch the radiator lightly and,
as you withdraw your fingers, say "hot." Repeat this, too, several times.
The distinction between "hot" and "loose" should gradually dawn on
Johnny, particularly if you touch other hot — not too hot— and loose ob-
jects, each time saying the proper word.
It is important that, from the very beginning, Johnny should learn to
use the exact word to suit the occasion or situation —making allowance,
of course, for Johnny's mental ability at a particular phase of his devel-
opment. Don't let him learn words in a hit-or-miss sort of way. Instead,
like the considerate driver, stop, look, and take time. And remember
always Johnny uses one word for many meanings. Slowly
that, at first,
help him find the one word for what he means. Bring him to the point
at which he shows no more hesitation in choosing the right word when
speaking than in deciding which foot to use next when walking.
Read aloud to Johnny all through these first five years. Even during
his first year there are picture books planned for his level. By reading
aloud you create a mood for Johnny. Growing accustomed to the sound
of a word him confidence in using it. And, as he grows
will later give
older, this reading will help him to associate the word with its sound
and with a context of words and ideas.
Also play phonograph records for Johnny. This is probably the most
helpful listening you can give him. You can play the records over and
624
YOUR CHILD TALKS LIKE YOU
over again and you can be very selective. The familiarity trains Johnny
to recognize sounds.
Radio and television, used wdsely, can also be instructive. All of these
media will strengthen his interest in words — in their sound, their
meaning, and their importance in his life.
Whether or not you help Johnny to learn to talk, he will learn to talk.
But the learning will be haphazard. When you do teach him, his de-
speech. You should teach him. But the teaching must be effortless, a
words than others. And nobody dare single out a child and call him un-
intelligent merely because at one, or at two, or even at three he is not
talking.
This nontalking child may be just as bright as the child who vocally
seems a shining star. There may be some physical or emotional reason
for his making haste slowly. Or he may be one of those who are highly
intelligent but whose intelligence rigorously resists verbal expression.
Such children will naturally respond with less enthusiasm to your efforts
to teach them than will children who have an innate flair for speaking.
grow. All other abihties depend on this one. That is why you must know
what can and cannot reasonably be expected of him as he moves from
the inarticulateness of birth to the relative fluency of his fifth birthday.
625
56
That bugaboo:
correct pronunciation
626
THAT BUGABOO: CORRECT PRONUNCIATION
627
57
Three pronunciation
pitfalls
You should learn to recognize and avoid the three main pro-
tion that is too careful. Studying the lists and examples and
The skillful speaker places his listeners under the spell of his ideas
he does not permit his pronunciation to break that spell. He never pro-
nounces a word in a way that is alien to the habits of his listeners, for
he knows that such a pronunciation breaks the spell of his thoughts by
distracting the minds of his listeners from the substance of his words to
their form. By making your pronunciation conform as nearlv as you can
to the current standard of educated speech, you avoid drawing attention
to your pronunciation. You escape the danger that the form of your
words is detracting from their substance.
Unfortunately, bad pronunciation habits slip easily into everyone's
speech, so it's essential to be constantly on the alert for them. There
628
THREE PRONUNCIATION PITFALLS
Careless pronunciation
Two related habits are the dropping of the -g in words ending in -ing
{talkin, workin, hojrin, etc.) and, on the other extreme, clicking the
final -g in these words. The ending -ing is one of the more difficult
sounds in the English language; -ing and th are a pair of sounds never
conquered by many people learning English as a foreign language.
To determine how well you pronounce -ing, read these words aloud:
If the final syllable in these words, as you say them, is identical with the
word in, or if you detect a sharp, clear, harsh g sound at the end, you
629
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
630
THREE PRONUNCIATION PITFALLS
dience if you wish to gain power with words. So conspicuous are the
wrong pronunciations of the eighteen words listed above that they force
your listeners to focus their minds on the form of your speech, rather
than on its substance. Thev pc^rmit your audience, if it is the average
alert audience, to feel a momentary superiority over you. Nothing, as
you know, so delights a listener as secretly to feel that he is superior to
the person speaking; and similarly, nothing so robs your speech of
power and persuasiveness as this feeling in the minds of your listeners.
Many people feel that a very definite and valuable kind of social pres-
tige attaches to the pronunciation eyether (either). While this form is
in the rest of the country it runs the risk of sounding stagy. Many peo-
ple, it is true, have been brought up on eyether and say it as naturally
very little thought. When pronounced eether and neether, nobody will
notice them. \\'hen pronounced eyether and neyether, it is certain they
will be noticed and there is a chance that they will cause irritation.
631
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
Seven other words belong in the same category as either and neither.
These, too, can be pronounced in two ways
Word
THREE PRONUNCIATION PITFALLS
ness robs speech of power. One should be word conscious, yes, but not
self-conscious when using words. Word-consciousness makes for con-
fidence in speaking, but self-consciousness, in speech as in anything
else, tends to undermine confidence.
Meticulousness is manifested in some pronunciations of:
1. The letter u
2. The vowels in unemphasized syllables
3. The letter t in medial or final position
THE LETTER U
According to some speech manuals, the correct way to pronounce dur-
ing is DYOO-ring. By the same new should be NYOO, tune
criterion,
very few good speakers pronounce the letter u in the manner indicated.
Effective pronunciation is inconspicuous pronunciation. Except in the
locahties noted, this type of pronunciation is so rare that it shouts its
On the other hand, if you have always pronounced tube and tune as
near rhymes with boob and boon, avoid schooling yourself in the metic-
ulous pronunciation. What you are now in the habit of doing conforms
to the accepted standards of present-day American pronunciation.
633
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
You can appreciate how diflFerent the of of each sentence sounds when
it is spoken.
Meticulous pronunciation erroneously gives equal prominence to all
tence lends culture, tone, and impressiveness to their speech; quite the
contrary, it makes their speech pedantic, unpleasant, and almost mean-
ingless.
A great many English sounds are pronounced one way when they are
used alone or in a stressed position, and in different ways when com-
bined with other words in a sentence or when used in unstressed posi-
tions. If the first, strong, pronunciation is used in place of the second,
weak, it sounds very artificial and pedantic and is often called over-
correct or affected.
VORD
THREE PRONUNCIATION PITFALLS
In the following list the first illustration is of the strong form and the
second is of the weak form.
you The message was for you. Why do you think so?
The above list is by no means complete, but it serves to make clear
the fact that for many words we cannot insist on a uniform pronuncia-
tion in all positions.
In American speech the fs in these three words are not identical. Only
the word contains t in its pure fonn. In better, the t begins to ap-
first
proximate a d sound, faintly. The very tip of the tongue only is used.
In wet, the tongue is in the same position as in tiny but considerably
less breath is used.
Meticulous speakers make the mistake of pronouncing medial t (as
in better, icriter, hitting^ etc. ) and final t with the tongue in the same
position and with the same amount of breath required for initial t {tiny,
635
58
Recent trends
in American speech
habits come in and out of fashion. The lists that follow will
words like calm and what. This would have made them rhyme with
cam and hat — hardly acceptable today. Franklin also defended the
pronunciation of words like get, chest and general with a short i sound
instead of an e —resulting in git, chist, and gineral. And Noah Webster,
whose spelling book was the most widely distributed work on language
in North America for over a century, vigorously advocated the pro-
nunciation of deaf as deef. Webster was also responsible for changing
the old pronunciation of lieutemmt from leftenant (still used in Eng-
land) to looteimnt.
This flexibility of speech patterns is now widely recognized, and you
will undoubtedly find variations from the rules set forth in the lists that
follow. But they do .show how these words are pronounced by most
careful speakers in North America today.
636
RECENT TRENDS IN AMERICAN SPEECH
aviator AY'-vee-ay-tar
radiator RAY'-dee-ay-t3r
desideratum cb-sid-a-RAY'-tam
verbatim var-BAY'-tam
ultimatum ul-t3-MAY'-t9m
am'icable for'midable
hos'pitable rev'ocable
lam'entable preferable
ex'plicable rep'arable
ap'plicable rep'utable
com'parable
inhos'pitable irrev'ocable
inex'plicable irrep'arable
inap'plicable disrep'utable
incom'parable
to pronounce the suffix -He in such a way that it almost rhymes with
hill, but with the vowel sound less protracted, i.e., -a/. The British, on
637
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
the Other hand, tend to rhyme the ending wdth mile. Thus, for fertile,
PRONUNCIATION PUZZLERS
Ad\'Ertisement As many people say ad-v3r-TIZE'-m9nt as ad-
Bona fide Join the common people and say BO'-na fide; the
Latin scholars who add the extra syllable (BO'-na FY'-dee) sound
pedantic.
Clique KLEEK is the pronunciation of choice, though CLIK is
DY'-van.
Fiancee Spelled with two e's, it's a woman, and pronounced
fee-ahn-SAY'; with one e {fiance) a man, and pronounced exactly
the same.
Potpourri This import keeps its French flavor: po'-poo-REE'.
Remonstrate ra-MON'-strayt, even though demonstrate is
DEM'-3n-strayt.
Ribald RIB'-ald, rhyming with the imaginary word dibbled.
Words ending in -age: In many words the ending -age contains the same
consonant sound represented by the letter s in pleasure. The phonetic
symbol generally used to represent this sound is zh.
SoftC (S)
59
Our wonderful,
erratic language
In most languages, pronunciation follows certain predict-
Tough, through, though, cougli, bough all end in -ough. In each case
this combination of letters has a different pronunciation.
Consider how perplexed a foreigner learning English would be by
pairs like these:
pronunciation. Consider:
641
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
Sotto voce, from the Italian, has not been Anglicized (SOT'-to vaxv'-
chay); viva voce, from the Latin, has been (VT'-v3 v5-see).
Weltschmerz and wanderlust are both from the German. The former
is still Teutonic in sound ( VELT'-shmairts ) the latter is Anglicized
;
(WAHN'-dar-lust).
642
OUR WONDERFUL, ERRATIC LANGUAGE
than hinted at. But let us see whether we can't get a httle order out of
suggest
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
AxGLicrzED {-et)
OUR WONDERFUL, ERRATIC LANGUAGE
etc. What the foreigner does is use it indiscriminately and always, even
in words like singer and along and winging.
The natixe American does not need rules to know when to click and
when not to. And, ironically, since no rules are necessary, a perfectly
fine rule, with onlv four exceptions, exists. Learn it if vou're curious, or
if vou think you sometimes have difRcult\' with your ng's:
but when ng occurs in the body of a word, drop all the letters following
it. If a real word is then left, do not click.
And here are the exceptions. These words are to be clicked, though they
\iolate the rule.
645
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
nounced -aijt.
graduate graduate
aggregate aggregate
alternate alternate
animate animate
appropriate appropriate
approximate approximate
articulate articulate
associate associate
aspirate aspirate
pronounced -ayt.
candidate potentate
concentrate prostrate
irate reprobate
magnate sedate
ornate inmate
accent as they add or change letters from one part of speech to another.
Here are a few out of a very great many examples. The italicized syl-
lable is accented.
tenacious
A dictionary of
usage
answers
A dictionary
of usage
Words in small caps in the text also appear in their proper alphabeti-
cal place, with an explanation of their correct usage.
649
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
650
A DICTIONARY OF USAGE
Don't sav, "Jack is the best editor of slowly, more slowly, most slowly
be modified by the adverb "ordinar- I shall advise him not to accept the
ily," not by the adjective "ordinary." contract as it now stands.
I shall inform [not advise] him that
2, Confusion sometimes arises when the contract is full of loopholes.
an adjective follows a verb. This is
perfectly correct when the verb is affect, effect 1. The word affect is
intransitive — that is, does not have not used as a noun, except as a
a direct object —and the modifier technical psvchological term; effect,
refers to the subject of the sentence, used as a noun, means "result."
not the verb.
The effect [not affect] of a sarcastic
The report sounded strange [not business letter is to hann business.
651
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
2. The verbs affect and effect are when it means "in conformity," or
totally diflFerent in meaning. To affect "in accordance."
means "to influence," "to concern"; The plan is agreeable with [in ac-
effect means "cause," "produce," "re- cordance with] my understanding of
sult in," "bring about." what is expected of us.
[cause, result in] his recovery. pound subject); when two or more
subjects are joined by or, nor, and
3. Affect is also used in the sense
the like (see alternate subjects);
of assuming or pretending.
when a noun or a phrase intervenes
He affects [not effects] a blustery between the subject and the verb
manner to hide his shyness.
(see INTERVENING NOUN') and when
He affected [not effected] ignor-
a verb is followed by a predicate
ance of the matter to avoid a fight.
nominative (see predicate nomina-
tive )
ago (adj., adv.) When a qualify-
ing clause is used after ago, it be-
alike (adj.) Never preceded by
gins with that, not with since.
both.
was over ten years ago, as well
It
WRONG: They are both alike.
as remember, that [not since] the
I
right: They are alike.
stores were consolidated.
But: It is over ten years, as well as
I remember, since the stores were all 1. When used as a noun, all is
consolidated. either singular or plural, depending
upon the meaning.
agree (v.) You agree with a per- All is [meaning everything] for-
652
A DICTIONARY OF USAGE
Are you all right? with the subject nearer it. It is often
It will be all right to ship the goods wise to recast the sentence to avoid
on the tenth. awkwardness.
Neither the boy nor the men were
allusion, illusion, delusion An allu-
[not was] able to work the problem.
sion is a reference to something; an Either the girls or the supervisor
illusion is a false image; a delusion has [not have] to work late.
I understand you or Mr. Jones was
is a false concept or belief.
[not were] to meet the train.
In his speech he made an allusion He said that he and not I have [not
[reference] to the President's last has] been chosen.
news conference.
The mirrors gave the illusion [false
image] of a larger room. although (conj.) See though, al-
The company's accounting system though.
creates a delusion [false concept]
about its profits.
altogether, all together (adv.) Al-
together is correct only in the sense
almost (adv.) See most.
of "entirely," "on the whole."
653
WRITE BETTEB, SPEAK BETTER
anger (n.) Anger at that which between the use of either and any
hurts or annoys, toward a person. one.
singular pronoun.
He is likely to [probably will] vote
against the bill.
654
A DICTIONARY OF USAGE
sentation.
5. For the misuse of as with equally
see EQUALLY AS.
arise (v.) Principal parts, arise,
arose, [has, have, had] arisen. See assuage (v.) The active voice is
IRREGULAR VERBS. followed by with; the passive voice
bv by.
as 1. Use as ... as in affirmative Assuage hunger with food.
statements. In negative statements Hunger is assuaged by food.
and in questions implying a negative
answer, so . . . as is preferred by audience (n.) See collective
some authorities. NOUNS.
This window display is as attractive
as the last one. aught (n.) See NAUGHT.
This window display is not so at-
tractive as the last one.
averse Not to be confused with ad-
Could any ambitious young man be
so foolish as to turn down the offer? ver.se. See adverse.
( Implying a negative answer.
655
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
when the subject, not the verb, is right: The reason die goods were
being modified. When a verb denot- delayed was that [not because] they
\\ ere shipped to the wrong zone num-
ing actionis being modified use the
ber.
adverb {badly). See adverbs, 2.
He looks bad. Describes "he." ( beside(s) Beside means "by the
He was injured badly in the acci- side of," "close to"; besides means
dent. (Describes how he was in-
"additionally," "in addition to."
jured. )
band (n.) See collective nouns. 3. Do not use each, or every after
between or among. The objects of
these prepositions should be plural,
barely (adv.) This word carries a
whereas each and every modify
negative idea and hence should not
singular nouns.
be used with another negative.
WRONG: Almost all the audience went
wrong: She has barely no typing to into the lobby between each scene.
do. right: Almost all the audience went
right: She has barehj any typing to into the lobby between scenes.
do. wrong: It is essential that hannony
prevail between every department.
right: It is essential that hamiony
because (conj.) Frequently incor- among
prevail the departments.
rectly used instead of ihat after The
reason . . . is. . . .
job is that she does not earn enough The association holds biannual con-
money. ferences. ( Two conferences a year.
656
A DICTIONARY OF USAGE
3. Biannually, biennially are the ad- wrong: Both the Democrats and the
verbial forms.
Republicans are equally anxious to
prevent the spread of Communism.
( Omit either "both" or "equally.")
bid (v. meaning to order) Princi- WRONG: They are both alike in their
pal parts, bid, bid, bid. See irregu- zeal for perfection. (Omit "both.")
lar VERBS. 3. Both . . . arul are correlative
conjunctionsand the constructions
bid (v. meaning to invite) Prin- after them should be parallel. See
cipal parts, hid, bade, [has, have, EITHER OR .
RIGHT: The blame for the accident is burst, burst. See irregular xxrbs.
his.
right: Put the blame for the accident but (conj.) 1. When used in the
on him. (Because the verb in this
sense of except, some writers con-
sentence is put, not blame. )
sider but as a preposition and follow
itwith the objective case. In formal
both (adj., pron.,) 1. PL, followed
usage, the case after but varies ac-
by plural verb and plural pronoun.
cording to its use. However, when
Both Matthew and Smith are [not
the pronoun after but ends the sen-
is] employed in the same capacity
and make [not makes] their [not his] tence, it is alwavs in the objective
reports directly to the president. case.
657
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
Everyone but she [not her] enjoyed impossible that the signatories
It is
the entertainment. ( She did not enjoy to the United Nations Charter will
it.) sanction the move. (They will not
No one wanted to make the change sanction.
but me. ( Pronoun ends the sentence. It is impossible but that the signa-
I told no one but him [not he] tories to the United Nations Charter
about the change. (I told him about will sanction the move. (They are
it.) sure to sanction.
It is not impossible that the signa-
2. A common error is the use of but, tories to the United Nations Charter
meaning "only," after a negative. will sanction the move. (They may
sanction.
WRONG: I cannot but object to the
title. 3. Unnecessarij negative. When but
right: I can but object to the title. that has a negative implication, the
wTioNG: There aren't but ten shop-
subsequent use of not is incorrect.
ping days left before Christmas.
right: There are but ten shopping wrong: How do you know but that
days. . . . the apparent friendliness of our com-
petitor may not be an attempt to
When but means "except," it may learn more about our new project?
follow a negative, of course. right: How do you know but that
the apparent friendliness of our com-
Nobody but he went. petitor may be an attempt ? . . .
I give
^
but that 1. A common error is the I have given > what I can.
use of but that instead of that to in- I shall give J
658
A DICTIONARY OF USAGE
Even if the company could [not The capitol at Albany is being re-
can] ship the order by Monday, the paired.
material would not reach the factory
soon enough.
Cafntal has several other meanings;
capitol has not.
3. A common error is the misuse of
could for might in conditional sen-
capitalize (v.) When followed by
tences. Could expresses ability,
a preposition, use at.
might expresses permission or possi-
The corporation was capitalized at
bility. See CAN, MAY.
$900,000.
If you have not bought the stock,
you might [not could] as well forget careless (adj.) Careless about ap-
about it.
pearance and dress; in the perform-
If the certificate fails to make pro-
vision for the issuance of stock in ance of an action; of others.
series, it might [not could] subse-
quently be amended to include that cause (n. ) Cause for an action, of
provision. (The
thought is that
a result.
the certificate would perhaps be
amended; there is no question that it The cause for her change in atti-
can be amended. tude was. . . .
Can you [will you be able to] make I certainly will [not most certainly
shipment next week? will].
May we [will you give us permis-
sion] make shipment next week?
cheap The adverb forms are cheap,
I can [it is possible for me to] go
cheaper, cheapest or cheaply, more
to Alaska by plane. May I? [Do I
are completed when we visit Wash- clung, [has, have, had] clung. See
ington. irregular N'ERBS.
659
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
close The adverb forms are close, committee (n.) See collective
closer, closest or closely, more NOUXS.
closely, most closely. See adverbs, 3.
common, -er, -est (adj.) Preferable
to more common, most common.
coincide (n. ), coincident (adj.)
When followed by a preposition, use common, mutual (adj.) I. Common
with. refers something that is shared
to
alike by two or more individuals or
species, as common fear of war, com-
Collective nouns Collective nouns
mon trait of character. Mutual refers
are singular if the writer is referring
to something that is reciprocally
to the group as such, plural if he is
given and received, as mutual agree-
referring to the individual persons or
ment, mutual respect. Careful writers
things of which the group is com-
do not use mutual when common is
posed. The number of the verb and
the correct word.
pronoun depends upon whether the
WRONG: mutual effort, mutual sorrow.
collective noun is used in the singu-
RIGHT: common effort, common sor-
lar or plural. row.
660
A DICTIONARY OF USAGE
tionary. It will indicate the -er, -est ing is the same as that between
words; use more and most for all complement and compliment. See
others. above.
Practical experience is complemen-
tan/ to theoretical training.
comparison of adverbs Almost all
Two complementary colors mixed
adverbs form the comparative by together make a third color.
placing more before the adverb and His review of the book was not
the superlative by placing most be- complimentary.
Complimentary remarks about a
fore it. There are exceptions, which
work are always appreciated.
person's
are listed alphabetically in this sec-
tion.
2. The is used with
preposition to
complementarij; about or concern-
complacent (adj.), -ency (n.); com- ing with complimentary.
plaisant (adj.), -ance (n.) A com-
placent person is pleased with him- compliance (n.) When followed by
self or with things that affect him a preposition, use with.
personally. A complaisant person is
low it consistentlv.
661
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
navy blue dress, li^t gray paint. 3. When each, every, many a, and
5. Fractions. Hyphenate fractions the like modify the complete subject,
nominator are both one-word forms, Each (or Every) officer and mem-
such as one-third, three-fourths, one- ber was [not were] present.
hundredth.
Many a man and woman has [not
have] voted for him.
6. Nationalities. Hyphenate two or
more words to indicate that the concur (v.) Concur in a decision,
person or thing shares in the quali- opinion, belief; concur with a per-
ties of both, as Anglo-American, son.
Sino-Japanese, Latin-American (but
not Latin America) , Scotch-Irish.
conducive (adj.) When followed
7. Coined phrases. Hyphenate bv a preposition, use to.
coined phrases, such as middle-of-
the-road, pay-as-you-go, drive-it- conform (v.) When followed by a
yourself, ready-to-wear. preposition, use to or with.
662
A DICTIONARY OF USAGE
His greatest asset consists in [is] but not next to each other. Either
his ability to understand. . . . or, neither . . . nor, both . . .
663
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
tion, character, and sometimes to Have you heard the results of tlie
property. Damage applies to prop- election yet? [not did you hear].
664
A DICTIONARY OF USAGE
665
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
prestige due to the methods of some each other, one another 1. Each
of its leaders. (There is no noun for other should be used when only two
"due" to modify. The "prestige" was
things are referred to, and one an-
not caused by the "methods."
RIGHT: The labor movement is losing other when more than two are re-
prestige owing to the methods of ferred to.
some of its leaders. ("Methods" is
wrong: Smith and I see one another
the object of the compound preposi-
often.
tion "owing to."
right: Smith and I see each other
RIGHT: success of the firm was
The
often.
due to [caused by] the ability of its
WRONG: It will be interesting for the
president. (The "success" was caused
four of us to see each other again.
by the "ability."
right: It will be interesting for the
RIGHT: The finn succeeded owing to
four of us to see one another again.
[not due to] the ability of its presi-
dent. 2. The possessive of each other is
each invariably takes a singular verb They did not spare each other's
666
A DICTIONARY OF USAGE
guilty.
See also immanent, imminent.
Either you or he has eaten her por-
ridge. enamored (adj.) Enamored of a
Either the pupils or the teacher is
person, with an object.
going to give in.
Either the teacher or the pupils are
going to give in. enthuse (v.) Colloquial. Avoid
using.
When the verbs sound awkward,
as thev often do when the first noun
normally takes a plural verb and the equally as Often incorrectly used
second a singular one, reword the for equally . . . with, equally by
sentence. itself, or as by itself.
667
\VRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
668
A DICTIONARY OF USAGE
forgot, forgot or [has, have, had] full. "More nearlv full" is allowable.
669
^VRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
2. The adverb form is full or fully. I had not heard of the company's
See ADVERBS, 3.
[not company] buying the building.
His secretary is always genial, no give (v.) Principal parts, give, gave,
matter how busy she is.
[has, have, had] given. See irregu-
The people in my department are
very congenial and work well to-
lar VERBS.
gether.
go (v.) Principal parts, go, went,
gerunds A gerund is a verb form [has, have, had] gone. See irregu-
ending in ing and used as a noun. lar VERBS.
1. Possessive nouns or possessive pro-
nouns usually modify gerunds. good (adj.) See WELL.
670
A DICTIONARY OF USAGE
plural verb and plural pronouns. RIGHT: If I had been on the jury, I
should have acquitted him.
The goods were [not teas] damaged
in transit before they [not it] were
delivered. hang (v. to put to death) Principal
parts, ^ang, hanged, hanged. See ir-
government (n. ) In the United regular VERBS.
States, government is construed as
singular; in Great Britain, as plural. hang (v. to suspend) Principal
Her Majesty's government are
parts, hang, hung, hung. See irregu-
sending their representatives at once. lar VERBS.
The United States government is
sending delegates also.
hardly (adv.) 1. This word con-
had (v.) Had . . . have (or,even His salary as president of the com-
worse, had . . .
of) is sometimes pany is hard earned.
His salary as president of the com-
carelessly used in inverted sentences
pany is liardly earned.
when only had is required.
WRONG Had : I have been on the jury, he Nominative case of third person
I should have acquitted him.
singular pronoun. 1. For misuse of
right: Had I been on the jury, I
An illiterate use of had have or had 2. For use after forms of the verb
of occurs when the sentence has not to be {am, is, are, was, were), see
been inverted. PREDICATE nominative, 2.
671
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
heavily, most heavily. See adv'erbs, encing what is hoped will be a short
cold spell.
3.
right: This region is now experienc-
ing what, it is hoped, will be a short
help Should not be followed by hut cold spell. ("What" is the subject of
when used in the sense of "avoid." "will be" and not of "is hoped."
right: It was hoped by all that he
WRONG: I cannot help but feel that would win.
you are unwise.
right: I cannot help feeling that you
are unwise.
hyphen For use of the hyphen in
compound terms, see compounds.
her Objective case of third person
singular pronoun. 1. For use as an I Nominative case of first person
object, see pronouns, 1.
singular pronoun. 1. For misuse of
/ me, see pronouns, 1.
for
2. For misuse of her instead of she 2. For use after the forms of the
after forms of the verb to he (am,
verb to be (am, is, are, was, were),
is, are, was, were), see predicate
see predicate nominative, 1.
NOMINATIVE, 1. 3. Avoid use of the editorial we in-
We have no hope [not hopes] of Politics [the science of] is most in-
teresting.
receiving payment.
Singular when used with a singu-
hope (v.) When hope is u.sed in lar noun complement:
the passive voice, the indefinite pro- Politics is a game at which more
noun it is always the subject. The than two can play.
error usually occurs when it is Athletics is the chief attraction at
672
A DICTIONARY OF USAGE
the matter.
Such never win an election.
politics
The acoustics in the new building
are faulty. ill (adj.) When followed by a pre-
position, use with.
Plural when denoting practice or
activity:
immanent, imminent (adj.) Imma-
Superb tactics were responsible for nent means "indwelling," "inherent."
our victory.
Imminent means "impending,"
Athletics are necessary for every
normal boy. "threatening," "close at hand."
673
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
674
A DICTIONARY OF USAGE
The hot days of summer send [not its, it's Its is the possessive form of
sends] everyone to the beach. the impersonal pronoun it. It's is a
A parenthetical phrase coming be- contraction of it and is and is in-
intransitive verbs See transitive kind (n.) The explanation here ap-
VERBS. plies also to class, sort, type, size,
variety, species, and similar words.
investigation When followed bv a
1. The singular form is modified by
preposition, use of.
this and that, not these and those
and takes a singular verb.
irregular Almost all verbs
verbs
This [not these] kind does [not do]
form the past and perfect tenses by
not grow readily; that [not those]
adding ed to the present thus, look, — kind does grow readily.
looked, looked; ship, shipped,
2. The expression kind of is followed
shipped.
by a singular noun unless the plural
However, many verbs are irreg-
idea is particularly strong. The com-
ular, and there is no rule for the
mon error is inconsistency.
forma 'ion of the past and perfect
tenses. Many irregular verbs are The kind of position [not posi-
tions] that appeals to me doesn't in-
listed in their proper alphabetical
terest her.
position in this Dictionary of Usage. The company has numerous posi-
The principal parts (present, past, tions open. What kind of positions
and past participle) are given — thus, are they?
WRONG: The kind of position I pre-
rin^, rang, rung; say, said, said.
fer are those that offer a lot of money.
Form the perfect tenses bv adding RIGHT: The kind of positions I pre-
the auxiliaries (has, have, had) to fer are those that offer a lot of money.
the past participle. Thus, I do, I did, right: The kind of position I prefer
is one that offers a lot of money.
I have done.
In this section, where the past par- 3. It is incorrect to follow kind of
ticiple differs from the past tense, we by a.
675
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
most lucrative are novels and inspira- lie means "to rest," "be in a certain
tional books.
position or location." Lay takes an
The kinds of books that they pub-
lish are novels and textbooks.
object; lie does not. The principal
parts of lay are: lay, laid, laid (pres-
knit (v.) Principal parts, knit, knit ent participle, laying). The principal
(or knitted), knit (or knitted). See parts of lie are: lie, lay, lain (present
special sale of hats, suits, and over- hour yesterday. ( Past tense.
coats; the overcoats are particularly The book has lain [not laid] there
676
A DICTIONARY OF USAGE
less, fewer Use less when referring street, at a certain address, by means
to quantity, fewer when referring to of a livelihood.
number. He lives in New York on Tenth
Her new apartment has less closet Street.
677
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
individuals] are against the new bill. what might, the task should be com-
pleted by the end of September.
678
A DICTIONARY OF USAGE
forms of the verb to he {am, is, are, singular in meaning. Mumps is a dis-
was, were), see predicate nomina- ease.
ti\t:, 1.
more than one Always takes singu- Neither of these plans is [not are]
satisfactory.
lar noun and verb, although the
meaning is plural. 2. Use neither to designate between
More than one defendant is in-
one of two persons or things; none
volved. or no instead of neither to designate
one of three or more.
most, almost Most is used with an He decided that neither of the
adjective to express the superlative [two] plans suggested was satisfac-
torv. (Two is unnecessary.)
degree. Do not use most for the ad-
He decided that none of the [five]
verb almost.
plans was satisfactory.
He the most eager of the bovs.
is No report submitted to date covers
Almost all the senators voted the subject adequately.
against the bill.
Apart from the fact that most is neither . . . nor 1. It is never cor-
not a substitute for almost, in many rect to use or with neither.
constructions it changes the meaning
2. The construction after correlatives
of the sentence when it is used in-
should be parallel. The misplacement
correctlv.
of neither frequentlv results in un-
I am most ready to go. (More balanced construction after the cor-
ready than others.)
relatives.
I am almost ready to go. (Nearly
ready to go. wrong: The plan neither meets the
approval president nor of
of the
motive (n.) When followed bv a the treasurer. ("Neither" is followed
by a verb and "nor" by a preposi-
preposition, use for.
tional phrase. "Meets the approval"
is common to both the president and
679
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
RIGHT: The plan meets the approval sarv to convey the intended meaning,
neither of the president nor of the
but it is usually better to recon-
treasurer.
struct the sentence.
right: The plan meets the approval
of neither the president nor the right: Is it impossible for you to
treasurer. realize that the merger might not
be consummated?
3. For correct number of verb when BETTER: Is it impossible for you to
neither nor connects two sub-
. . . realize that no merger might be
jects, see EITHER or, 2. . . .
consummated?
WRONG: He does not believe that
there are not extenuating circum-
news (n.) Plural in form but singu-
stances.
lar in meaning. The news is good. RIGHT: He does not believe that there
are no extenuating circumstances.
nobody (n.) Always write as one better: He believes there may be
extenuating circumstances.
word.
680
A DICTIONARY OF USAGE
wrong: The company always has and tences state that the assistant has
always will give recognition where authority to sign the payroll record
it is due. and nothing else. No hard and fast
right: The company always has
rule can be given. The writer must
given and always will give recog-
consider carefully the exact mean-
nition where it is due.
ing that he wishes to convey and
3. Do not omit an article, a per-
place the only accordingly. If there
sonal or relative pronoun, or a prepo-
is danger of ambiguity or misunder-
sition that is necessary to the gram-
standing, the construction should be
matical completeness or to the clear
changed to eliminate the only. The
understanding of a sentence.
foregoing explains the orthodox or
WRONG: He wrote to the chairman conventional placement of only. It is
and president. (If two men are in-
permissible, however, to choose an-
volved. )
RIGHT: He wrote to the chairman other position if the change does not
and the president. obscure the meaning.
WRONG: I have great sympathy hut
ORTHODOX: In typing manuscript, use
no confidence in that class of people.
only one side of the sheet.
RIGHT: I have great sympathy for,
PERMISSIBLE: In typing manuscript,
but no confidence in, that class of
use one side of the sheet only. (What
people.
is there besides the sheet to use?
better: I have great sympathy for
that class of people, but no confi-
2. Only is sometimes erroneously
dence in them.
used as a conjunction.
4. See INFINITIVES, 3, for omission
wrong: Your pen is the same as mine
of to in a series of infinitive phrases.
only that the nib is different.
RIGHT: The one [or only] difference
oneself (pron.) Formerly one's self, between your pen and mine is the
but now preferably written as one different nib.
word.
oral (adj.) Verbal is often misused
only (adv., adj.) 1. The meaning for oral. See verbal.
that the sentence is intended to con-
vey determines the position of the over The expression over with is
681
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
right: The study showed that while but I had been typing the report
advancing the cause of one group, before that time. ( Past perfect.
the new law injures another group. WRONG: Since Mr. Scott was elected
RIGHT: The study showed that the president of the club, the members
new law advanced the cause of one enjoyed better socials.
group but injured another. right: Since Mr. Scott was elected
president of the club, the members
Exceptions: Certain participles have enjoyed better socials. (Present
may indicate a general rather than perfect.
a specific action — an action in which
3. In dependent clauses, a per-
no particular actor is implied. Thev
manently true fact is usually put in
do not then need a noun or pronoun
the present tense, even when the
to modify and are not dangling.
main verb is in the past tense. This
Some participles that may be used in
rule does not apply to independent
this manner are allowing for, grant-
clauses or sentences with one verb.
ing, con.siclering that, speaking of,
talking of, owing to.
We were taught in school that
"Hamlet" i* Shakespeare's greatest
Allowing for interruptions, the tragedy.
work will be completed by the end '
Hamlet" was Shakespeare's great-
of the year. est tragedy.
Generally speaking, our products San Francisco was the birthplace
are superior to theirs. of the United Nations.
682
A DICTIONARY OF USAGE
683
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
Use the of phrase to form the plural When the thing possessed is not re-
possessives of a compound noun. stricted or hmited to a specific num-
arguments of the attorneys general ber or group, the 's is not used.
seals of notaries public
In his book he tried to imitate the
promotions of aides-de-camp novels of James Street.
2. Awkivard or sibilant sounds. If The remarks of the commentator
aroused. ( Generally speaking.
. . .
684
A DICTIONARY OF USAGE
a month's delay
three months' delay
six pounds' weight predicate adjective Some intransi-
tive verbs are followed bv adjectives.
The italicized expressions are plural.
These adjectives do not modify verbs
Notice that the apostrophe follows
(for, in that case, they would be ad-
the 5 instead of preceding it. Manv
verbs) but complete the meaning
of these expressions form compound
of the verb, or predicate. Thus thev
adjectives and can be hyphenated
are called complements or predicate
instead of written as possessives.
adjectives. The intransitive verb that
a one-day vacation is most commonly followed by a
a three-month delay
predicate adjective is to be and its
a six-pound weight
a three-ounce bottle forms am, is, was, were, have been,
had been, etc. Other verbs that are
practical, practicable (adj.) Practi-
usuallv followed bv predicate ad-
jectives are: feel, look, smell, sound,
cable means "feasible," "capable of
being put into practice"; practical taste, appear.
685
\VRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
It was 7 [not me] to whom you means "to denounce" or "to condemn
spoke. a thing as dangerous," "to outlaw."
It was he [not him] who delivered
the papers.
I am she [not her]. present tense 1. Use the present
tense to indicate action that is tak-
2. A verb agrees with its subject
ing place at the present time.
and not with the predicate nomina-
tive. Difficulty is caused by the use
He told me that the company's
home office is [not was] located in
of a singular subject and plural pred-
New York. (The office is stiU located
icate nominative, or vice versa. in New York.
686
A DICTIONARY OF USAGE
We have always acted on the prin- I hope the prophecy comes true.
ciple [fundamental truth] that hon- I prophesy a period of prosperity
esty is the best pohcy. in the near future.
An agent may bind his principal
to contracts entered into within the
prove (v.) Principal parts, prove,
scope of his authority.
The loan, including principal and proved, proved. The use of proven
amounted to $350.
interest, for proved is increasing in the
The New England states have been United States but is not considered
our principal source of business dur- good usage.
ing the past five years.
The principal of the school re-
signed. provided, providing 1. Manv excel-
lent writers use providing as a con-
proceeds (n. pi.) Used in the plural junction in place of provided, but
and takes a plural verb. some authorities do not sanction this.
\\T\ONG: We received a letter inviting quick The adverb forms are quick,
my wife and 7 to spend the week- quicker, quickest or quickly, more
end in the country. (Inviting ... I?) quickly, most quickly. See adverbs,
RIGHT: We
received a letter inviting
3.
mv wife and me to spend. . . .
WRONG: I know vou and he to be mv reason should begin with that and
friends. (I know he to be?)
. . . not with because.
RIGHT: I know you and him to be my WRONG: Her reason is because she
friends.
does not have the money.
2. After forms of the verb to be RIGHT: Her reason is that she does
(am, is, were). See predi-
are, was, not have the money.
WRONG: The reason why the goods
cate NOMINATIVE, 1.
were delayed was because they were
not shipped.
prophecy, prophesy Prophecy is a RIGHT: The reason why die goods
687
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
were delayed was that they were not bv a preposition, use of, to, or with.
shipped.
The relation of these parts is not
clear.
reconcile (v.) When followed bv The relationship of the beneficiary
a preposition, use tvith or to. to the insured is not close.
Our strained relations with Russia
are a source of worry.
reflexive pronouns Formed bv add-
ing -self (sing.) or -selves (pi.) to
some personal pronouns. remainder, rest (n.) 1. These words
are interchangeable except when re-
1. pronouns are used
Reflexive to
mainder is used as a mathematical
call attention to the subject and to
term.
emphasize a noun or pronoun.
2. See BALANCE for the distinction
RIGHT: He hurt himself more than
anyone by his attitude.
else
between balance and rest or remain-
right: The president himself made der.
a report to the employees.
WT^ONG: He
hurt himself and familt/
by his (The absurdity of
attitude. ride (v.) Principal parts, ride, rode,
"He hurt family" is obvious.) ridden. See irregular verbs.
right: He hurt himself and his fam-
ily by his attitude.
right 1. The adverb form is right
or rightly. See adverbs, 3.
regard Do not use regards in place
of regard in the expressions in re- 2. Right is not comparable. If any-
gard to, with regard to. thing is right, it cannot be more
right. "More nearly right" is allow-
regardless There is no such word able.
688
A DICTIONARY OF USAGE
689
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
an action that has been completed showed, [has, have, had] shown.
at the time indicated by the main See IRREGULAR VERBS.
verb. A common error is the use of
the present participle instead of the shrink (v.) Principal parts, shrink,
perfect. shrank, [has, have, had] shrunk. See
690
A DICTIONARY OF USAGE
I set the thermos on his desk every some For misuse of .some place see
morning. PLACE.
I have set the thermos on his desk
softer, .softest or softly, more softly, one word. Some place is commonly
most softly. See adverbs, 3. misused for somewhere. See place.
691
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
wheres. straight.
.stuck, .stuck. See irregular \'erbs. the indicative was] more harmonious.
692
A DICTIONARY OF USAGE
If optimism does [not the subjunc- WRONG: Some people give only such
tive do] not get out of hand, there things for which they have no need.
will be no sudden collapse. right: Some people give only such
If he is [not be] in town I am sure things as they do not need.
he will call you. ( Doubt implied. RIGHT: Some people give only those
he was [not were] at the meet-
If things for which they have no need.
ing, we did not see him [but it is wrong: We shipped immediately
possible he was there]. such parts of the machinery that were
in stock.
2. Use the past subjunctive to
express a supposition or condition
right: We shipped immediately such
parts of the machinery as were in
in clauses introduced bv as if, as stock.
though. better: We shipped immediately
those parts of the machinery that
He looks as if he were [not is or
were in stock.
ivas] ill.
693
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
tactic (n.) pi., tactics. Most com- that, which (rel. prons.) The gram-
monly used in the plural. mar-book rule is to use that to
introduce a defining or restrictive
take (v.) 1. Principal parts, take, clause; use which to introduce a
took, [has, have, had] taken. See nondefining, nonrestrictive clause.
irregular VERBS. Theodore Bernstein, formerly an edi-
tor of The New York Times, puts it
2. See BRING.
this way in his book The Careful
Writer: "If the clause could be
teach (v.) Principal parts, teach,
omitted without leaving the noun it
taught, taught. See irregular verbs.
modifies incomplete, or without ma-
terially altering the sense of what is
team (n.) See collective nouns.
being said — or if it could reasonably
thanks (n. pi.) Always takes a them Objective case of third per-
plural verb. son plural pronoun. 1. For use as an
694
A dictionary of usage
verb to be {am, is, are, was, were) I trust you icith this secret.
695
WTIITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
unquestioned, unquesrionable (adj.) rect usage. These terms are not in-
used carelesslv in place of oral with verb that shows when the subject
and very much should observe cor- WRONG: This year's sales are quite a
696
A DICTIONARY OF USAGE
697
\\T\ITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
when. Where should introduce an right: While [during the time that]
the secretary took dictation, her
adverbial clause of place; when, of
assistant filed the papers.
time.
698
Test your skills:
answers
six brass screws, and the lockwedge. Without these parts I cannot complete
the kit. Please send them to me as soon as possible.
Sincerely,
George Widgen
Dear Sir:
This is the third time I have written to you about a kit I received with 3
missing parts. My first two letters were not answered. The missing parts are
two wing-nut bolts, six brass screws, and a lockwedge.
I have already lost three weeks because of your failure to answer my let-
ters. I would appreciate having the missing parts without further delay.
If this letter is also ignored, I shall make formal complaint to the Post
Office Department.
I hope to hear from you soon so I don't have to take this step.
Sincerely,
George Widgen
3.
a. Good. The writer clearly .states his problem and gives pertinent informa-
tion in the fir.st sentence.
b. Bad. The legislator can't tell what vote the writer is talking about, and
his reaction to this angrv per.sonal attack will probably make him unrecep-
tive to reasonable arguments the writer may develop further on in the
letter.
c. Could be improved. The fact that this is the third complaint is im-
portant, but the writer could be much more specific. A better version might
read like this: "On March 3 and again on March 27 wrote you about re- I
scheduling delivery of the new wrestling mats for the Lincoln High School
gymnasium."
d. Ungracious. A personal letter is usually intended to give pleasure as
well as information to the recipient, but this one starts with the suggestion
that it's being written only because the writer has nothing better to do.
Hackneyed phrases like "drop you a line" are dull and express the writer's
mental laziness.
699
test your skills: ANSWERS
SOCIAL NOTES AND INVITATIONS
1. Negative: ^^ ^
/% ^^W^ /hu. oUmcuOyaUmnje.
Affirmative:
in/)M
JjdM/Yi imj
. g(k Um o'Uodo
700
test your skills: ANSWERS
2. a. true b. false c. true d. true e. false
3. An at-home card is a plain white card, 22» x 4 inches, that gives the
address of the newly married couple. It is enclosed with the wedding
announcement or invitation and announces when the couple will be read\-
to receive guests.
Recreational facilities.
Cultural opportunities.
Since I must make a decision soon, I would appreciate a prompt reply.
Thank you for your help.
Sincerely yours,
those who
ask about the car a very enthusiastic report. The engine has a
whine that makes it sound like a jet. But your dealer refuses to recognize this
annoying noise and claims that it is my imagination.
I assure you that the noise is not "in my head." Indeed, my beloved car is
becoming notorious hereabouts for its "sonic boom." This angers me, and I
assume that you could not be pleased by the adverse publicity your product
is getting.
think it is your obligation to send a factory representative to investigate
I
my claim and take the steps necessary to correct the condition that is giving
both of us such poor public relations.
With best wishes,
Jonathan E. Wimble
701
test your skills: ANSWERS
WRITING YOUR PUBLIC OFFICIALS
1. Yes. The writer tells immediateh' —
in only eight words —
how he feels.
2. Yes. He quotes the 13th Amendment to the United States Constitution.
3. He does. He says it "will make a barber cut a specific person's hair, force
Then he gives two reasons: "It doesn't define many important terms, such
as 'discrimination' or 'race', would subject us to more federal power."
and it
27 Lake Street
Mountainstream, Illinois
November 16, 1971
Office of the Registrar
Central College
Dean\ulle, Ohio
Dear Sir:
702
test your skills: ANSWERS
convenient. Since I hope to become a biologist, I am especially eager to see
your research laboratories.
Thank you for taking care of my requests. I look forward to mv N'isit in
June.
Sincerely,
Donald Waderight
3. When you finish reading a book, make a few brief notes while vour
reactions and impressions are fresh and strong. When vou are readv to
write, these notes will help to refresh your memory and sharpen vour im-
pressions. They may even provide material for sections of your report.
4. a. You should inject vour own opinions into it.
c. The ([uestions from vour basic outline that are most appropriate in
person who
does not waste words but goes to the heart of a situation; here
he wants to demonstrate that he is cjualified for the job.
D is also an attention-getter but is more risky. It has an audacity (with-
out offering specific information) that mav charm some employers and
put off others. This is the gambit of a bold and daring person, possibly just
the sort of person that some companies want, especially for a sales job.
703
test your skills: ANSWERS
PICTURE THE PEOPLE YOU ARE WRITING TO
1. This writer is short-tempered and sharp-tongued. He must be handled
gentlv. Admit that he is justified in his anger, but explain that it isn't easy
to get die kind of deli\'erymen you would like and you will take every pre-
caution not to let such a mistake happen again.
2. This sarcastic man has a perpetual sneer on his face. He enjoys people
making fools of themselves. This gives him a chance to ridicule them, thus
proving his own superiority. He is usuallv thin-skinned and any sharp
reply would enrage him. But he is perverse enough to be charmed by a
letter that appeals to his intellectual pretensions.
3. This reasonable letter comes from a person who is sensible and does not
react violently. He expects —and should receive — a straightforward reply.
The mistake is acknowledged and he is assured that an adjustment will
be made.
704
test your skills: ANSWERS
HOW TO WRITE BUSINESS REPORTS
1. a. false b. true c. false d. false e. true
2. Investigating sources of information, taking notes, analyzing the data,
making an outline, writing the report.
3. Accuracy, clearness, conciseness, restraint in language, convenience to
the reader.
4. A letter of transmittal merelv transmits the report from writer to reader,
while the letter of presentation also emphasizes the report's importance.
5. c, d, and f.
PUNCTUATION POINTERS
1. "It's plain to see," said she, "there are too many and's in that sentence."
2. The artist Marat ^^•ill open a show in Richmond, \'irginia, on Wednes-
day, April 27.
3. The suggestion, which had arrived too late, was held for the next
meeting.
4. However you do it, get here by the first of the month.
5. However, I would like to see vou earlier, if possible.
6. —
Jim Browne he's a friend of vours, isn't he? called todav. —
7. Cans made up 60 percent of the litter; bottles, 40 percent.
8. "Did the company destroy its image?" he mused.
9. Will you please send the five hundred dollar ($500) withdra\\al as
quickly as possible.
10. Yes, the concert will be plaved over Station WXYZ at 1 :30.
11. HuiTy! Deliver the package to the following address: 6672 Schnefel
St., Kansas City, Mo.
12. The businessmen's ass'n was formed in the early 1940's. (but 1940s is
acceptable too).
9. false 10. false 11. true 12. false 13. false 14. true 15. false
705
test your skills: ANSWERS
The Presentation (showing the customer how your product can serve
him).
Overcoming Objections (using techniques that dissipate resistance rather
than reinforce it)
major headings could be: Health effects; Cost, to the individual and so-
ciety; Need for corrective action.
B. Strong point first.
706
test your skills: ANSWERS
3. Don't push — lead: He gives facts and then tells the advantages and dis-
advantages of building a new school. Manv of the advantages may have
been overlooked by opponents of the school —advantages that could per-
sonally benefit them. He appeals to their self-interest bv showing them a
way to gain greater long-term and economic profits in place of saving a few
dollars on taxes.
4. Curb your rebuttal This is more of a problem in personal argu-
instinct:
ment than But here the speaker recognizes and answers
in public speaking.
the objections so thoroughly that it is obvious he has really "listened" to
the other side —
and he has prepared a reply that mav compel many to re-
consider their opinion. He ends on the same conciliatory note on which
—
he began speaking of the community as a whole to unify his audience:
"Let's give Blankville's children the best we can. Let's vote for the new
high school."
The visual aids (on illustration paper) have a piece of rough sandpaper
glued to the back; the sandpaper clings to the flannel so that the displays
can be easilv moved about or removed.
707
test your skills: ANSWERS
5. Charts, blackboards, motion pictures, slide and strip projectors, over-
head projectors. Otlier equipment includes crayons, chalk, plastic tapes, ink
markers, and color transparencies.
708
Index
A 637 writing paper for, 39
a, long, pronunciation of,
709
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
710
INDEX
'11
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
712
INDEX
713
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
sincerity and enthusiasm, 577-78 -ence words, spelling rules for, 375
See also public speaking Encyclopedia of the Social Sciences,
derivation words, in dictionary entries, 148
297 Encyclopedia of World History, An,
"Description of the College Board 149
Scholastic Aptitude Test," 179 encyclopedias, 148-49
Dewey Decimal System, explained, engagement announcement, 12-1
152-53 engraved papers
diaphragm, role of in speech card of general invitation, 61-62
production, 596, 600-601 formal invitations, 59
die (dicere), words based on, 315-16 stationery, 37-39
dictionaries, 148-49 wedding invitations, 48
dictionary entries -ense words, spelling rules for, 374
how to read, 296-97 entries
sample, 297 bibliographical, form for, 149,
Dictionary of American Biography, 160-61
148 dictionary, 296-97
Dictionary of American History, 149 envelopes, 37
Dictionary of National Biography, 148 forms of address on, 45-46
dieresis, punctuation mark for, 342 for wedding invitations, 48
dignitaries, forms of address for epigrams, 504
(table), 75-81 -ery words, spelling rules for, 376
dinner, invitation to, 63-64 "Esquire," correct use of, 45
diphthongs, mispronimciation of, essential and nonessential clauses,
590-91 comma with, 344
direct object, 335 -et words, pronunciation of, 544
position with indirect object, 336 etymology, in dictionary entries,
divorced persons 296-97
engagement announcement of, 74 examination papers, 143, 146
forms of address for, 51-53 See also tests
issuing wedding announcements, exclamation point
51-53 punctuation mark for, 342
E
e, final, spelling rules for, 366 fac (facere), words based on, 315-16
ear training, 621-22 figures, enclosed in parentheses, 350
ecclesiastical dignitaries, fonns of figures of speech and speech devices
address for, 78-81 alliteration, 509
educational request, letters of, to anaphora, 508
television stations, 123-24 assonance, 508
either/neither, pronunciation of, balance, 508
631-32 cadence, 509
ellipsis consonance, 508
commas with, 344 hyperbole, 508
to indicate omission, 349 inappropriate use of, 508
punctuation mark for,342 irony, 508
emotionalism in letterwriting, 19 metaphor, 508
714
INT>EX
508
simile, advanced, 323, 325
word repetition, 509 elementary, 323-24
final copy, preparation of, 174 See also individual parts of speech;
flannel board, visual aid, 34.5-46 punctuation; sentence
folding graph, words based on, 317
a letter, 45 graphs, 175
a wedding invitation, 49 541,543-44
bar,
follow-up letter, plan sheet for, 230 541-43
line,
76-77 H
form letters h,pronunciation of, 642, 645
adapting, 109 hackneyed words and phrases (list),
hand\\Titing
G importance of, 379-82
g, pronunciation of, 640, 642 steps to improve, 382
gamos, words based on, 310 Handwriting Foundation, 379-80
gamij {^lamos), words based on, handwritten letters, 35-36
310-12, 316 acceptance or regret to in\itations,
General Services Administration, 47, 66-70
12-13 birth announcements, 71-72
gerund engagement announcements, 72
as a noun, 337 formal invitations, 59, 61, 63
phrase, 337 informal invitations, 64, 66
ghostwriters, 517 notes and answers, 66
glotta, words based on, 310 heads and subheads
Good American Speech (McLean), for business reports, 286, 288
634 in typescript, 174
government dignitaries, fonns of hecklers, how to handle, 555
address for, 76-79 history and current events, writing a
governor book report on, 170
form of address for, 78-79 hoarseness, how to overcome, 605-06
writing paper for, 39 -hood (suffix), 314
grammar hostilitv in letter writing, 106
defined, 326-27 hosting
parts of speech (list), 327-29 guest list, 416
15
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
initials
716
INDEX
717
\\TirrE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
indirect, 33 349
informal, 31 logv ( logia), words based on, 316
procedure on 33
arrival, 31, luncheon, invitation to, 63
letter of presentation, 281-82 -ly (suffix), 314
letters of refusal, 251-52 spelling rules for, 376
combined with sales pitch, 259-61
guides to saying No, 262
to a prospecti\'e buyer, 258-59
M
magazine file, 153
refusing long-term credit, 254—55, magazines, 113
letters to,
257-58 magn{us), words based on, 315
statements to avoid, 253-54 main entry
letters of reply in dictionary, 296
advising on investments, 266, sample, 297
275-77 mania, words based on, 317
concerning incorrectly ordered margins
merchandise, 264, 267-69 in personal correspondence, 17
concerning misplaced order, 264, in typescript, 174
269-70 married women
to a landlord, 265, 272-74 forms of address for, 37-38
plan sheet for, 226-28 forms of signatures, 43-44
requesting extension of credit, 266, "Master," correct use of, 46
274-75 mayor, form of address for, 78-79
to a student in financial difficulty, medical profession, forms of address
265, 270-72 for, 80-81
to want ads, 20.3-04 memoranda, 285
letters of request "Messrs," correct use of, 46
salary raise, 201 metaphor, 508
letter of resignation, 208 -meter (suffix), 314
letter of thanks microphone, 572—73
following interview, 463 militarv personnel, forms of address
See also thank-you letters for,
letter of transmittal, 280-81 on wedding announcements, .54
letterheads, 37-39 minister (foreign), form of address
letter writing for, 78-79
analvsis, 213-14 misanthropy, etyinologv of, 310
emotionalism in, 19 miso (misos), words based on,
misused words and phrases in. 310-12, 316
12-15 misogamy, etymology of, 310
planning, 207, 209, 224 "Miss,"
guidelines, 225 on wedding invitations, 53, 55
how to shorten, 111-12, 115 when to use, 37-38, 44, 46
plan-sheet method, 22.5-26 misused words and phrases ( list )
follow-up 230
letter, 12-15
form letter, 228-30 mono (mo7}os), words based on,
letter of reply, 226-28 310-12, 316-17
718
INDEX
'19
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
720
INDEX
721
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
722
INDEX
72.3
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
hpes of breathing
complex, 330 diaphragm, 596
coinpound, 330 inhalation and exhalation, 595-97
compound-complex, 332 larynx, 596
simple, 329-30 \ ibration, 596-97
word agreement in, 333-34 resonance, 597-98
series speech writing
comma 346-47
in, body of the speech, 504-06
semicolon in 355-56 developing the tlieme, 504-05
-ship (suffix), 314 quality of language in, 505-06
sibilant "s," 589-90 climax, 509
signatures, forms for, 43-45 creating \ividness, 506-07
silent letters in pronunciation, 642-43 imagery, 507
simile, 508 slang, 507
single quotation marks, 354 "dissolve" ending, 509-10
slang, 507 editing the draft, 518
slide and strip projectors, 549 opening remarks
slides, as visual aid, 510 aphorisms and epigrams in, 504
-some (suffix), 314 quotations in, 503-04
Sorensen, Theodore, on jFK's speech- organization of, 511
WTiting technique, 512-17 analysis of points, 521-22
sources, for research papers, 145, arranging points, 522
148-49 list 519-21
of points to cover,
speaker nmnbering 522-24
points,
faults to avoid use of ghostwriters, 517
apologetic tone, 566 See also visual aids
"er" habit, 566 speed tests, 177
jargon, 567 spelling
lack of audience contact, 567 devices for learning, 358-60
nervous habits, 567 eccentricities of, 339-40
unnecessary words, 567 list, 359-60
qualities of, 564-66 and pronunciation, 541
speech blemishes spelling exercises
distracting gestures, 591-92 able, iblc words, 376
eye contact, 592 ance, ence words, 376
hoarseness, 58.5-86, 605-06 doubling final consonant, 363-66
lisping, 589-90 final 367-68
I/,
'24
INDEX
725
WRITE BETTER, SPEAK BETTER
in essav questions, 185, 187 unus, words based on, 313, 315
in multiple choice questions, 183 usage notes, in dictionary entries,
practice questions, 180-81 296-97
problem-solving techniques, 183-84 u\ ula, function of in speech
reading directions and questions, production, 598
179-80
scoring, 180 V
speed, 177 verb
standardized, 177-79, 181 active and passive voices, 335-36
time limit for, 177 defined, 328
true-false statements, 180-81 direct objects of, 335
vocabulary-building indirect object of, 336
changing the form of new words, linking, 335
300 and noun agreement, 333-34
fitting new words to meaning, objective complement with, 336
295-96 as predicate, 329, 334
matching new words with transiti\'e and intransitive, 335-36
svnonvTiis, 298-99 used as noun, 329
pick theword for the situation, verbals
299-300 defined, 336-37
th, pronunciation of, 542-43 gerunds, 337
thank-vou letters infinitives, 337
after a visit, 24-25 participles, 337
baby presents, 23 \ibration in speech production,
Christmas presents, 22-23 596-97
wedding presents, 21-22 \^ice President, correct fomi of address
theo (theos), words based on, 310-12, for, 76-77
316-17 video-corder, 581
theology, etymology of, 311
virgule, pimctuation mark for, 342
throat, yawning 609-10
to relax,
visiting card invitation, 64-65
tilde, punctuation mark for, 342
replies to, 69
time, of day, colon with, 347
visual aids, 510, 512
Time magazine, letters to, 113-14
color with, 540
title card, 153
drawing, 540
tongue, ways to relax, 609
topic
how to show, 540-41
conversation, 393-96
how to stand in relation to, 539
public speaking, 492-94 lighting for, 538-39
research paper, 144-^5 size of, 539
sentence, in precis, 164 types of
'
726
INDEX
vital center, in
600,611,613
speech production,
727
Acknowledgments
SECRETS OF GOOD LETTER WRITING, CXCerpt Directions and Questions Carefully," "Using
from "The ABC's of Good Letter- Writing" in Good Reasoning Techniques," "Essay Ques-
The Complete Book of Personal Letter-Writing tions" in How to Take Tests by Jason Millman
and Modern Correspondence by Lassor Blu- and Walter Pauk. Copyright © 1969 by
menthal. Copyright © 1969 by Lassor Blu- McGraw-Hill, Inc. Reprinted by pennission of
menthal. Used by permission of Doubleday & McGraw-Hill Book Company, applying for
Company, Inc. handling your personal A JOB, excerpt from "Jobs and Careers" in
CORRESPONDENCE, from "Personal Letters" in The Complete Book of Personal Letter-Writing
Emily Post's Etiquette, revised by Elizabeth L. and Modern Correspondence by Lassor Blu-
Post. Copyright © 1969 by The Emily Post menthal. Copyright © 1969 by Lassor Blu-
Institute, Inc. Reprinted by permission of menthal. Used by permission of Doubleday &
Funk & Wagnalls Company, give your Company, Inc. picture the people y'ou
LETTERS THE RIGHT LOOK, from "The Ap- ARE writing to, from Business Letters That
pearance and Style of Your Letters" in Emily Turn Inquiries into Sales by Ferd Nauheim.
Post's Etiquette, revised bv Elizabeth L. Post. Copyright © 1957 by Prentice-Hall, Inc. Re-
Copyright © 1969 by The Emily Post In- printed by permission of the publisher, plan
stitute, Inc. Reprinted by permission of Funk YOUR LETTERS BEFORE YOU WRITE, from "Plan
& Wagnalls Company, social notes and in- Before You Write" in The Modern Business
vitations, from "Invitations to Weddings Letter Writer's Manual by Marjane Cloke and
and Receptions," "Wedding Announcements," Robert W'allace. Copyright © 1969 by Mar-
"Acceptances and Regrets," "The New Baby," jane Cloke and Robert Wallace. Used by per-
"Engagements," "Funerals" in Emily Post's mission of Doubleday & Company, Inc. how
Etiquette, revised bv Elizabeth L. Post. Copy- TO WRITE SALES LETTERS, from "Sales Letters"
right © 1969 by The Emily Post Institute, Inc. in The Complete Letter Writer bv N. H. and
Reprinted by permission of Funk & Wagnalls S. K. Mager. Copyright © 1957, 1968 by
Company, how to write for information, N. H. and S. K. Mager. Reprinted by permis-
from "I'm Writing to Inquire ." in The
. .
sion of Pocket Books, a division of Simon 6e
Modern Business Letter Wri'fer's Manual by Schuster, Inc. how to say no with a smile,
Marjane Cloke and Robert Wallace. Copyright from "How to Say 'No' with a Smile" in
© 1969 by Marjane Cloke and Robert Wal- Business Letters That Turn Inquiries into
lace. Used by permission of Doubleday & Com- Sales by Ferd Nauheim. Copyright © 1957 by
pany, Inc. how to complain and get ac- Prentice-Hall, Inc. Reprinted by permission of
tion, excerpt from "Writing to Business Firms the publisher, how to handle delicate
—And Getting Results" in The Complete Book situations, from "How to Handle Delicate
of Personal Letter-Writing and Modern Cor- Situations" in Business Letters That Turn In-
respondence by Lassor Blumenthal. Copyright quiries into Sales by Ferd Nauheim. Copyright
© 1969 by Lassor Blumenthal. Used by per- © 1957 by Prentice-Hall, Inc. Reprinted by
mission of Doubleday & Company, Inc. permission of the publisher, how to write
writing y'our public officials, excerpt from BUSINESS reports, from "Business Reports" in
"Writing to Your Congressman" in The Com- Business Writing by J. Harold Janis, Ed-
plete Book of Personal Letter-Writing and ward J. Kilduff and Howard R. Dressner.
Modern Correspondence by Lassor Blumenthal. Copyright © 1956 by Barnes & Noble, Inc.
Copyright © 1969 by Lassor Blumenthal. Reprinted by permission of the publisher.
Used by permission of Doubleday & Company, SEVEN modern STEPS TO WORD POWER, frOm
Inc. WRITING to newspapers, magazines "Learning Words the Modem Way" in 30
and TV, excerpt from "Writing to Magazines, Days to a More Powerful Vocabulary by
Newspapers, Radio and TV"
The Complete
in Wilfred Funk and Norman Lewis. Copyright
Book and Modern
of Personal Letter-Writing © 1970 by Funk & Wagnalls Co. Used by per-
Correspondence by Lassor Blumt'nthal. Copy- mission of the publisher, learning words
right © 1969 by Lassor Blumenthal. Used by BY THE "unfolding PROCESS," from "Word
permission of Doubleday & Company, Inc. Building by the 'Unfolding Process* " in 30
applying to schools and colleges, excerpt Days to a More Powerful Vocabulary by Wil-
from "Writing to Schools and Colleges" in fred Funk and Norman Lewis. Copyright ©
The Complete Book of Personal Letter-Writing 1970 by Funk & Wagnalls Company. Used by
and Modern Correspondence by Las.sor Blu- permission of the publisher, quick vocabu-
menthal. Copyright © 1969 by Lassor Blumen- lary builder: words from LATIN AND
thal. Used by permission of Doubleday & GREEK, from "Words from Latin" and "Words
Company, Inc. how to write a research from Classic Roots" in 30 Days to a More
PAPER, slightly adapted from "Preparation and Powerful Vocabulary by Wilfred Funk and
Note-Taking" in Modern Rhetoric by Cleanth Norman Lewis. Copyright © 1970 by Funk &
Brooks and Robert Penn Warren. Copyright © Wagnalls Company. Used by permission of the
1949, 1958, 1970 by Ilarcourt, Brace & publisher, good grammar in a nutshell,
World, Inc. Reprinted with their permission. from The Reader's Digest Great Encyclopedic
PRECIS, book BEPOinS, AND PROJECT REPORTS, Dictionary. Copyright ©
1966, 1968, 1969 by
from "Preparing Your Final Copy," "How to The Reader's t)igest Association, Inc. punc-
Write a Precis," "How to Write a Book tuation POINTERS, from "Punctuation" in
Report," "How to Write a Science Project Re- Complete Secretary's Handbook by Lillian
port" in Writing the Research and Term Doris and Besse Mav Miller. Copyright ©
Paper by Travis L. Hauser and Lee Learner 1951, 1960, 1970 by' Prentice-Hall,' Inc. Re-
Gray. Copyright ©
1964 by Cambridge Book printed by permission of the publisher, how
Company, a division of The New York Times to become a good speller, excerpts from
Media Company, Inc. Reprinted by permission Spelling Your Way to Success by Joseph Mer-
of the publisher, taking written examina- sand. Copyright © 1959 by Barron's Educa-
tions, from "Using Time Wisely," "Reading tional Series, Inc. Reprinted by permission of
728
the publisher, the simple rules of spell- 1970 byMcGraw-Hill, Inc. Reprinted by
ing, exceqits from Spelling Your Waij to Suc- permission of McGraw-Hill Book Company.
cess by Joseph Mersand. Copyright © 1959 by HOW TO SELL YOUR IDEA, from The Art of
Barron's Educational Series, Inc. Reprinted by Making People Listen to You by Glenn J.
permission of the publisher, can you read Cook. Copyright © 1967 by Parker Publishing
WHAT YOU WRITE, from "Can You Read What Company. Published by permission of Parker
You Write" by Robert O'Brien, condensed Publishing Company, Inc., West Nyack, New
from Saturdatj Review. Copyright 1959 by © York. USE VISUALS to prove YOUR POINT,
Saturday Review, Inc. the secrets of good from "Use Visuals to Prove Your Point" in
CONVERSATION, excerpt from "Conversation" How to Stand Up and Speak Well in Business
in The Art of Speaking Made Simple by by Frank Snell. Copyright ©
1962 by Frank
William R. Gondin and Edward Mammen. Snell. Reprinted by permission of Corner-
Copyright ©
1954 by Doubleday & Company, stone Library, Inc. preparing y'ourself to
Inc. Used by permission of the publisher. SPEAK, from "Preparing the Speaker— You" in
THE ART of BEING A SUCCESSFUL HOST, from Speech Can Change Your Life by Dorothy
"Be the Host with the Most— The Hostess with SamoflF. Copyright © 1970 by Dorothy Sar-
the Mostest" in Speech Can Change Your Life noff. Used by permission of Doubleday & Com-
by Dorothy Samoff. Copyright 1970 by © pany, Inc. WHAT MAKES A GOOD SPEAKER,
Dorothy Samoff. Used by permission of from "Speaking in Public" in The Art of
Doubleday & Company, Inc. \vhen you Speaking Made Simple by William R. Gondin
MEET A FAMOUS PERSON, from "How to Talk and Edward W. Mammen. Copyright © 1954
to . . the Celebrity" in
. How to Talk with by Doubleday & Company, Inc. Used by per-
Practicalh/ Ani/hodi/ About PracticalUj Any- mission of the publisher, the secret of
thing by Barbara Walters. Copyright 1970 © GOOD delivery, from "Delivering the Talk"
bv Barbara Walters. Used by permission of in The Quick i- Easy Way to Effective Speak-
Eioubleday & Company, Inc. ten conversa- ing by Dale Carnegie, revised by Dorothy
tion PROBLEMS and HOW TO SOLVE THEM, Carnegie. Copyright ©
1962 by Dorothy Car-
from "How to Talk to Difficult People"
. . . negie. Reprinted by permission of Association
in How to Talk with Practicalh/ Antjhodn Press. BEWARE OF these speech blemishes,
About PracticalUj Anything by Barbara from "Help,
I'm Being Taped!" in Speech
Walters. Copyright ©
1970 by Barbara Can Change Yotir Life bv Dorothv Sarnoff.
Walters. Used by permisson of Doubleday & Copyright ©
1970 by Dorothy Sarnoff. Used
Companv, Inc. how you come across on by permission of Doubleday & Company, Inc.
THE telephone, from "On the Telephone" in HOW TO IMPROVE YOUR VOICE, from "Getting
Emily Post's Etiquette, revised bv Elizabeth L. to Know You," "A Better Voice Is Just a
Post." Copyright © 1969 by The Emily Post Breath Away," "Is Your Voice as Alive as
Institute, Inc. Reprinted by permission of You Are?" "Banish That Blemish" in Speech
Funk & Wagnalls Company, how to handle Can Change Your Life by Dorothy Samoff.
an interview, from "The Interview" in Get Copyright ©
1970 by Dorothy Samoff. Used
That Job by M. C. Cobb. Copyright © 1969 by permission of Doubleday & Company, Inc.
by M. C. Cobb. Reprinted by permission of YOUR CiHLD TALKS LIKE YOU, from YoUr
Cowles Book Company, a subsidiary of the Child's Speech by Flora Rheta Schreiber.
Henry Regnery Company, the five steps Copyright ©
1956' by Flora Rheta Schreiber.
TO successful selling, from "Interviews" in Reprinted by permission of Mcintosh & Otis,
The Art of Speaking Made Simple by Wil- Inc. TH.4T bugaboo: correct PRONUNCIA-
liam R. Gondin and Edward W. Mammen. TION, from "What Correct Pronunciation Is"
Copyright © 1954 by Doubleday & Company, in New Power with Words by Norman Lewis.
Inc. Used by permission of the publisher. Copyright ©
1943, 1964 by Norman Leu-is.
HOW TO RUN a meeting, from "Successful Reprinted by permission of Thomas Y. Crowell
Leadership," "Leadership in Opening the Company, three pronunxiation pitfalls
Meeting," "Leadership During the Meeting," from "Three Things to .-Vvoid" in New
"Leadership at the Close of the Meeting" in Power Words bv Norman Lewis. Copy-
tcith
Hoiu to Hold a Better Meeting by Frank right © 1943, 1964 by Norman Lewis. Re-
Snell. Copyright © 1958 by Frank Snell. Re- printed by permission of Thomas Y. Crowell
printed by permission of Comer.stone Library, Company, recent trends in American
Inc. HOW TO beat stage FRIGHT, from SPEECH, from "Recent Trends in American
"Nervous About That Speech?" by Stephen S. Pronimciation" in New Power with Words by
Price in Natioti's Business (June 1967). Copy- Norman Lewis. Copyright ©
1943, 1964 by
right ©
1967 by Nation's Business- the Cham- Norman Lewis. Reprinted by permission of
ber of Commerce of the United States. Re- Thomas Y. Crowell Company, our wonder-
printed by permission of the publisher, how- ful, ERRATIC LANGUAGE, from "Our Wonder-
to pick your subject, from "Speaking in ful Erratic Language" in New Power with
Public" in The Art of Speaking Made Simple Worrf.s by Norman Lewis. Copyright 1943, ©
by William R. Gondin and Edward W. Mam- 1964 by Norman Lewis. Reprinted by permis-
men. Copyright © 1954 by Doubleday & Com- sion of Thomas Y. Crowell Company, a
pany, Inc. Used by permission of the publisher. DICTIONARY OF USAGE, from "Correct Word
HOW TO PREPARE vouR SPEECH, from "Prepar- Usage" in Complete Secretary's Handbook by
ing the Speech" in Speech Can Change Your Lillian Doris and Besse Mav Miller. Copvright
Life by Dorothy Sarnoff. Copyright © 1970 © 1951, 1960, 1970 by Prentice-Hall,' Inc.
by Dorotliv Sarnoff. Used by permission of Reprinted by permission of the publisher. DDD
Doubleday & Company, Inc. start with a PUT IN YOUR FEW CENTs' WORTH, from "Put
LIST of points, from "Start with a List of in Your Three Cents' Worth" by Donald
Points" in The Successful Speaker's Planning Culross Peattie, condensed from Christian
Guide by Edward Hegarty. Copyright © Science Monitor. Copyright ©
1939 by Chris-
729
tian Science Pub'ishing Society, four tips Harcourt Brace Jovanovich, Inc. Reprinted
FOR WRITING THE SICK, from "Notes to Con- with their pennission. the irresistible
valescents and Invalids" in The Complete QUOTATION mark, from The Careful Writer:
Book of Personal Letter-Writing and Modern A Modern Guide to English Usage by
Correspondence by Lassor Blumenthal. Copy- Theodore M. Bernstein. Copyright 1965 by ©
right © 1969 by Lassor Blumenthal. Used by Theodore M. Bernstein. Reprinted by permis-
permission of Doubleday & Company, Inc. sion ofAtheneum Publishers, are you a
HOW TO ADDRESS IMPORTANT PEOPLE, frOm bore?, bv I. A. R. Wylie in Reader's Digest
"Addressing Persons" in Emily
Important (November 1956). Copyright © 1956 by The
bv Elizabeth L. Post.
Post's Etiquette, revised Reader's Digest Association, Inc. how to
Copyright ©
1969 by The Emily Post In- RE.AD body language, by Flora Davis, con-
stitute, Inc. Used by permission of Funk & densed in Reader's Digest (December 1969).
Wagnalls Company, the inquiring stu- Copyright © 1969 by Flora Davis, you can
dent, from "Letters of Inquiry" in The Com- remember NAMES, by Federic Sondem, Jr.,
plete Book of Personal Letter-Writing atid condensed from Christian Herald. Copyright
Modern Correspondence by Lassor Blumenthal. © 1959 by Christian Herald Association, Inc.
Copyright Q 1969 by Lassor Blumenthal. Reprinted by permission of the publisher.
Used by permission of Doubleday & Company, PAGE 414 quote from Shake Well Before Us-
Inc. HOW TO hit the editor hardest, from ing by Bennett Cerf. Copyright © 1948 by
"How Not to Write the Editor" by Carroll P. Bennett Cerf. Reprinted by permission of
Streeter in Farm Journal (February 1967). Simon & Schuster, Inc. five \vays to say
Copyright ©1967 by Farm Journal, Inc. Re- NO, from "How to Say No" by Vance Packard,
printed by permission of the publisher. condensed from Future. Copyright 1952 by©
mother goes to college, from appendix of The U.S. Junior Chamber of Commerce. Re-
Careers for Women After Marriage and Chil- printed by permission of the publisher. HO^v
dreriby Barbara P. O'Neill. Copyright © TO HANDLE YOUR COLLEGE INTERVIEW, eX-
1965 by Barbara P. O'Neill. Reprinted by cerpt from "Writing to Schools and Colleges"
permission of The Macmillan Company, how in The Complete Book of Personal Letter-
to use the library, from "Looking Up Writing and Modern Correspondence by Las-
Specific Books" in Writing the Research and sor Blumenthal. Copyright ©
1969 by Lassor
Term Paper by Travis L. Hauser and Lee Blumenthal. Used by permission of Double-
Learner Gray. Copyright © 1964 by Cam- day & Company, Inc. the art of asking
bridge Book Company, a division of The New QUESTIONS, from "The Delicate Art of Asking
York Times Media Company, Inc. Reprinted Questions" by John Kord Lagemann in
by permission of the publisher. page 170 Reader's Digest (June 1965). Copyright ©
quote from Ilemingioaij: The Writer as Artist 1965 by The Reader's Digest Association, Inc.
by Carlos Baker. Rev. edn., copyright ©
( EIGHT PITFALLS TO AVOID, from The Success-
1963 by Carlos Baker; Princeton Paperback, ful Speaker's Planning Guide bv Edward
1967). how to ask for a raise, from Hegarty. Copyright ©
1970 by McGraw-Hill,
"Getting, Holding, and Leaving Your Job" in Inc. Reprinted by permission of McGraw-Hill
The Complete Letter Writer by N. H. and Book Company, sell your idea with
S. K. Mager. Copyright ©
1957, 1968 by QUOTATIONS, from "Sell Your Idea" in How
N. H. and S. K. Mager. Reprinted by permis- to Stand Up and Speak Well in Business by
sion of Pocket Books, a division of Simon & Frank Snell. Copyright ©
1962 by Frank
Schuster, Inc. waiting a letter of re- Snell. Reprinted by permission of Cornerstone
signation, from "Getting, Holding, and Library, Inc. beating the "ho hum . . .
Leaving Your Job" in The Complete Letter so what?" blues, from "How to Say a Few
Writer by N. H. and S. K. Mager. Copvright Words" by Edward S. Zellev in Nation's
© 1957, 1968 by N. H. and S. K. Mager. Business (July 1966). Copyright 1966 by ©
Used by permission of Pocket Books, a division Nation's Business— the Chamber of Commerce
of Simon & Schuster, Inc. letters you of the United States. Reprinted by pennission
don't have to write, from "The Sales of the publisher, how to introduce a
Letter" Business Letter Writing Made
in speaker, from "Introducing Speakers, Pre-
Simple bv Rosenthal and Harry W.
Irving senting & Accepting Awards" in The Quick
Rudman. Copyright ©
1955, 1968 by Double- ir Easy Way to Effective Speaking by Dale
day & Company, Inc. Reprinted by permis- Carnegie, revised by Dorothy Carnegie. Copy-
sion of the publisher, mark twain says no, right © 1962 by Dorothy Carnegie. Reprinted
from A Treasury of the World's Great Letters. by permission of Association Press, sell
Reprinted with permission of Thomas G. your idea with stories, from "Sell Your
Chamberlain and Manufacturers Hanover Ideas" in How to Stand Up and Speak Well
Trust Company, trustees under the will of in Business by Frank Snell. Copyright 1962 ©
Clemens Samossoud. in praise of memos, by Frank Snell. Used by permission of Corner-
by Sam B. Vitt in Nation's Business (No- stone Library, Inc. how to handle dis-
vember 1966). Copyright ©
1966 by Nation's tractions, from "Controlling Platfonn
Business— the Chamber of Commerce of the Manner" in Yon Can Talk Well by Richard C.
United States. Reprinted by permission of the Reager, revised by Norman P. Crawford and
publisher, now to read a dictionary Edwin L. Stevens. Copyright ©
1960 by
entry, sample entries from The Reader's Rutgers University Press, New Brunswick,
Digest Great Encyclopedic Dictionary. Copy- New Jersey, when you're on radio or tv,
right ©1966, 1968, 1969 by The Reader's from "Speaking in Public" in The Art of
Digest Association, Inc. how to diagram a Speaking Made Simple by William R. Gondin
sentence, examples from English Grammar and Edward W. Mammen. Copyright © 1954
and Comjmsition 11, revised edition, by by Doubleday & Company, Inc. Reprinted by
John E. Warriner, et al. Copyright © 1969 by permission of the publisher.
730